Zombies and Sexuality - Essays On Desire and The Walking Dead

Download as pdf or txt
Download as pdf or txt
You are on page 1of 225
At a glance
Powered by AI
The text discusses several academic works that have contributed to the study of zombies in popular culture. Some of the major works mentioned include books and essays that analyze zombie movies, television shows, and their cultural significance.

Some of the major works contributing to zombie studies that are mentioned include White Zombie: Anatomy of a Horror Film (2001), The Zombie Movie Encyclopedia (2001, 2011 editions), American Zombie Gothic: The Rise and Fall (and Rise) of the Walking Dead in Popular Culture (2010), and Generation Zombie: Essays on the Living Dead in Modern Culture (2011).

The text explores topics of sexuality and desire in relation to zombies, as indicated by the title Zombies and Sexuality: Essays on Desire and the Living Dead. Some essays in the collection likely discuss themes of queer theory, sex in literature, and representations of sexuality in zombie films.

Zombies and Sexuality

CONTRIBUTIONS TO ZOMBIE STUDIES


White Zombie: Anatomy of a Horror Film. Gary D. Rhodes. 2001 (2006, paperback)
The Zombie Movie Encyclopedia. Peter Dendle. 2001 (2011, paperback)
American Zombie Gothic: The Rise and Fall (and Rise)
of the Walking Dead in Popular Culture. Kyle William Bishop. 2010
Back from the Dead: Remakes of the Romero
Zombie Films as Markers of Their Times. Kevin J. Wetmore, Jr. 2011
Generation Zombie: Essays on the Living Dead
in Modern Culture. Edited by Stephanie Boluk and Wylie Lenz. 2011
Race, Oppression and the Zombie: Essays on Cross-Cultural Appropriations
of the Caribbean Tradition. Edited by Christopher M. Moreman
and Cory James Rushton. 2011
Zombies Are Us: Essays on the Humanity of the Walking Dead.
Edited by Christopher M. Moreman and Cory James Rushton. 2011
The Zombie Movie Encyclopedia, Volume 2: 20002010. Peter Dendle. 2012
Great Zombies in History. Edited by Joe Sergi. 2013 (graphic novel)
Unraveling Resident Evil: Essays on the Complex Universe
of the Games and Films. Edited by Nadine Farghaly. 2014
Were All Infected: Essays on AMCs The Walking Dead
and the Fate of the Human. Edited by Dawn Keetley. 2014
Zombies and Sexuality: Essays on Desire and the Living Dead.
Edited by Shaka McGlotten and Steve Jones. 2014

Zombies and Sexuality


Essays on Desire and
the Living Dead
Edited by Shaka McGlotten
and Steve Jones
Contributions to Zombie Studies

McFarland & Company, Inc., Publishers


Jefferson, North Carolina

LIBRARY OF CONGRESS C ATALOGUING-IN-PUBLICATION DATA

Zombies and sexuality : essays on desire and the living dead /


edited by Shaka McGlotten and Steve Jones.
p.
cm.
Includes bibliographical references and index.
ISBN 978-0-7864-7907-8 (softcover : acid free paper)
ISBN 978-1-4766-1738-1 (ebook)

1. ZombiesSocial aspects. 2. Sex in literature.


3. Zombies in literature. 4. Queer theory.
5. Zombie films. I. McGlotten, Shaka, 1975
editor. II. Jones, Steve, 1979 editor.
GR581.Z65 2014
398.21dc23

2014030916

BRITISH LIBRARY CATALOGUING DATA ARE AVAILABLE

2014 Shaka McGlotten and Steve Jones. All rights reserved


No part of this book may be reproduced or transmitted in any form
or by any means, electronic or mechanical, including photocopying
or recording, or by any information storage and retrieval system,
without permission in writing from the publisher.
On the cover: poster art, Return of the Living Dead: Rave to
the Grave, 2005 (Denholm Trading Inc./Photofest)
Printed in the United States of America

McFarland & Company, Inc., Publishers


Box 611, Jefferson, North Carolina 28640
www.mcfarlandpub.com

Table of Contents
Introduction: Zombie Sex
Steve Jones and Shaka McGlotten

Take, Eat, These Are My Brains: Queer Zombie Jesus


Max Thornton

19

Victorian Values: Necrophilia and the Nineteenth Century


in Zombie Films
Marcus Harmes

36

A Love Worth Un-Undying For: Neoliberalism and


Queered Sexuality in Warm Bodies
Sasha Cocarla

52

For a Good Time Just Scream: Sex Work and Plastic


Sexuality in Dystopicmodern Literature
Denise N. Cook

73

Laid to Rest: Romance, End of the World Sexuality and


Apocalyptic Anticipation in Robert Kirkmans
The Walking Dead
Emma Vossen

88

Queering and Cripping the End of the World: Disability,


Sexuality and Race in The Walking Dead
Cathy Hannabach

106

Re-Animating the Social Order: Zombies and Queer Failure


Trevor Grizzell

123

vi

Table of Contents

Gay Zombies: Consuming Masculinity and Community in


Bruce LaBruces Otto; or, Up with Dead People
and L.A. Zombie
Darren Elliott-Smith

140

I Eat Brains or Dick: Sexual Subjectivity and the


Hierarchy of the Undead in Hardcore Film
Laura Helen Marks

159

Pretty, Dead: Sociosexuality, Rationality and the Transition


into Zom-Being
Steve Jones

180

Bibliography

199

About the Contributors

213

Index

215

Introduction
Zombie Sex
Steve Jones and Shaka McGlotten
How would you respond to the onset of a zombie apocalypse? Given
only moments to live and faced with the prospect of shambling endlessly
through the world as one of the mindless undead, what activity would
top your bucket list? Luckily for the unimaginative procrastinators
among us, zombie narratives offer various helpful suggestions. For example, in Zombies vs. Strippers (2012), ecdysiast Jasmine elects to give
infected strip-club bouncer Marvin a nal lapdance. Whether or not
this sounds appealing, Zombies vs. Strippers also presents a warning:
our desires are worth reecting on in detail, since they might not play
out exactly as we hope they might. Moreover, as we move into undeath,
our desires may also mutate in unbidden and unforeseen ways. Marvin
and Jasmines misinterpreted exchanges exemplify such slippage. When
Marvin moans about his bodily failure (I can barely see. Im so stiff ),
Jasmine thinks that he is talk[ing] dirty. As Marvin posits that he is so
close (to death), Jasmine assures him, Its okay baby, you can come.
Amorousness and mortality meld. That amalgam nds its fullest expression when Marvin nally turns. Jasmine thinks it is sweet when Marvin
declares that he values Jasmine for her braaaaains rather than her
looks, but she does not bargain on Marvin proving it by immediately
biting her face off. The next time the couple are depicted, Jasmine (now
faceless and topless) continues to dry-hump the fully zombied Marvin.
In this instance, living sexual desire and the zombies carnal longings
are indistinguishable from one another. The motto of this particular
story may be that love transcends even death. Maybe Jasmine and Mar1

Introduction

vins tryst signals that once enamed, our passions are unstoppable
forces. Alternatively, these gyrating sacs of viscera might underscore
that even grotesque ghouls need a little lovin.
Whatever conclusion one reaches, the unpalatable combination of
zombies and sex is provocative, triggering a multitude of questions about
the nature of desire, sex, sexuality, and the politics of our sexual behaviors. Colleagues and friends varied responses to our proposal for this
volume attest to how stimulating (intellectually or otherwise) the idea
of zombie sex is. Their reactions ranged from polite curiosity to surprise,
from disgust to shock. Yes, zombies and sex. Is the juxtaposition really
so surprising? Zombies are increasingly ubiquitous cultural gures most
commonly associated with a decaying half-life and a mindless appetite
for human esh (and/or brains). Sex is even more ubiquitous, manifesting as erotic attachments and practices that are variously reproductive,
fun, banal, troubling, and carnal. Whatever form sex takes, it is central
to virtually every human life and form of sociality. What is perhaps more
shocking than the combination of zombies and sex is how infrequently
this juxtaposition has been addressed in extant scholarship, not least
since our book proposal resonated with so many: we received nearly 50
abstracts in response to our call for papers. We were surprised by the
range of cultural textspornographic, straight, and queerthat our
contributors drew upon, by the multifarious ways in which zombies and
sex have been brought together in zombie texts, and by the latent sexual
themes zombie narratives explore. Zombies crystallize fears and desires
related to contagion and consumption, to the body and sociality, to
autonomy and enslavement. They represent a raried drive that underpins our conscious desires: to consume. In zombie narratives, this drive
impels contagious forms of contact, sweeping up new bodies as it builds.
The result is that human sociality is fundamentally altered, taking form
as a collective comprised of individuals seeking connection with one
another, or a swarm of bodies devoid of individual subjectivity, for example. The essays in this book explore what happens in the wake of these
encounters, when sex and undeath are brought together.

The Zombies Are Coming


Since the early 2000s, zombies have become an increasingly signicant presence in the landscape of popular culture. They have ourished in their customary locale: the horror lm (28 Weeks Later [2007];

Zombie Sex

Survival of the Dead [2009]), and they have also found success in genre
mashups, where horror merges with comedy (Zombieland [2009]; Juan
of the Dead [2011]; Cockneys vs. Zombies [2012]). Zombies even make
appearances in family fare like 2012s animated ParaNorman. They have
spread beyond lm into stage musicals (Fleshed Out [2012]; Musical of
the Living Dead [2012]); videogames (Dead Island [2011]; Left 4 Dead
[20082009]); and comics (Chaos Campus [2007present]; Marvel
Zombies [2005present]). That same ethos of amalgamation is evident
in transmedia manifestations of the zombie myth, such as videogame/
lm adaptations (Resident Evil [1996present/2002present]; House of
the Dead [1997/2003]), literature/lm crossovers (Warm Bodies
[2012/2013]); World War Z [2006/2013]), and television/graphic novel
adaptations (The Walking Dead [2003present/2010present]). The
mixed-media remake Night of the Living Dead: Reanimated (2009) and
the literary mash-up Pride and Prejudice and Zombies (2009) further
exemplify the zombies transmedia circulation. Indeed, as Max Thornton
observes in his contribution to this volume, the zombie offers a bridge
between an iconic object of print media (the Christian Bible) and contemporary Internet meme culture.
The zombies ubiquity also underscores its theoretical applications.
As monsters that straddle the gulf between life and death, zombies disturb established ontological and epistemological categories, as well as
hegemonic norms. Those disruptions are frequently associated with an
assortment of social anxieties: about viral contagion, biological warfare,
neoliberal and totalitarian securitization, environmental collapse, and
capitalist end-times. Unsurprisingly, our contributors evoke some of
these themes, either implicitly or explicitly; Emma Vossens analysis of
The Walking Dead concentrates on the apprehension and anticipation that
follow in the wake of global economic crisis. In this regard, Vossens essay
reiterates that in the horror genre zombies commonly symbolize apprehension over social precariousness and radical change. Zombies expose
the abject physiology beneath human skin, either because they rip into living tissue, or because their esh is falling apart. Zombies also reveal what
bodies are capable of, and what they can endure. Yet the zombies presence
outside of horror signals that the undead are not limited to reecting collective fears. As Vossens essay elucidates, the zombie renaissance offers
a multitude of new insights into the zombies capacity to reect our erotic
and even political desires. Contemporary zombie narratives also expose
an array of truths about our shared global present, especially those that
are tied to automation, disposability, and new collectivities.

Introduction

The zombie boom is a mass culture trend that is fueling a diverse


body of new scholarly work. As Steve Jones observes in his contribution
to this volume, although the zombie is foremost a movie-monster, the
living deads signicance has been contemplated outside of lm studies,
particularly in the philosophy of consciousness (see Heil; Kirk; Locke).
Additionally, since the early 2000s zombies have become increasingly
visible in a wider variety of scholarly disciplines. Neuropsychologists
have drawn on the zombie in discussions of automated bodily functions
(Rossetti and Revonsuo; Aquilina and Hughes; Behuniak). The zombie
appears in computer scientists deliberations over articial intelligences
and hacks (Gray and Wegner; Kari Larsen). Posthumanists have evoked
the zombie when debating the failures and possibilities of impersonal
or pre-personal subjectivity (Christie and Lauro). Marxists have utilized
the living dead in metaphors regarding the deadening effects of late capitalism and the turmoil and violence that results from ongoing global
economic crises (Giroux; Harman; McNally).

Necro-Sociality
Importantly these various approaches are all rooted in concepts of
socialitythe relationships and forms of reproduction that organize
associations between people, social systems, and non-human others.
Zombies are social monsters, and their monstrosity is a reection of
our own. Lone zombies are ineffective, comical rather than frightening. En masse, however, the zombie swarm is terrifying. Zombies reproduce sociality itself as a kind of latent zymotic disease that threatens
humanitys existence. This trait, what we might call the zombies necrosociality, illustrates ways in which zombies metaphorically capture anxieties about identity, embodiment, and agency that resonate with contemporary and historical social contexts. As Marcus Harmes observes
in his contribution to this volume, one important context that has been
largely under-theorized in zombie scholarship to date is Victorian social
attitudes towards dead bodies. Drawing on the quasi- necrophilic
imagery of European zombie-horror set in the nineteenth century,
Harmes exposes the fetishistic, sexual overtones of cultic Victorian
mourning practices.
A tandem socio-historical context has received far more attention
in zombie studies; numerous thinkers have drawn upon the zombies
origins in Haitian folklore to understand histories of racism and racial-

Zombie Sex

ized labor (Moreman and Rushton; Castronovo). Many cinematic depictions of zombies are overtly racialized. For instance, zombies have been
treated as somnambulistic slave gures in White Zombie (1932) and I
Walked with a Zombie (1943), or monstrous cannibals pitched against
white westerners in Zombie Flesheaters (1979), Zombie Holocaust (1980),
and Zombie Creeping Flesh (1980). These texts illustrate specic anxieties (and fantasies) about race and colonialism. White Zombie and I
Walked with a Zombie make these links explicit via their Gothic postcolonial Caribbean settings, anxious miscegenation fantasies,1 and zombie laborers. In African traditions, zombies are not undead creatures
hungering after the esh of the living, but ordinary people who have
been victimized by a witch or sorcerer who then forces them to work
against their will. As Lars Bang Larsen observes, The origin of the zombie in Haitian vodoun has an explicit relationship to labor, as a repetition
or reenactment of slavery. The person who receives the zombie spell
dies, is buried, excavated, and put to work, usually as a eld hand. These
themes were explored, as Larsen points out, by Wade Davis in his controversial book The Serpent and the Rainbow, in which the ethnobotanist
sought a pharmacological explanation for zombies. Daviss social analysis
is more compelling than his pharmacological insights, however; for people of African descent in the post-colony, zombies represent the loss of
physical liberty that is slavery, and the sacrice of personal autonomy
implied by the loss of identity (qtd. in Lars Bang Larsen; see also
Thomas). In these traditions, zombies are terrifying not because they
are consumptive or contagious, but because they evoke enslavement to
the will of another. More recently, thinkers have drawn upon the zombie
to comprehend the apparently magical accumulation of wealth under
postcolonial neoliberalism (Comaroff and Comaroff ) and widespread
experiences of social precariousness.
Although it is now largely forgotten, the paradigmatic image of the
zombie as a looming, murderous horde also derives from the Caribbean,
and especially the Haitian revolution, which was perceived by the West
as mindless, rapacious destruction (Sibylle 2). The contemporary zombie
likewise almost always appears as a horde that threatens existence as we
know it. The zombie swarm is an inverted fantasy. Like contemporary
capitalism, it represents destruction through voracious, insatiable consumption. Simultaneously, zombies represent that which could deliver
us from that self-same death drive. Thus, zombies might appear as a
revolutionary multitudefaceless, inexorable, forcing a global transformation toward a genocidal absolute waror they might catalyze a per-

Introduction

manent dtente, in which humans band together regardless of ethnonational and religious differences. By dwelling on themes of collective
power and revolution, zombie narratives typically reduce the social
world to its day zero, providing opportunities to re-envisage society.
However, a number of our contributors point out that in some narratives
zombie futures bear a striking resemblance to our political present.
Moreover, as Sasha Cocarla argues in relation to Warm Bodies and both
Cathy Hannabach and Vossen argue in relation to different iterations of
The Walking Dead, many zombie narratives reproduce or even celebrate
norms tied to romance, gender, ability, and heterosexuality.

The Promise of a Zombie Future


The leveling of social difference, and of society itself, is paradoxically facilitated by the zombies lack of subjective agency. The zombie
represents humanity in a pre-conscious state. Thus, the zombies revolution is not only social: it also represents day zero for human identity,
and the imbricated experiences of individuality and interdependence on
which sociality is founded (see also Lauro and Embry). As SheetsJohnstone observes, animate corporeality is the foundation of lived experience. In this view, our bodies tie us to the world prior to the formation
of identity. In Mel Chens recent articulations of animacies, the liveliness of an identity, body, or idea depends on its place within ordered
hierarchies and specically its relationship to forms of matter considered
dead or insensate. Chen argues that these hierarchies are profoundly
relational. What makes one body appear dead or alive has to do with
how it affects or is affected by others. The zombieanimated esh evacuated of identity and agencyenlivens concepts of life or of humanity
in which the human is unconstrained by social or cultural limits. Zombies are freed of any obligations, other than to their own hunger. As
Trevor Grizzell explores in his analysis of The Walking Dead television
series in this volume, the displacement of excess onto zombies underscores
human efforts to exercise forms of purity and controlto erect animate
hierarchies that guard humanity from forms of consumption or violence
that are deemed beyond the pale. To draw upon a famous example, that
unconstrained drive to excess leads zombies to return to the suburban
mall where they once shopped in George A. Romeros Dawn of the Dead
(1978). Although driven by a quest for comforting familiarity, the zombies are disoriented in the malls terrain: they fail to nd peace, because

Zombie Sex

their new state is incompatible with their previous existence. Romeros


interests in social politics are explicitly critical, as is elucidated by the
ways the normal human social world of conspicuous consumption is
echoed in the zombies insistent, insatiable hunger. For the audience and
the living protagonists, the zombies presence in the mall is disquieting,
not only because they are incongruous with the setting. Firstly, the
wastage involved in consumer capitalism is personied by the zombies,
who are humans-as-waste. Secondly, the zombies fruitless desire and
resultant confusion replicate the emptiness of living human desires.
Zombies are evacuated of self, but they also reveal that for the living,
autonomous will is empty. In his essay, Steve Jones examines the gradual
erosion of the human will and rationality in zombie transition narratives.
Zombie metamorphoses, Jones suggests, highlight the tenuousness of
our claims to rationality, as well as illustrating tensions in different
philosophies of the self and sociality. The zombies body is post-mortal
excess, standing in for the ugly, blind needs that are left after our jobs,
relationships, life-plans, and cherished personalities are excised. Since
the zombies reveal that our needs are aimed towards false, unsatisfying
goals (the mall, consumption), those needs are not constituted by anything substantial. We are insubstantial, animated by powerful but opaque
desires.
This is Romeros most signicant contribution to zombie lore, and
one that is developed by allowing the zombie to explicitly evolve into
consciousness from Day of the Dead (1985) onwards. Also in 1985,
Return of the Living Dead transformed the zombie inasmuch as it
employed post- modern humor to develop the evolution of zombieconsciousness. In this instance, zombies are relatively articulate. They
are also able to mobilize and plan their cannibalistic assaults; send more
paramedics, one zombie requests, in preparation for an ambush. These
changes mean that the zombie clearly attains subjective existence, far
removed from the lumbering, irrational beings offered in many earlier
entries into the zombie canon. The prospect of zombie consciousness
is of concern because the paradoxes of the oxymoron living-dead and
motorized instinct (as the doctor phrases it in Dawn of the Dead )
unhinge foundational ontological suppositions. The monsters are
uncomfortably akin to their apparently rational, living human brethren.
As Webb and Byrnand note, there is always something nearly me about
the monster (84). The social horror at hand is exacerbated precisely by
the human-zombie parallel offered in these lms; these monsters are
uncanny doppelgngers.

Introduction

Zombie Love
Not all undead beings were treated as mindless entities prior to the
1970s; The Mummy (1932), Dracula (1931), and Frankenstein (1931) all
feature central living dead gures that display conscious motivation.
Interestingly, these monsters are driven by explicitly human concerns
in particular, the quest for sexual companionship (although Frankensteins creation does not nd his partner until Bride of Frankenstein
[1935]). These lms pivotally present living dead beings not as mechanized husks, but as individuals who lay claim to sexual identity (even if
that identity is impersonal, distasteful or disaffected).
What is at once central and strangely absent from current debates
about the zombie is any detailed consideration of sex and sexuality. This
oversight is startling, not least since sex is arguably the most intimate
form of social engagement, and is a profound aspect of human social
identity. What makes the omission even more remarkable is how appositely the zombie reects socio-sexual desires and fears. Zombies are
fundamentally reproductive, attaining power through violent, interpersonal and contagious contact. In tandem, zombie texts typically feature
a band of survivors, families or their analogues, who must struggle to
endure the zombie apocalypse, and presumably repopulate the world.
In zombie narratives, human sex is symbolically powerful: it is an anxious reprieve to dystopian threat, and a promise that future generations
of the living will still inherit the earth. In one sense, sex might be envisaged as buttressing heteronormative fantasies, then. Allegorically, the
nuclear family closes ranks and is arrayed against an encroaching horde
(of foreigners or queers), and heterosexual propagation is presented as
the ultimate goal that might save humanity. On the other hand, zombie
procreation represents a powerful alternative to heterosexual breeding,
one that de-naturalizes the relationship between heterosexual intercourse and propagation. In the zombie narrative, heterosexual reproduction is superseded, and what Lee Edelman dubs reproductive
futurism is upended. In his essay here, Grizzell argues that such upendings, and especially the failures represented by zombie propagation, offer
useful queer re-conceptualizations of culture.
Where the zombie-lms sexual politics have been addressed by
academics, feminist methodologies have typically been used to examine
the living characters gendered relationships (Grant 200212; Greenberg
86; Paffenroth 5966; Patterson 103118). Subsequently, there are two
major oversights in the body of existing literature. First, sex and love

Zombie Sex

play crucial roles in numerous zombie narratives. That is, sex is important to the plots and meanings of many zombie lms, and manifests in
a multitude of ways. For example, Shaun of the Deads (2004) zombie
plague is a backdrop for a romantic narrative that drives towards lead
protagonist Shaun being happily reunited with his lover Liz. However,
the lms pivotal relationship is a bromance between Shaun and his
best friend Ed, who is more pertinently Shauns partner in the narrative.
Although Ed becomes infected, the lm closes not with a heterosexual
coupling, but with a merging between heterosexual and homosocial,
between living and dead: Shaun, Liz, and the now undead Ed live
together in a happily ever after union. In the Japanese lm Wild Zero
(1999), lead protagonist and wannabe rocker Ace is initially distressed
to discover that his damsel in distress beau (Tomoe) is male. However,
the zombie plague is the lms only crisis: Aces momentary confusion
is swiftly overturned when Ace has a vision of his rocknroll hero Guitar
Wolf, who proclaims, Love has no borders, nationalities, or genders!
DO IT!!! The romance unfolds in accordance with Guitar Wolf s enthusiastic assertion. Further indications that zombie-narratives are not
exclusively focused on heterosexuality are exemplied by Noble
Romances Zombies versus Lesbians novellas, such as Amber Greens
Dead Kitties Dont Purr. The series uses zombie outbreaks as complications in gay romance stories. Given that sex and love are driving forces
in so many zombie narratives, it is surprising that they have been disregarded by scholars in favor of other less prominent themes. In her
essay for this volume, Sasha Cocarla explores the queered normativity
of R, the zombie protagonist of Isaac Marions novel, Warm Bodies. R
engages in a three way relationship with Perry, whose brain he has
devoured and whose feelings he subsequently experiences, and Julie,
Perrys former love interest. Cocarla links Rs quest toward greater liveliness to the affective aspirations interpellated by neoliberal notions of
freedom, rationality, and the salvic couple form.2
The second element overlooked in current academic discussion is
zombie sexuality: the fact that the undead have sex with each other and
with humans in many contemporary zombie narratives. Since the late
1990s, zombies have been increasingly represented as sexual gures.
Frequently, the results have seemingly reiterated normative sexual hierarchies, in which certain bodies and modes of existence are subordinated
to others. Denise N. Cooks contribution to this volume evokes precisely
these problems. Critiquing Giddens plastic sexuality paradigm, Cooks
dissection of short-stories about undead sex-work demonstrates that

10

Introduction

although zombie sexuality represents versatility and freedom on one


hand, such imaginings are typically anchored by restrictive norms that
fetter sexual liberty.

Dead Straight/Dire Straights


In an extension of the associations made between zombies and
racialized identities then, it may appear that sexual zombies are utilized
to support the notion that male heterosexuality, for example, is the dominant standard against which other forms of sexual expression, identities
or genders are judged. It is clear why one might reach this conclusion.
In the case of Lesbian Zombies from Outer Space (2013), for example,
female homosexuality is tallied with zombidom, and therefore implied
to be monstrous. Indeed, lesbianism is presented as an object of heterosexual desire rather than as an autonomous identity within this context.
As the lms trailer proposes, a world of lesbians is one mans fantasy
which becomes a nightmare only because the women in question are
undead. The audience is interpellated into that presumed position of
heterosexual privilege via the tagline: They want you, but not in a sexual
way hang on to your Johnson.3
The trend of sexualizing zombies is largely aimed at straight men.
Both the Adult Swim Flash Game Zombie Hooker Nightmare (2009) and
Edward Lees comic book Grubgirl (1997) depict only female zombie
prostitutes and heterosexual male patrons. Since 2000, the website zombiepinups.com, for instance, has drolly exhibited portraits of undead
vixens as gruesome sex symbols. Playfully evoking the iconography of
1950s pinup modeling as a dead form of pornography, these images
make light of the incongruity between cadavers and erotic photography.
More recently, the marketing for Nintendos Wii game ZombiU (2012)
utilized the same discrepancy in relation to contemporary glamour modeling. The print advertisement presents a model stripping off her bra,
accompanied by the leading question, Shes got a body to die for
wanna see? On turning the page, the viewer is greeted with an undead
version of the model (We did warn you). In both cases, humor arises
from a presumed incompatibility between rotting, animated corpses and
erotic desire. However, this maneuver involves treating zombies as sex
objects by placing them in contexts typically associated with the sexual
objectication of women. Zombies become a logical extension of the
visual tropes and practices of looking that render womens bodies as frag-

Zombie Sex

11

mented objects of male desire. Zombie Strippers! (2008), for instance,


presents the undead in a context synonymous with heterosexual male
voyeuristic desire.4 In this case, the living clients respond to the zombie
dancers with greater enthusiasm than they do the living ecdysiasts. In
this case, the zombies are treated as sex symbols in their own right,
being dubbed beautiful by the customers who summarily reject the
living strippers.
Such interchanges between sexual voyeurism and zombies throw
doubt over the presumed lines between disgusting and desirable. The
decaying corpse epitomizes disgust (Menninghaus 1).5 In usurping living
bodies that are indicative of conventional sexiness and debunking the
structures that institutionalize those conventions, the apparently
dichotomous division between desire and disgust becomes blurry at
best. This ideological collapse is not just concerned with why some bodies are deemed un/desirable, but also the desirers motives. In some
recent lms such as Doghouse (2009), gender difference is hypostatized
as a binary opposition: all females are transformed into esh hungry
ghouls who attack the living (men). In Stripperland (2011) a similar division is created, with an added degree of sexualization: women are transformed into undead strippers. What is notable in these cases is not male
heterosexual dominance, however. These lms depict sexual objectication as both oppressive and absurd. The notion that heterosexual men
might see all women as mindless strippers is a damning indictment of
the former rather than the latter. In these casesparticularly in Doghousemen that stubbornly stick to sexual stereotyping are painted as
laughable. At best, such men are ill-equipped to survive the onset of
change. At worst, such men are limned as more monstrous than the
anthropophagic cadavers that threaten them.
Numerous lms take the logic of objectication further by depicting
human heterosexual men using female zombies as sexual receptacles.
The lm Deadgirl (2008), for instance, portrays a group of ordinary
young heterosexual men who become xated on sexually violating an
imprisoned female zombie (see Jones, Gender Monstrosity). Such fantasies are stark reections of prevalent desires and fears at the outset of
the 21st century: an era in which consumption is deeply tied to sexualized desires for control, and in which necrophilic extreme pornography
has been the subject of legal enquiry (see Aggrawal 180; Attwood and
Smith 178). In cases such as Deadgirl, however, the zombie is not a monster: the undeads blankness evokes powerlessness. In contrast, the
human males are ghoulish abusers. Being associated with sexual

12

Introduction

deviancy (Downing 168; Canter and Wentink 491; Gutierrez and GinerSorolla 85455), necrophilia underscores how morally disgusting the
males actions are. Harmes and Cooks essays in this volume offer
nuanced dissections of this necrophilic dynamic. It should also be noted
that zombies are not always victims of sexual violence. In The Necro Files
(1997) and its sequel (2003), and Rape Zombie: Lust of the Dead (2012),
for example, zombies rape the living. In these cases, zombies are portrayed as sexually active beings whose cravings for living esh are not
limited to anthropophagy.

Queer Eye for the Dead Guy


Even when it is straight, then, sex between zombies and humans is
inherently queer. Elsewhere, the gures involved are queer. Queer interventions in zombie lore allegorize gay male sexuality run amok (often
humorously), but they also underscore the political potential represented
by zombie sexuality. A few examples include VidKid Timos parody At
Twilight Come the Flesh-Eaters (1998), Michael Simons Gay Zombie
(2007), and Chris Dianis campy homage to 1960s horror lms, Creatures
from the Pink Lagoon (2006). These lms all play with the idea that gay
male sex and mindless zombie hunger have something in common. In
Creatures, for example, a group of gay men at a beach house ght off a
group of undead gay men, who had become infected by radioactive mosquitos at a cruisy rest stop. Gay Zombie follows a gay zombie through
the difficulties of dating in the clonish West Hollywood scene. In both,
gay male sexuality is represented as comically repetitive, and a little
dumb. Creatures plays with stereotypes of gay man-eaters, while Gay
Zombie suggests that with the right attitude even the dead can t in
among Los Angeles clones.
Bruce LaBruces queer interventions offer other, more politically
engaged, perspectives, which are probed at length by Darren ElliottSmith in this volume (see also McGlotten; McGlotten and VanGundy).
In Otto; Or, Up with Dead People (2008) and L.A. Zombie (2008), the
Canadian independent lmmaker upends the zombie mythos. In these
lms, the zombies are gay outsiders for whom their zombie difference is
gured as a queerness that is at once enlivening and deadening. In Otto,
the titular character is a young amnesiac zombie, who is new to his
undeath. His existential quest for an identity brings him into contact with
Medea Yarn, an experimental lmmaker who is completing a political-

Zombie Sex

13

pornographic lm about gay zombies called Up with Dead People. Yarn


is intrigued by Ottos authenticityalthough she (like the viewer) is
unsure whether he really is a zombie or just a messed up kidand
decides to make a documentary about him, a study of alienated queer
difference. In Yarns lm, an explicitly gay zombie army rises up to combat the banalities of late capitalism and deadened living. Ottos own
quest is less revolutionary or dramatic, however. Rather than discovering
his will-to-power, Otto models forms of impersonal subjectivity that
refuse the lure of a destructive jouissance or the revolutionary multitude.
All living beings seem like the same person to him, a person he doesnt
like very much. In the end, Otto opts out, enacting what Halberstam
(The Queer Art of Failure) and others have dubbed a queer politics of
refusal, leaving Berlin to head north, hoping to discover a whole new
way of death. In Darren Elliott-Smiths reading, Otto provides LaBruce
with a means to critique both the violence of homophobia and the bourgeois homonormativity of contemporary gay cultures. Otto himself is a
fundamentally ambivalent character, and one who serves to satirize gay
male sexual politics of top/bottomhe is both an object and a reluctant
consumer.
L.A. Zombie (2010) likewise presents a gay zombie protagonist,
although this lm is explicitly sexual, co-produced by porn companies
Wurstlm and Dark Alley Media. In L.A. Zombie, an alien zombie rises
from the Pacic Ocean and then roams through Los Angeles violent
sexual underworld. Again, LaBruce upends zombie conventions. In this
lm, the zombie is a lone wanderer who re-animates rather than devours
his objects of desire. He seems less motivated by a consuming hunger
(for sex or brains) than by a melancholic and compassionate desire to
undo the effects of violence. When he encounters a dead young man,
their sexual congress and specically his black, oil-like ejaculate brings
him back to life. In L.A. Zombie, LaBruce extends his critique of gay
culture as dead or boring, and he also ambivalently offers sex as both
effect and remedy to what queer critics like Lisa Duggan have called the
new homonormativity (The Twilight of Equality?), a gay culture rooted
in an assimilationist ethos and oriented toward consumption and domesticity. Sex, LaBruce suggests, is one possible route toward an aesthetic
and political reanimation of gay culture. Yet Elliott-Smith also underlines
the lms critique of gay male sexual publics, which values hypermasculine forms as yet another capitalist meat byproduct. The sexual politics of gay zombies may be as alienating as they are empowering.
In her essay for this book, Cathy Hannabach likewise offers a skep-

14

Introduction

tical queer reading of zombies. Bringing a queer disability studies


approach to The Walking Dead, Hannabach argues that the show consistently presents ableist and heteronormative views of embodiment,
sex, and sociality. Yet she also takes pleasure in one of its characters;
indeed, she identies a radical queer crip potentiality in Michonne, a
butch black woman, who destabilizes the shows otherwise conservative
moralizing. Max Thornton nds equally radical potential in an alternative and unlikely gure: Jesus Christ. Drawing on contemporary secular
meme culture, Thornton explores the queer potential arising from evoking Christ in potentially blasphemous ways, beginning with comparison
between Christs miraculous resurrection into immortality and zombie
undeadness. This comparison has been underlined elsewhere by several
lmmakers, including Daniel Heisel ( Jesus H. Zombie [2006]), Christopher Bryan (The Zombie Christ [2012]), and self-proclaimed King of
the B-Movies Bill Zebub (Zombiechrist [2010]), who depicts a skeletal
Christ engaging in sexual activity. The latter revels in offensiveness, but
Zebubs comparison between Christ and zombie affronts because it
queers constructed reverential hierarchies. The undead are especially
apt as a conduit for such deconstruction precisely because they disturb
the presumed life-death dichotomy.

Necrosexuality
Death is the great leveler of socio-political differences. The zombie
is the leveler of desires. It is not that humans who objectify zombies are
singled-out as perverts in these lms, but that all human desires are
aberrant. Just as there is no line between living and dead in zombie texts,
the constructed lines between normal and deviant desires fail.
The result is a kind of sexual freedom that manifests in two ways.
First, zombies invade locales associated with sexual license: for example,
in Zombies! Zombies! Zombies! (2008), the living dead attack a stripclub. In this case, the strip-club is transformed into a sanctuary from
the zombie-outbreak. Once the zombies invade, the location is devoid
of sex: that is, it is free from the constructed (and limited) anthropocentric vision of sex it previously stood for. Second, the zombies carnal
hedonism is not limited to specic locations or even body parts. During
the zombie invasion, all spaces and all esh are subject to the zombies
passion. The implication is that zombies cravings are not bound by the
restrictions placed on human sexual freedom, be they fears regarding

Zombie Sex

15

STIs, or the limitations of ones sexual identity. Zombie sexuality incites


dystopian destruction of civilization as we know it, but that means opening up a sexual world that is distinctly utopian: of sexual citizenship as
it could be.
Given these thematic strands, it is little wonder that the logical
home for zombie sexuality is in the realm of pornography, the separated
utopia of sexual pleasure as Linda Williams famously termed it (Hard
Core 164). For Williams, harm is not part of porns lexis because all
action contributes to sexual pleasure within porns diegesis, even if the
acts depicted would be considered harmful outside of that context. In
zombie-themed porn, living participants (performed) pain does not
inhibit the undead in their quest for carnal satisfaction. Indeed, in the
porn context, their counterparts suffering is of no concern; either the
living nd pleasure in the violence inicted on them, or their pain is
swiftly passed over (and thereby negated) in these texts. For example,
porn texts such as Night of the Giving Head (2008) include (contrived)
genital mastication sequences, but the zombies destructive behaviors
do not halt the texts ow. Zombie porn amplies both the hedonism
and harm (real and imagined) that characterizes much contemporary
pornography. In doing so, a post-human, necrosexual space is created,
one in which sexual fantasy (as we understand it) is made stranger, and
in which agency and pleasure are radically recongured.
The zombie-porn crossover manifests in numerous ways. First, various horror lms such as Horno (2009) and Porn Star Zombies (2009)
depict sexually active zombies performing within the porn industry, but
do so without offering genitally explicit images. Second, several zombiehorror lms feature performers who are primarily associated with hardcore porn lmmaking. Bloodlust Zombies (2011, starring Alexis Texas)
and Swamp Zombies (2005, starring Jasmine St. Claire) are just two
examples. These lms also do not contain explicit sex. Third, a number
of hardcore porn lms offer genitally explicit images of zombies engaging
in sex, either with the living, or with other zombies. Although Jamie
Russell (134) pegs zombie porn as being rooted in Joe DAmatos early
1980s lms, there has been a signicant boom in zombie porn since the
n de sicle, represented by lms such as Dawna of the Dead (2008) and
the 2005 lm adaptation of Edward Lees comicbook GrubGirl. In these
cases, the zombies are not just sex objects: they clearly express their
own forms of sexual desire. Moreover, since humans and zombies frequently engage in sexual congress with one another in these lms, the
living are infected by the zombies necrosexuality.

16

Introduction

In her essay, Laura Helen Marks offers a detailed examination of


the zombies incursion into hardcore porn. Comparing two types of
undeadnessvampirism and zombidomMarks observes that the zombies physical abjectness does not disturb pornographic desire as we
might initially presume; bodily uids, for example, are prevalent in hardcore movies. Rather, porno-zombies have the potential to queer in the
hardcore context because they highlight that porns female subjects are
not passive in the way that zombies are, and that female porn performers
are reputed to be. As Marks argues, hetero-hardcore customarily centralizes highly ritualized performances of female sexual agency. Moreover, porns female zombies offer an alternative to the routine
performances of sexuality typically offered in hardcore movies. Even in
their passiveness then, porno-zombies have a unique kind of sexual identity. Subsequently, they offer new forms of sexual fantasy for audiences.
That same trend towards zombies attaining sexual identity is evident in non-pornographic horror lms, as part of the zombies broader
blossoming into subjectivity since the mid1980s. Just as zombie porn
has blurred the lines between human desire and the zombies sexual
freedom, zombie horror has portrayed sex as a transition point. Several
lms depict sex as a bridge between life (constructed, constricted) and
death (free). For instance, in Dance of the Dead (2008), nerdy protagonist
Steven is infected by popular cheerleader Gwen, who bites him as they
kiss. Posthumously, the pair pursue their assignation, biting and scratching each other. As the last act they engage in while alive and the rst
they engage in post-death, sex is the bridge that frees these characters
from lifes limiting social structures. The hierarchy that separated
themthe difference between cheerleader and nerdis divested of
meaning, attesting to their freedom. An extra-diegetic pop-rock love
song conrms that their newfound desire is cause for celebration. The
soundtrack legitimates Steven and Gwens zombie-loving by evoking the
euphonic crescendos of conventional romantic lms. Although arguably
that juxtaposition of romantic convention and unconventional
(grotesque) love may be humorous, it stems from powerfully destabilizing established expectations.
All of these forms of necrosexuality provide a hideous mirror via
which to perceive humanity. Having once been alive, the undead are
similar enough to the living to be reective of human desire. Simultaneously, because they are different to the livingbeing alive yet dead
the zombie is divergent enough to render those desires strange. Zombie
sexuality is akin to human experience of sex because it is of the body,

Zombie Sex

17

although the zombie-body has a different set of capacities and limitations


compared with human embodiment. The zombie body is incapable of
sustaining sexuality as we know it. That is most clear in lms where
the living dead seek to engage in the same sexual activities they enacted
while alive, but are incapable of doing so because their rotting bodies
fail. For example, I, Zombie: The Chronicles of Pain (1998) reveals one
reason why there are so few instances of zombie-masturbation in the
history of cinema: the undead protagonists penis falls off while he pleasures himself.
The creative and frequently disturbing inversions of the zombie
mythos offered in portrayals of zombie sexuality are an important point
of departure for the subgenre. The visions of zombidom discussed above
and in the rest of this volume all re-envisage the zombie as lively rather
than lifeless. In its various manifestations, the zombie queers notions of
agency, identity, and sex acts themselves, productively troubling the
ways in which gender, race, and ability constellate around animate hierarchies (Chen). Sex is no longer, if it ever was, a measure of ones vitality,
while death does not bring carnal desire to an end.

Notes
1. On zombie liminality, miscegenation, and interracial identity, see Ponder.
2. In a similar vein, both Zombie Honeymoon (2004) and Zombie Marriage Counseling: Im a Lesbian (2009) question the validity of marriage as a til death do us
part union.
3. There are some notable foils to this trend. For example, Cupcake: A Zombie
Lesbian Musical (2010) features songs such as My Girlfriend Ate My Pussy, Literally and No Penis Between Us, which counter the heterosexual bias found elsewhere in the zombie canon.
4. For a detailed discussion of various recent zombie lms set in and around stripclubs, see Jones XXXombies.
5. For an extended discussion on zombie sexuality and disgust, see Jones,
XXXombies.

This page intentionally left blank

Take, Eat,
These Are My Brains
Queer Zombie Jesus
Max Thornton
In 2013, I received a Facebook invitation to a Zombie BBQ: This
Sunday is Easter, which is basically a day where we celebrate the existence of zombies. Celebrate by eating meat that isnt braaaaaains at my
house. San Franciscos Sisters of Perpetual Indulgence held a Zombie
Christ Haunted House fundraiser for Easter weekend 2013, inviting visitors to travel through the disco inferno where aming queers practice
their delightful sinning; Survive the ghastly church with its soulconsuming pope; Feast with disciples at the zombie last supper! (Faetopia Crew). Meanwhile, a quick Google search for Zombie Jesus yields
a robust 15 million results, including Zombie Jesus Lives! (zombiejesus. com), ZombieJesusDay.org, and Ira Hunters short lm Corpus
Delecti (The Passion of Zombie Jesus, 2009)all these on the rst page
alone.
The Internet phenomenon of Zombie Jesus is largely a joke, propelled by social media users enjoying the cheeky blasphemy of wishing
each other a happy Zombie Jesus Day on Easter Sunday. But could
there be wider social and theological implications? I suggest that, when
viewed through a queer theology lens, Zombie Jesus can be seen as a
queer religious gure who bridges between secular Internet culture and
Christianity.
Queer theology is a relatively young discipline, but queer gurations
of Jesus have abounded for most of Christian history. The fourteenth19

20

Zombies and Sexuality

century mystic Julian of Norwich wrote passionately about Jesus as


Mother, endlessly giving birth to us. Renaissance artwork depicting Jesus
body is fairly bursting with homoeroticism: Michelangelos Cristo della
Minerva, Marattis Flagellation of Christ, and Signorellis Resurrection
of the Flesh are but three artworks that exemplify the exquisitely detailed
male nudity offered by artists of the period. Early twentieth-century
attempts to portray Jesus as a ruggedly masculine gure of physical
toughness and sharp business acumen were a direct reaction to a
nineteenth-century Christ popularly associated with traditionally feminine characteristics such as tenderness and sentimentality (see
Prothero).
What is new in queer theology is not the act of queering Jesus as
such, but the conscious employment of analytical tools taken from secular queer theory: a deconstructionist methodology, a critical focus on
subjectivity and embodiment, and a dedication to problematizing the
gender binary (Cornwall 27). By using these three analytical tools in
relation to Zombie Jesus, we can construct the gure of Queer Zombie
Jesus as a site for theological engagement with embodiment, gender, and
sexuality in a contemporary context. Queer Zombie Jesus is an example
of what Marcella Althaus-Reid calls indecent theology: the intersection
of queer theory and sexuality with the social and economic justice movement of liberation theology. In particular, it is an obscene Jesus, an
image that shocks the sensibilities of mainstream Christological discourse by uncovering what has long been suppressed through the use
of familiar images of Jesus (Althaus-Reid 110124). This is an obscene
Christ for an Internet age, crossing discourses to provide a stimulus to
critical thought and liberatory action in both Christian and secular circles.
The rst part of this essay will summarize three key areas of
Christian theology which are relevant to the popular conception of
the zombie: resurrection immortality, the Eucharistic consumption of
esh, and the corporate identity of the Church. The second part will
consider the nature of the Zombie Jesus meme, and will proceed to
examine how Zombie Jesus queers each of these theological elds.
Finally, I will suggest that Queer Zombie Jesus bridges between the
meta/physical worlds of Christianity and the web, acting as both exemplar of equality and stimulus toward justice, especially for sexual minorities.

Take, Eat, These Are My BrainsThornton

21

Theological Backgrounds
In 1968, George A. Romero and John Russo codied the zombie as
we currently understand it. Prior to the release of Night of the Living
Dead, the zombie was a footnote in movie monster lore, an oddity of
racist colonial fears of Haitian witchery. In lms such as White Zombie
(1932) and I Walked with a Zombie (1941), zombies were mindless slaves,
controlled by drugs and/or voodoo, with no autonomy or will. Such
zombies were alive, but appeared to be the walking dead. Romero and
Russos script took this one step further: their zombies really were the
walking dead, but what drove their actions was not a voodoo master but
the primal, cannibalistic urge to feast on human esh. With 1985s Return
of the Living Dead, the zombies tastes were narrowed to the human
brain specically, which is often the meal of choice for todays zombies.
By the time of the twenty-rst centurys pop-culture zombie boom,
which was launched in large part by Capcoms wildly popular videogame
series Resident Evil and Zack Snyders 2004 Dawn of the Dead remake,
the zombie had been cemented in the public imagination according to
Romeros specications: a walking corpse that eats human esh and has
no will or mind of its own (see Russell).
Romeros Catholic upbringing (Tony Williams 90) may have stimulated his creation of the esh-eating zombie (and Christian imagery is
certainly heavily pervasive in the European zombie movies of the 1970s
made by Lucio Fulci, Amando de Ossorio, and others). The three core
characteristics of the Romero/Russo zombie represent nightmarish
inversions of three central theological tenets of Christian faith, which
manifest in practices drawn from the life and death (and undeath) of
Jesus. Each of these three tenets carries within it an undercurrent of
profoundly embodied eshliness, which is important to the graphically
physical gure of Queer Zombie Jesus. Fleshliness denotes a fundamental, ineradicable tie to material reality and the physical bodies through
which our entire perception thereof is mediated, as Merleau-Ponty
pointed out and queer theory continues to emphasize. The spiritualizing
tendency of Christian theological history has often belied this eshliness,
but it is inescapable in a religion that stresses Gods bodily incarnation,
bodily death, bodily resurrection, and bodily continuity through the
Church. After all, the metaphysical need not be the non-physical, but
rather the physical-and-also-beyond-physical (the meta/physical). A
compelling analogy to this meta/physical nature of Christian eshliness
is found in the increasingly virtual lives of our Internet age, which I will

22

Zombies and Sexuality

discuss more fully at the end of this essay. The zombie, and especially
Queer Zombie Jesus recovers strains of eshliness for the contemporary
meta/physical world.

Resurrection Immortality
The Nicene Creed of 325 CE , still one of the foundational declarations of Christian faith and still recited in some churches every Sunday,
states: We look for the resurrection of the dead, and the life of the world
to come (Episcopal Church 327). This resurrection is associated with
eschatological transformation, with a world to come which will be different from this one and yet have continuity with it. Just as the new
earth of Johns vision in Revelation (21:1) is a world transformeda
world that has some recognizable similarities with the old earth but
which arises out of the latters passing awayso the resurrected dead
of Christian eschatological hope are revolutionized re-creations of their
old selves.
The pattern for this balance of continuity and dramatic change is,
of course, the resurrected Christ himself. Examples of the continuities
between the pre- and post-resurrection Jesus include the ability to eat,
tangible materiality, visibility, audibility, and some form of physical continuity enabling him to be recognized as the same person. However,
Jesus resurrection is qualitatively different from the miracles he performed in the raising of Jairus daughter (Luke 8:4056 and parallels)
or Lazarus (John 11). These resuscitations restore the deceased to their
former state, whereas the revived Jesus is somehow new.
For example, although it is possible for Jesus to be recognized, this
does not happen immediately. Both Luke and John report rst encounters with the risen Christ wherein his closest friends are unable to recognize him until Jesus himself takes a decisive action (giving the disciples
bread in Luke 24:30; addressing Mary by name in John 20:16). Christs
resurrected body is both like and unlike his pre-resurrection body. He
is not a ghost: he can be touched (Luke 24:39), he can eat (Luke 24:42),
he bears the physical marks of his painful and ignominious death (John
20:20). And yet he can vanish and reappear at will (Luke 24:31, 36), and
he can pass through locked doors (John 20:19, 26).
Of course, the Gospel accounts are distinctly lacking in concrete
physical descriptions of the resurrected (or, indeed, the pre-resurrection)
Christ, and as such the writings of the church fathers on resurrection bodies are rife with the wildest speculation. The few New Testament passages

Take, Eat, These Are My BrainsThornton

23

addressing this topic are vague enough to be interpreted in almost any


way one might choose: there is a much-debated contrast in 1 Corinthians
15:4245 between psuchikon and pneumatikon bodies1; there is some
confused imagery of tents and clothing in 2 Corinthians 5:14; there is
the famous line in Galatians 3:28, There is no longer Jew or Greek, there
is no longer slave or free, there is no longer male and female; there is
Jesus assertion in Mark 12:25 that when they rise from the dead, they
neither marry nor are given in marriage, but are like angels in heaven.2
On this slender basis, Augustine, for one, proposed that the resurrected bodies of believers would be perfected: all scars and blemishes
would be removed, and everyone would be beautiful, whole, and in their
absolute physical prime (Augustine 22.18.20).3 Augustines deep concerns around such questions as whether an aborted fetus will be raised
(Augustine 22.13) might seem quaintly ridiculous to us now, but it is
relevant to the forthcoming discussion of Queer Zombie Jesus that he
also addresses the problem that seems most difficult of all, the question
to whom a body will be restored at the resurrection when it has become
part of the body of another living man[, who] under compulsion of the
last straits of starvation eats human corpses (Augustine 22.20). Happily,
Augustine reports that all esh will ultimately be restored to its rightful
owner in its original condition.
The consumption of another persons esh might be forgiven and
restored in the eternal life of the resurrection, but there is one persons
esh that must be consumed in order to attain resurrection immortality.
This is, of course, the esh of Jesus in the form of the Eucharistic bread.

The Eucharistic Consumption of Flesh


Jesus said to them, Very truly, I tell you, unless you eat the esh
of the Son of Man and drink his blood, you have no life in you. Those
who eat my esh and drink my blood have eternal life, and I will raise
them up on the last day; for my esh is true food and my blood is true
drink (John 6:5355). The challenging nature of this instruction does
not escape comment in the Bible: When many of his disciples heard it,
they said, This teaching is difficult; who can accept it? (John 6:60).
Those Roman contemporaries who accused early Christians of cannibalism clearly found the practice wholly unacceptable (MacCulloch 159).
The Christian practice of Eucharist (Communion, the Lords Supper) is instituted by Jesus in the Synoptic Gospelsthose of Matthew,
Mark, and Lukewith some slight variations on the familiar words:

24

Zombies and Sexuality

Take[, eat]; this is my body (Matt. 26:26; Mark 14:22; Luke 22:19);
This cup that is poured out for you is the new covenant in my blood
(Matt. 26:28; Mark 14:24; Luke 22:20). Johns Gospel, while lacking an
explicit narrative of Eucharistic institution, features an extended theological discourse, commonly referred to as the Bread of Life discourse,
in chapter 6, as well as employing the imagery of ingesting Jesus
throughout (see Webster). Eucharistic liturgies draw directly from Pauls
words in 1 Corinthians 11:2325: the Lord Jesus, on the night when he
was betrayed, took a loaf of bread, and when he had given thanks, he
broke it and said, This is my body that is for you. Do this in remembrance of me. In the same way he took the cup also, after supper, saying,
This cup is the new covenant in my blood. Do this, as often as you drink
it, in remembrance of me. As a common thread running through all
four Gospels, the Pauline epistles, and nearly two millennia of Christian
liturgy, this idea of eating Jesus esh in the bread of the Eucharist is a
powerful, lasting, and singular aspect of Christian theology.4
In John particularly, eating Jesus esh is directly linked with life,
eternal life, and resurrection into immortality. Like the undead zombie
who must eat the esh of the living, the Christian believer must eat the
esh of Jesus in order to be resurrected to eternal life. It is noteworthy
that, whereas the rst Romero zombie to rise bestows the immortality
of the undead upon others by eating their esh, the resurrected Jesus
bestows immortality on his followers through their consumption of his
esh. This important difference will become apparent in the discussion
of Queer Zombie Jesus later in this essay. For now, though, I wish to
consider in more detail the meaning of eating Jesus esh.
The different grades of understanding Christs presence in the
Eucharist are well-known: transubstantiation, the Catholic understanding whereby the substance of the bread and wine are changed into the
body and blood of Christ; consubstantiation, the Lutheran notion of the
coexistence of bread and wine with body and blood; memorialism, associated with Zwingli, in which the Lords Supper functions solely as a
memorial of Jesus (see McKim). For much of Christian history, the two
higher theologies of the Eucharist have tended to prevail, and for many
believers the sacrament of the Eucharist has conveyed the real presence
of Jesus in one form or another.
For many medieval Christians, in fact, the Eucharist was imbued
with an assortment of mystical properties. Miraculous stories circulated
of pious women whose nutritional needs were completely sated by the
weekly Eucharistic host. The bread transformed into the body of Christ

Take, Eat, These Are My BrainsThornton

25

was considered to be the site of immense power, where the heavenly


and the demonic could explode into a war of conicting powers (Camporesi 225). The Eucharist is the locus of permeability between the
realms of the mundane and the supernal, a site of preternatural potentiality, instantiated in what Graham Ward calls the ontological scandal
of the is in Jesus statement, This is my body (see Ward). The identication of bread with body is the rst scandal; the intake of Gods holy
body into the digestive tract is another scandal, perhaps even a real
trauma (Camporesi 228) for the believer who must accept the reality of
the divine esh into the graphically physical human stomach and bowels.
There is even a sexual resonance to the Eucharist. Food and sex are
generally connected in the sense that both are associated with satisfying
bodily cravings (see Norman Brown 16275). However, the specic language of the liturgy carries other sexual connotations; the intake of the
sacramental bread and wine unites believers into the corporate (communal) identity of Christs body, the Church.

The Corporate Identity of the Church


The sexual element of the Eucharistic liturgy lies in the allusive language around the ideas of union and esh or body. Genesis 2:24 states
that a man leaves his father and his mother and clings to his wife, and
they become one esh. Paul quotes this verse in 1 Corinthians 6:1617,
to compare the sexual union of two individuals into one esh with the
spiritual union of God and believer into one spirit. The spiritual union
does not exclude but encompasses the eshly or bodily dimension: Paul
exhorts believers to glorify God in your body (1 Corinthians 6:20).
It is not only God with whom the believer is physically, almost
sexually, united, but also the Church as a whole, in all of its members.
Like the couple who in sexual union become one esh, the members
of the Church who are many are one body, for we all partake of the one
bread (1 Corinthians 10:17). In the Eucharistic consumption of Christs
esh, which leads to eternal life in the resurrection, all believing individuals are united into the corporate identity of the Church as a common
body.
This communal identity is described in remarkably physical, eshly
terms. 1 Corinthians 12:1231 develops an extended image of the Church
as the body of Christ, stressing in particular the many and varied parts
that make up a human body, as well as the interdependence of all the
parts of the body (Ciampa and Rosner 589). C.K. Barrett notes that,

26

Zombies and Sexuality

while [t]he metaphor of the body, used to describe a group of men [sic]
who have common interests and activities, was not infrequent in antiquity, Pauls innovation lies in the description of the Church as the body
of Christ (Barrett 236). The Church is identied with the specic, physical body of Christthe same body that is consumed in the Eucharist.
In this way there is an element of autophagy, a self-cannibalization that
takes place in the Eucharistic action of the Church. Yet this is not
destructive cannibalization, but a productive and life-giving ritual, more
fertile than any sexual union.
The image of the Church as the body of Christ, with the individuals
as the various body parts and Christ himself as the head, is not a direct
one-to-one analogy; for the analogy breaks down both as the body consumes itself in the Eucharist and as the Church recognizes the absence
of the physical body of Christ in the eschatological hope of the parousia
or Second Coming. The Church both is and is not the actual body of
Christ. Neo-orthodox theologian Karl Barth stresses that the individuals
who comprise the Church do not do so in the same way as so many
cells are united into one living organism (Barth 441), but rather as a
kind of ontological oneness in which believers participate in the unity
of God without sacricing their individuality: They are not a mass of
individuals, nor even a corporation, a personied society, or a totality,
but The Individual, The One, The New Man (1 Cor. Xii.12, 13) (Barth
443).
In the same way that the spiritual union of God and believer does
not oppose physical union but encompasses it, the oneness of corporate
identity in the Church does not contrast with individuality but embraces
and includes it. The community of the Church does not swallow up
the individual, nor obscure his or her uniqueness and unique contribution, nor take away individual freedom by assimilating it to the
collective will (LaCugna 229). This is, of course, exactly the opposite
of the mindless zombie, enslaved to its basest instincts. Sadly, all too
often the members of the Church succumb to uncritical dogmatism
and enforced conformity to a narrow set of norms, condemning and
erasing the diversity of individualsespecially sex and gender diversity.
Perhaps by recognizing the similarities between the unthinking singleminded focus of zombies and the oneness of the Church, Christians can
gain a heightened self- critical awareness and seek to maximize the
contrast between the diverse-yet-united body the Church is supposed
to be and the mindlessly assimilated brain-eating zombie it too often
resembles.

Take, Eat, These Are My BrainsThornton

27

Zombie Jesus
In Christian faith, then, the themes of resurrection immortality, the
consumption of esh, and corporate identity play important roles. These
themes are also crucial in dening contemporary movie zombies.
Despite manifesting in very different ways both zombie movie and faithbased articulations of these themes have similarly wide-reaching social
and theological implications.
The zombies of Night of the Living Dead rise from their graves for
no readily apparent reason. News channel speculation about radiation
is kept in the lms background, and zombie lmmakers following in
Night of the Living Deads footsteps have rarely been interested in
detailed or even remotely plausible explanations for the presence of
undead ghouls. The ultimate cause of reanimation is of little consequence to the embattled characters who are simply trying to survive in
the face of unrelenting threat. Unlike other popular monsters such as
vampires or werewolves, zombies are uninhibited by sunlight or lunar
phases. Their immortality is not a state actively achieved so much as a
failure to give in to physical decay (a fear increasingly relevant in a world
where human lifespans are being extended beyond the capacity of the
human body to remain healthy and whole). Zombies resurrection is no
divine gift of eternal life, but a nightmarish twistlike that of the everaging, never- dying Tithonus in Greek mythologyor perhaps even
divine punishment: as the televangelist says in Snyders Dawn of the
Dead, When theres no more room in hell, the dead will walk the earth.
Their cannibalism is similarly monstrous, a multivalent symbol for all
the ways in which humans turn on one another, such as the bitter inghting that beleaguers most every group of survivors in a zombie lm. It is
this same unthinking participation in social structures that is made monstrous in the corporate identity of the zombies, whose individual wills
are subsumed to an irresistible hunger, offer a neat metaphor for the
mob mentality that can sweep people into group hysteria, and can lead
to non-reexive participation in social (even systemic) injustices.
A queer-theory analysis of Zombie Jesus illuminates such systemic
social and psychological issues. Horror lms ability to tap into the unrestricted id has made it a fruitful target for queer, feminist, and disability
theorists (for example see Benshoff; Clover; Angela Smith), and Queer
Zombie Jesus can unite these social critiques of popular culture and
entertainment with social critiques of religion.
My Queer Zombie Jesus paradigm is not based on any one specic

28

Zombies and Sexuality

incarnation of Zombie Jesus out of the many found online, but rather
an amalgam of various iterations that elucidate how Jesus differs from
established norms of contemporary zombidom. One example is an argument that appears to have begun circulating in this specic form around
Easter 2012, suggesting that Jesus was not a zombie but a lich (a type of
undead creature popularized by the role-playing game Dungeons & Dragons). Another is a picture of Good Guy Jesus, which plays on the popular meme Good Guy Greg. Good Guy Greg is an image macro of a
smiling, smoking man, accompanied by captions describing acts of kindness or generosity. Good Guy Jesus replaces the mans face with a popular depiction of Jesus, captioned: Is a zombie; lets you eat his esh.
In what follows, I analyze various ways in which Queer Zombie
Jesus problematizes the three social and theological elds of resurrection
immortality, the consumption of esh, and corporate identity. Queer
Zombie Jesus deconstructs binaries imposed on these three elds by
Western philosophical categoriesparticularly mind/body dualismin
order to recover and redeem the eshliness at their core. Transgressing
and inverting the norms serves to constantly challenge our understanding of them. Such destabilization allows us to probe and query identity
categories, particularly gender and sexuality, and the boundaries of identity. Zombie narratives conventionally caution against human greed and
selshness, which is hypostatized as monstrous Otherness. Queer Zombie Jesus instead invites us to see the divine in the monstrous Other and
to join ourselves with it in embodied, eshly, sexual consumption, in a
redemptive tale of love and self-giving.

Queering Resurrection Immortality


Jesus and zombies have in common the most basic ideas of resurrection (rising from the dead; often literally from the grave) and immortality (indenite or eternal life). However, the details and implications
of these shared tropes are wildly divergent. After all, eternal life in Christ
is consistently presented as good and desirable, whereas the eternal
undeath of a zombieunlike the vampires more seductive existence
is invariably portrayed as unpleasant and undesirable. Zombies are subject to defeat through their physical dismemberment, but Christians
believe that Jesus and his resurrected followers cannot die a second time.
The bodies of zombies rot and fall apart even as they keep shuffling
onward; the risen Christ not only retains his bodily integrity, but obtains
some new physical abilities.

Take, Eat, These Are My BrainsThornton

29

Zombie Jesus deconstructs the sharp distinctions between undeadness and Christian resurrection by drawing them together into a single
gure. Zombie Jesus is the zombie that does not rot and the Jesus that
does. The simultaneous is and is not of Zombie Jesus recalls the practice
of negative theology, most famously practiced by medieval mystic Meister Eckhart, which seeks to radicalize ones understanding of characteristics attributed to God by negating them. For the one who believes that
God is good, the statement God is not good means that God is so radically, cosmically, surpassingly good that the human denition of good,
bounded as it is by the limits of human understanding, cannot apply to
the Supreme Being (see Eckhart). In the same way, Zombie Jesus dees
and expands human understandings of what it means to be immortal
and incorruptible (1 Corinthians 15:53). Excessive focus on the afterlife
can reduce Christian faith to a Pascals Wager, a get-out-of-jail-free card
for death, a basely transactional conception of salvation that diminishes
the whole notion of divinity and transcendence. Imagining oneself and
ones savior as shambling rotting corpses can enable Christians to interrogate their own motivations in having faith, and perhaps to recalibrate
the transactional soteriology that ultimately underpins our present
global economy in all of its injustices (see Grau).
Moreover, Queer Zombie Jesus challenges and rejects Cartesian
mind-body dualism and the sex- and body-negativity that results. Following Hegel, for whom the resurrection was not bodily but representative of a translation to spiritual presence (Hodgson 175), Christians
sometimes have a tendency to spiritualize or allegorize resurrection.
Unlike the airily disembodied Jesus found in metaphorical readings of
faith, zombies are gruesomely physical. Thanks to special effects wizard
Tom Savini, the gore and eshy lth of decaying corpses are graphically
presented onscreen in Dawn of the Dead and Day of the Dead. Meanwhile some subsequent lmmakers positively revel in upping the ante
for zombie grotesquery; Peter Jacksons magnicent 1992 splatterfest
Braindead (Dead Alive in North America) is one superlative example.
Zombie Jesus depicts an embodied Christ with a vividness matched only
by Julian of Norwichs gross-out descriptions of her bloodiest visions:
the fair skin was very deeply broken, down into the tender esh, sharply
slashed all over the dear body; the hot blood ran out so abundantly that
no skin or wound could be seen, it seemed to be all blood. However,
whereas Julian describes Christs crucixion, Zombie Jesus radically
embodies the post-resurrection Christ. Even the most conservative sexand body-negative Christian audiences today still have an appetite for

30

Zombies and Sexuality

gore, as testied to by some evangelical leaders enthusiasm for Mel Gibsons notorious 2004 The Passion of the Christ (see Robinson). By transferring the obsessive focus on Christs body from his tortured death to
his resurrection, Zombie Jesus provides a more life-oriented, more productive, much less macabre outlet for this apparent psychological need.
Body-negative attitudes are often associated with the maintenance
of patriarchal, heterosexist norms, whereby the masculine, spiritual or
mental, heterosexual, cisgender, and so on are linked together and elevated over against the feminine, physical, queer, trans*, and other terms
in hierarchical binary oppositions. By rehabilitating the eshly physicality of the body within the context of Christian salvation and resurrection immortality, Zombie Jesus offers a doorway to the rehabilitation
of all the suppressed and denigrated aspects of bodily human existence.
Linking the object of Christian faith and devotion with the repulsive,
rotting monster provides a dramatic shock to the cultural categories of
sacred and secular. Rather than rejecting him in kneejerk horror, Christians who spend time considering Zombie Jesus could have their entire
sense of what is right or appropriate recalibrated, just as Jesus shocked
the religious sensibilities of faithful Jews in his own lifetime by spending
time with lepers and healing on the Sabbath. Queer Zombie Jesus makes
explicit the connection between Jesus acceptance of inappropriate
persons, and the need for contemporary religious institutions to accept
gender and sexual minorities.

Queering the Eucharistic Consumption of Flesh


The Eucharistic consumption of esh is perhaps the most complex
eld in terms of relating zombies with Jesus, as hereunlike resurrection
immortality and corporate identitythe role of Jesus and the role of his
followers differ. Only the followers eat Jesus esh; Jesus himself does
not eat anybodys esh, but he gives his esh to be eaten by others. All
zombies, on the other hand, eat human esh. In this instance, Christians
have more in common with zombies than Jesus himself does. After all,
zombies do not eat other zombies, only humans; so Christians do not eat
other Christians, only Jesus. To some extent, then, Christians are in this
case the monstrous Other. Zombie Jesus unites the self and the monstrous
Other, deconstructing the binary opposition that enables oppression and
hatred of the Other, including gender and sexual minorities.
Another nuance that constitutes a difference between zombies cannibalism and Christians Eucharist is the fact that eating esh appears

Take, Eat, These Are My BrainsThornton

31

to be an ongoing necessity for zombies. Many Christian denominations


repeat the sacrament of the Eucharist on a weekly or monthly basis, following Jesus instruction to do this as often as you drink it (1 Corinthians 11:25), but this is not necessary for salvation. Ingesting Jesus in the
sense of receiving his word, represented in the sacrament of baptism,
has a one-time salvic efficacy that does not need to be repeated. In
addition to this difference, the zombies anthropophagism is driven by
mindless instinct, but the Eucharist isor is supposed to bethe site
of powerful holy meaning for Christians.
The shocking juxtaposition of sacred and profane, zombie and
Jesus, consumer and consumed, drives home the radical nature of the
Eucharist, revivifying this dead metaphorRicoeurs term for an image
that has been so thoroughly absorbed into common usage that it can no
longer surprise (Ricoeur 52)for renewed appreciation and understanding. The central ideas of Christianity are so culturally pervasive in majority Christian cultures that they no longer seem shocking, but the
Eucharist presents a rather astonishing idea: that people are brought
into union with God through cannibalism. We are made holy through
an abhorrent act of profound transgression; a transgression, moreover,
with strong sexual overtones. To eat anothers esh is to dissolve the
boundary between self and other, to interiorize the other so completely
that they become a part of oneself. Queer Zombie Jesus reclaims that
sexual resonance through his strongly embodied nature, and calls for a
dramatic rethinking of that which is considered abhorrent, transgressive
or profane. For if holiness is found in deepest profanity, as life is found
in death, we are driven to ask where else we might nd holiness in places
the Church has traditionally considered profane?
In particular, Queer Zombie Jesus asks us to rehabilitate gender
and sexual minorities into the Church. Bodies that dissolve established
boundaries, bodies that transgress societal norms, bodies that consume
and are consumed in radical acts of self-giving love, are the very locus
of divine activity in Queer Zombie Jesus. We might dare to imagine
Queer Zombie Jesus as akin to the grotesquely copulating zombies of
Braindead and the zombie baby they create. Bringing forth life out of
death is, after all, what Christians claim that Jesus does. It seems absurd
to claim that sex and procreation should be inextricable, and to exclude
sexual minorities from Christianity on this basis, when the Christian
God disconnects procreation from sex by bringing forth life out of death.
If religion is to be of any use in the lives of those who cannot try, do not
want, and should not have to rise above the demands of eshly reality,

32

Zombies and Sexuality

those who ght for liberation and justice in this lifethen it must
change. Indecent theology represents the ongoing striving of some
religious believers for equality, despite centuries of attempts on the part
of the powerful to hinder the progress of liberal attitudes within organized religion. Trying to sever Christianity from secular, and particularly
queer, society does a disservice to both. If engaged mutually, secular and
Christian outlooks can cast light on one anothers failings and lead to selfcritical transformation: of secularism in the direction of transcendence,
of Christianity in the direction of contemporary relevance and justice.

Queering the Corporate Identity of the Church


In Romeros 1985 lm Day of the Dead, as Tony Williams observes,
[t]he advanced process of decay exhibited by the zombies in this lm
blurs every distinguishing boundary between male and female, black
and white, adult and child (Tony Williams 136). His words recall Pauls
statement in Galatians 3:28: There is no longer Jew or Greek, there is
no longer slave or free, there is no longer male and female; for all of you
are one in Christ Jesus. For both zombies and Christians, earthly distinctions and identity categories fall away, replaced by an overriding
common identity and the pursuit of a common goal. The zombie loses
all personality, characteristics, skills, wills, and desires, their place taken
by the overpowering hunger for human esh. Similarly, Pauls proclamation regarding the inclusive, equalizing power of Jesus love might
suggest that ones identity as a Christian takes priority over all other
identity attributes.
Contrary to this reading of Galatians, Christians retain all aspects
of their individuality, sometimes overwhelmingly. Zombie Jesus serves
as a potent reminder that no one is more or a better Christian than
another, no matter how talented or prominent they might be: as all are
equal in the face of death, all are equal in the eyes of God. Zombie Jesus
also presents the challenge that, if all the identity categories in which
we invest ourselves are nite and temporal, we might have to be prepared
to let them go. Identity politics too often reies the categories that it
recognizes as social constructs; by deconstructing these categories,
Zombie Jesus offers a way of thinking through the contradiction. Meanwhile, some Christians utilize the freedom of identity in Christ as an
argument against individual identities of which they disapprove. This
freedom is conceptualized solely as freedom from, erasing identities
which nonetheless continue to exist in social reality. A female Christian

Take, Eat, These Are My BrainsThornton

33

might be free from any gender bias before God, but she is still subject
to sexism in a misogynistic society. Erasing her identity as a woman in
order to emphasize her equality before God might have its theological
uses, but socially it is dangerous. The challenge, not to say impossibility,
of living in the world but not of it, is reied in Zombie Jesus, who is
an inherently contradictory gure.
Zombie Jesus is by denition a special zombie. He is identied as
a specic individual, which zombies by denition are not. He deconstructs this distinction, and he deconstructs exactly the zombication
that some forms of Christianity would seem to demand from his followers. Zombie Jesus is part of a corporate identity, but by denition he has
not lost his individuality as true zombies do. This is the model and the
challenge for faithful Christians, and more broadly for anyone living in the
world but trying to ght against the systems of oppression and injustice.
Acknowledging difference without making it insurmountable is one
of the great challenges of our era. Any person who belongs to a gender
or sexual (or racial or ethnic or disabled or other) minority can testify
to the frustration of both extremes; of either being treated as though
ones identity is entirely dened by difference, or as though ones minority status can be ignored or elided over completely. Queer Zombie Jesus
is a gure that transcends the two extremes. As a zombie, he is part of
an inherently communal identity in which his individuality disappears;
as Jesus, he remains an identiable individual with his own specic subjectivity. Queer Zombie Jesus exemplies community life in diversity
and difference, and so calls and challenges us to seek an end to the systemic injustices that suppress or exaggerate minority identities.
Gregory A. Waller suggests that Romeros zombies are the projection of our desire to destroy, to challenge the fundamental values of
America, and to bring the institutions of our modern society to a halt
(Waller 280). The systemic racism of the prison-industrial complex;
the exclusion of people of certain genders and sexualities from full
participation in social institutions; the suppression of developing countries economic growth by transnational corporations operating in the
interests of developed nations; drone strikes on foreign soilall of these
and other injustices of the world suggest that perhaps the fundamental
values of America should be challenged, perhaps modern social institutions need to be impeded. Queer Zombie Jesus is an obscene gure situated at the intersection of queer radicalism, popular secular culture,
and religious sensibility, uniting these elds into a call for dramatic
change.

34

Zombies and Sexuality

Queer Zombie Jesus


The foregoing recommendations for the role of Queer Zombie Jesus
as a gure to challenge and change Christians should not obscure the
fact that Zombie Jesus is primarily a construct of secular Internet culture. What can Queer Zombie Jesus offer the nonChristians who are
perhaps more likely to encounter him? Any theology that hopes to be
useful or relevant in the twenty-rst century must avail itself of secular
culture and expect to have a mutual relationship with it. The role of
Queer Zombie Jesus among Christians is to present institutional Christianity with some of the wisdom and even Godliness that is to be found
outside of the Churchwhat Tom Beaudoin terms the sensus indelium. The role of Queer Zombie Jesus among secular culture is to
rehabilitate Jesus among those who are not Christians, recovering him
from those who claim to speak for him.
Further, Queer Zombie Jesus hints at the Internets meta/physical
potential as a tool for liberation, self-actualization, and change. Though
often described and conceptualized as purely virtual, even as the opposite of real life, the online world is both physical and beyond-physical,
meta/physical. Individually, our digital lives are mediated and dened
by our physical bodies: ngers on the keyboard, eyes straining over a
backlit screen, repetitive strain injury and back problems resulting from
hours spent hunched and typing. Systemically, web access is dependent
on physical resources: computer, modem, Internet connection, education in computer literacy, and of course money to pay for all of the above.
Much like Christian faith, virtual worlds online are accessible only
through the physical reality of human bodies and material resources.
Queer Zombie Jesus reveals the overlap between Christianity and the
web: meta/physical worlds of immense power, which can be and have
been used for great good or great evil, and which can be harnessed and
directed toward radical change for the better with the help of the focal
point of the reimagined Jesus.
During Jesus lifetime, some of those who claimed religious authority were opposed to the message of true love and acceptance that he
preached. Jesus reclaimed God for the outcast, the oppressed, the subaltern, by using radical new imagery. Queer theology seeks to nd in
Jesus once more the face of the outcast and the subaltern, to make him
the space where difference and diversity are written and overwritten
(Cornwall 103) to rediscover not the triumphant king but the criminal
dying on the cross.

Take, Eat, These Are My BrainsThornton

35

Many who are not Christian nd inspiration in the life and teachings
of Jesus, exploring and rewriting him in pursuit of their own concerns.
Perhaps Queer Zombie Jesus can be a place for Christians and non
Christians alike to explore a shared interest in the pursuit of a radical,
embodied justice and love.

Notes
1. Psuchikon and pneumatikon are usually translated as natural/physical and
spiritual, respectively, but their precise meaning is unclear. Certainly the rst
describes the body in life; the second, the post-resurrection body.
2. All biblical quotations are NRSV.
3. Of course, the average physical peak for humans is considered to be around
30: the same age as Jesus at the time of his death.
4. The practice of drinking Christs blood is less prominent, since laypeople were
not always given wine.

Victorian Values
Necrophilia and the Nineteenth
Century in Zombie Films
Marcus Harmes
Many zombie lms, including the most commercially and critically
successful examples within the genre, from Night of the Living Dead
(1968) to 28 Days Later (2002), are set in the present day. The quantity
of lms set more or less in the present day (according to the date of production) overshadows the fact that numerous zombie lms, from White
Zombie (1932) onwards, place the undead in historical settings. White
Zombie, for example, was set in nineteenth-century Haiti. Other examples include the Italian The Terrible Secret of Dr Hichcock (Lorrible Segreto del Dr Hichcock, 1962), Hammers Plague of the Zombies (1965) and
The Orgy of the Dead (La Orgia de los Muertos, 1973), a Spanish horror.
These lms share in common a nineteenth-century setting. Hichcock is
set in 1885. Plague is set a little earlier, in 1860. Orgy is not so chronologically precise but costumes and trappings locate the lm sometime
towards the end of Queen Victorias reign (she died in 1901) and thus in
the later-nineteenth century.
If many zombie lms share in common a setting that is more or less
the present day, another genre characteristic is that zombies were until
recently distinctively non-sexual. Functioning as an allusive device, the
zombies of Romeros Night of the Living Dead speak to nuclear rather than
sexual anxieties, as talk of the radioactive satellite by scientists in the lm
would suggest. Romeros mall-set sequel Dawn of the Dead overtly satirizes consumerism (Wood 213). Zombies in later lms are ravenous
36

Victorian ValuesHarmes

37

creatures; perhaps metaphorically their hunger may suggest eshly lust,


but only perhaps. It is not until more recent genre efforts such as Warm
Bodies (2013), Otto, or Up with Dead People (2008) or exploitation lm
such as Zombie Strippers! (2008) or even Dellamorte Dellamore (1994),
where a visit to the ossuary provoked feelings of high sexual arousal in
a young woman (Keesey 106), that we encounter sexualized zombies and
an erotic zombie aesthetic. But these lms are rarities and as Steve Jones
points out, zombies are traditionally asexual and gender traits are sublimated by their undead state (Porn of the Dead 41).
The nineteenth century-set lms listed above are distinctive not
only because of their historical backdrop, but also because emphasis is
placed on undead sexuality in these movies. These zombies predate and
are distinct from the conventional esh eaters we are now familiar with.
In these lms the zombies are often sensual and male characters nd
them sexually attractive. In nineteenth century Britain, Europe and
America, the undead were fetishized via various cultic practices. These
cultic practices reached an apotheosis of sorts with the mourning at the
royal court for Albert the Prince Consort, husband of Queen Victoria,
who died from typhoid in 1860. Victorias efforts were the most lavish
of the period, although the immense nation-wide obsequies for the assassinated Abraham Lincoln in America come a close second (Schwartz
347), she was not alone in memorializing the dead to the point of fetish.
Depending on what a bereaved family could afford, nineteenth century
mourners perpetuated the memory of the dead through ceremony,
sculpture, clothing and other media designed to promote the idea that
the dead had not gone very far, but could easily be recalled to the minds
eye.1
This essay examines the perverse twist on these ornate mourning
rituals offered by zombie lms set in the nineteenth century. In actual
Victorian society, ornate mourning rituals kept the memories of the dead
alive. In these historically set zombie lms, the dead themselves come
back to life. This essay examines those few but notable lms that locate
zombies in the nineteenth century and proposes a number of theses
about them. Zombie lms set in the nineteenth century create a Victorian world where the dead have a clear ontological status: although they
are elaborately mourned, the reanimated dead also become objects of
sexual lust. That lust has further historical implications. Female bodies
were subject to masculine control in Victorian society. Such exertions
are iterated in these lms via male characters attempts to subjugate
undead female sexuality. The fact that these women are both undead

38

Zombies and Sexuality

and desired opens up a liminal space that explores popular understandings of Victorian sexuality. This is most apparent in the Italian-made
but British-set Hichcock, in which sex with the undead women takes
place in surroundings which emulate the elaborate mourning ornamentation of the nineteenth century.
These European horror lms permit broader perspectives on the
cultural transmission of Victorian mores into twentieth century popular
culture and allow for the wide-ranging analysis of questions relating to
life, death and sexuality. In the introduction to The Politics of Everyday
Fear Brian Massumi suggested that there is always horror at the body
as a pleasure site (vii). The lms under analysis here can be understood
with this thought in mind. These works are both erotic and horric. At
the very heart of that horror are the deceased female bodies that men
gain pleasure from. In these lms, sexuality is emphatically heterosexual
and oriented around male pleasure. Simultaneously, because it is
expressed as lust for the undead, male lust is also perverse.

Nineteenth-Century Zombies
Taken together, Hichcock, Plague and Orgy present a coherent evocation of nineteenth-century England. Although only Plague was actually
made in Britain, all three share the same British setting. An opening
caption (superimposed over an image of the Big Ben clock tower of the
Houses of Parliament) in the rst scene of Hichcock establishes that the
lm, while made in Italy, takes place in London in 1885. Orgy, while
made in Spain and in locations that actually seem to evoke middle
Europe in terms of their appearance, is set in nineteenth-century Scotland.2 Neither of these lms settings should, however, surprise us. The
phenomenal success of Hammers gothic horrors in Europe prompted
European lm makers to emulate the companys signature themes,
styling and settings. 3 Hichcocks producers Luigi Carpentieri and
Ermanno Donati and scriptwriter Ernesto Gastaldi set out to create a
gothic horror in the Hammer vein, and critical commentary on Italian
horror in particular has stressed that directors within the genre are signicantly indebted to British cinema (Bertellini 214). This creative debt
is even signaled by the movies credits. In an attempt to suggest the
British consonances of their lms the creative personnel all worked
under anglicized pseudonyms.4 Orgy is also clearly modeled after British
horror lm; the detective in the lm even smokes a meerschaum pipe

Victorian ValuesHarmes

39

and is overtly likened to Sherlock Holmes, a landmark British cultural


gure.
Another way these lms harmonize is in their treatment of sexuality.
Of the three, the Italian-made Hichcock is perhaps the most lurid in its
themes, even if Orgy is most explicit in its imagery and its amount of
on-screen nudity. Having faced the British Board of Film Censorships
scrutiny, Hammers Plague shows the least in physical terms, but suggests a great deal in terms of potential sexual activity and violence. All
three lms are infused with strongly erotic currents. Orgy, while not
quite living up to the sensational promise of its title, portrays the seduction of several women including the lady of the house and her servant
by the lms protagonist. Plague, as noted, is less explicit in terms of
nudity, but contains a powerfully suggestive scene in which a number
of so-called young bloods attempt to gang rape Sylvia (Diane Claire),
daughter of the lms hero Sir James Forbes (Andre Morrell). The rakes
are dressed in hunting pinks and the mise-en-scne and costume design
make great play of the analogue between hunting foxes and the pursuit
and attempted rape of the young woman.5 The titular terrible secret
of Dr. Hichcock is his necrophilia, which the lms director of photography highlights by ashing lurid red lights over Hichcock (Robert Flemyng) when he is consumed by necrotic lust in a mortuary.
Dr. Hichcocks aberrant secret is indicative of a further correspondence; the sexual undercurrents of these lms harmonize around perverse human sexual activity. To draw out this point, it is necessary to
further extrapolate the major plot points of these lms. Set in London
in 1885, Hichcock bases its narrative around Dr. Bernard Hichcocks rst
and second marriages. While in public life Dr. Hichcock is a respected
surgeon, noted particularly for his groundbreaking research into anesthetics, in private his skills with drugs are turned to darker ends. He
drugs his rst wife in order to have intercourse while she is in a deathlike state. It is only while she is in this simulated death-like state (and
actually near to death in physiological terms) that Hichcock can experience sexual arousal. Unfortunately, his rst wife dies from the anesthetic that Hichcock uses for his quasi-necrophilic sex, and he remarries.
As we learn at the end of the lm however, his rst wife returns from
the dead to torment wife number two (Barbara Steele). More disturbingly, Dr. Hichcocks sexual attraction for his rst wife endured
beyond her death: together they conspire against the second wife. Coherent plotting is not one of the strengths of this lm and it is never made
entirely clear why Hichcock has remarried, since the reanimated rst

40

Zombies and Sexuality

wife is still on the scene. But the remarriage plays an important dramatic
function. The second wife provides Hichcock with a respectable front.
The lm thereby characterizes Victorian sexuality as simultaneously
covert and repressive.
Necrophilia also features in Orgy. Set in nineteenth-century Scotland, a number of mysterious deaths attract the attention of both the
young hero Serge Rosi (Stelvio Rossi, aka Stan Cooper) and the Holmeslike detective (Pasquale Basile). Woven into this narrative of the police
investigation is a lurid subplot involving the gravedigger and necrophiliac Igor (Paul Naschy), who appropriates bodies from tombs in order to
caress them, speak to them tenderly and make love to them. Again, the
dead return to life. In this case, the living dead include the former mistress of the house, whose cadaver wanders naked through the countryside, retaining something of the attraction she aroused in men during
life. While her brain is dead, her body is intact and on display and her
status as object of lust and desire continues seamlessly from her living
to being undead.
Both Orgy and Hichcock rationalize the cause of zombication; in
the latter, it is Dr. Hichcocks potent anesthesia, and in the former it is
caused by the implantation of electrical devices in corpses which allow
the lms villain Professor Leon Droila (Grard Tichy) to control the
brains of the dead. Plague also provided explanation within its diegesis
for the zombication of young Cornish men. In this instance, zombication is caused by voodoo magic which the local squire Mr Hamilton
(John Carson) mastered while visiting Haiti. On his return to Cornwall
he used his skill to turn the corpses from the local churchyard into slave
workers in his tin mine. Not only is he the local squire, magistrate and
coroner, Hamilton is also a zombie master akin to Murder Legendre
(Bela Lugosi) in White Zombie.
The consonances between Plague and White Zombie do not end
there. In the 1932 lm the titular white zombie is Madeleine Short
Parker (Madge Bellamy). After rejecting the advances of millionaire
Charles Beaumont (Robert Frazer), Madeline is drugged, dies and is
reanimated as the white zombie (her skin color is offset by the black
zombie slaves toiling in Legendres mill). In the living dead state, she
can no longer reject the millionaire. However the relationship fails to
bring Beaumont much sexual or emotional satisfaction, as the reanimated Madeline can do little more than sit in a catatonic state. In Plague,
Sylvia (and before her, her old school friend Alice [Jacqueline Pearce])
falls victim to the Squires voodoo skills and sexual associations are

Victorian ValuesHarmes

41

bound up with the practice of zombie magic. Strapped to a voodoo altar,


mesmerized by ritual, and undergoing zombication, Sylvia is the object
of the Squires lust; he leans in to kiss her as the zombie magic takes
hold of her. Although Sylvia is saved, the rescue itself only emphasizes
the peril she had been in of becoming a sexually exploited zombie.
Cumulatively, these texts illustrate a nexus between love or lust and the
undead. The form of domineering male sexuality depicted in these lms
is contingent on depicting women as passive and sexually accessible.

Nineteenth-Century Society
The nineteenth century setting is compelling because the Victorian
milieu highlights the horrors evoked by reanimation and necrophilia.
The nineteenth century is richly suggestive in terms of how its inhabitants treated and regarded the dead. Victorian society created, developed
and cherished mourning rituals that kept the dead immanent in relation
to the living. Earlier I alluded to the death of Prince Albert in 1860. His
bereft widow Queen Victoria was thought of both at the time and later
as the Widow of Windsor. Far from being prostrate, she mourned the
dead Prince Consort energetically. Victoria built mausolea and monuments, and preserved his rooms as he had left them. Her entire family
(especially her daughters) and the royal household participated in an
immense pattern of mourning that endured until Victorias own death
in 1901. As early as 1864 Charles Dickens wrote in satiric exasperation:
If you should meet with an inaccessible cave anywhere in that neighborhood, to which a hermit could retire from the memory of Prince
Albert and testimonials to the same, pray let me know of it. We have
nothing solitary and deep enough in this part of England (cited in Read
95). The cumulative impact of Victorias efforts was to keep alive more
than the memory of Prince Albert. It was possible to walk into his room
and have the impression that he had just walked out and would return
in a moment. His desk looked as though he had just stood up from it.
His wardrobe was kept at ready as though he would require clothes and
valets to perform his toilet. Busts, portraits and statues served as pervasive reminders of his appearance and physicality. In essence, Prince
Albert was not allowed to die. The erotic implications of Victorias
mourning are often overlooked. When still alive, the rather prudish and
repressed Prince Albert was the object of Queen Victorias strong erotic
attachment. Victoria was the product of the Hanoverian worldmore

42

Zombies and Sexuality

robust than the conservative Coburg court where Albert was brought
upand she is now recognized by historians as having openly enjoyed
sex (Pearsall 12). When she mourned Albert, she did not simply express
a sense of loss for her husband but her lover as well, and the perpetuation
of his memory through objects is fetishistic in tone.
Queen Victorias protracted and attention-grabbing widowhood is
one of the best remembered aspects of her life and reign. Many
twentieth-century lmmakers who set their work in her lifetime incorporate the cues of conduct and xation with the dead that dene the
Victorian era. Orgy, Plague and Hichcock are steeped in the very iconography of death. Much of the action in the Hammer lm including nocturnal body snatching and a much-imitated sequence of the undead
breaking out of their gravestakes place in the villages cemetery. Both
Orgy and Hichcock locate much of the action in catacombs and graveyards. In the climax of Hichcock, the rst Mrs. Hichcock, risen from her
tomb, chases the second Mrs. Hichcock through underground passages.
Orgy meanwhile concludes with an attack of zombies in a large and lavish
sepulcher. All lms revolve around sites and rituals that are not simply
associated with death but with its ornate commemoration.
The nineteenth century setting of these three lms is signicant
and suggestive in terms of the Victorian periods preoccupation with the
sumptuous public mourning of the dead, which carried over into the
sexualization of the undead. It is also signicant insofar as it illustrates
the private scandal that various cultural historians presume to have
existed beneath public practice in the nineteenth century. Dr. Hichcock
exemplies both the disjunction and the linkages between public practice and private perversion. The lm delineates Hichcocks mourning
for his (apparently) dead rst wife, including scenes of black clad mourners, funerary appurtenances and rain drenched cemeteries, all on a scale
to compare with the most impressive obsequies from the nineteenth
century. But the lm also shows the concealed scandal of his necrophilia,
which takes place in a secret chamber in the Hichcock mansion. The
chamber is decorated with trappings such as black crepe and feathers
that render it as much a boudoir as a tomb. As such, Dr. Hichcocks dark
secret epitomizes the concealed, scandalous and erotic fascination with
death lurking beneath the respectable veneer of Victorian England.
Among the later interpreters of Victorian sexuality, Michel Foucault has
accounted for a full taxonomy of perversions that Victorian sexologists
such as Krafft-Ebing and Rohleder categorized, including (besides
necrophiliacs) zoophiles, zooerasts, auto-monosexualists, gynecomasts,

Victorian ValuesHarmes

43

presbyophiles, sexoesthetic inverts and dyspareunists (The History of


Sexuality 43). But Foucault, diverging signicantly from other thinkers
in this eld, suggests that there was a clear disjunction between perverse
behaviors and those actions and practices considered normal. Rather
medicalizing, etymologizing and taxonomizing these perversions simply
claried their status as non-normative behaviors (Harmes 4). The center
of interest in these lms, then, lies in the way any apparent disjunction
is blurred, and it is blurred because of the presence of zombies in the
plots. Without them, the dignied public mourning of the Victorian
worldcertainly a normative and respectable practice in that period
even if in the twenty-rst century it seems outlandishwould remain
separate from perversity. The presence of zombies turns respectability
back against itself; mourning the dead modulates into sexual desire for
the undead, and the practices for mourning become sites of perverse
sexuality.

Being Dead in the Nineteenth Century


The dead in Orgy, Hichcock and Plague are not allowed to rest in
peace; similarly many deceased people in the actual rather than the cinematic nineteenth century enjoyed active afterlives. On one level, a
degree of morbid preoccupation is not surprising. Victorian society was
afflicted by appallingly high mortality statistics, and the fact of most
deaths taking place in a home (with only the very poor likely to die institutionalized and then in a workhouse and not a hospital) ensured that
death punctuated daily lived experiences. Long before she embarked on
her protracted mourning for Prince Albert, the very young Queen Victoria was fascinated by the painfully interesting details of King William
IVs death (Reed 156). The interest transposed to the ction of the
period, in which death bed scenes proliferate (Reed 163). But as the art
historian Angus Trumble points out, death is not just a looming threat;
it can also be thought of as beautiful (18). Paintings of the period testify
to this aesthetic appreciation of death, as do neo Victorian reimaginings of the period. These three zombie lms illustrate that dead
women can still be captivatingly beautiful and certainly became objects
of forbidden love. The rst Mrs. Hichcock, who stalks catacombs
wreathed in ne white fabric, embodies these associations between
lamore and lmorte.
The interest in mortality and the mortuary was also evident in the

44

Zombies and Sexuality

streetscapes and daily experiences of Victorian citizens. As Dickenss


novels in particular suggest, large funerals and extensive mourning periods were not conned to the rich. Famously, Pip in Great Expectations
sees two dismally absurd persons, each ostentatiously exhibiting a
crutch done up in a black bandage: in other words, the mutes at Mrs.
Gargerys funeral (Poole 252). Oliver Twist found employment as a mute,
and little Paul Dombey in Dombey and Son is conveyed to his nal resting place by a cortege lead by four black horses with feathers on their
heads; and [whose] feathers tremble on the carriage that they draw
(Poole 252). Although Dickenss satire was not the only negative social
comment on the ostentation of Victorian mourning, such grandiose displays endured through the nineteenth century. The cost of crepe and
other fabrics, coffins and men to carry them, pageboys to accompany it,
palls to cover it and horses to pull it could put the cost of mourning as
high as 1,500, at a time when, as Trumble points out, a domestic servant
would have earned about 11 a week (46).
Crepe, trinkets, and mourning furniture are among the tangible
paraphernalia of bereavement. Freuds discussion of mourning illuminates the symbolic, intangible connotations of those concrete trappings,
forging important links between desire, objects and death that are salient
to zombie horror. Freud suggested the analogue between boredom and
mourning, with both being a kind of paralysis (Phillip 71). Importantly,
Freud also suggested that such paralysis impacts on sexual desire. As
Kate Brown contends, Freud implies that if a persons loved one is dead
and is mourned, then the mourner is left with both someone and no one
to desire (407). Freud resolves this tension between longing and absence
by pointing to the practice of mourning, in which, as Brown suggests,
there took place the deferring to reality and severing identication with
the lost loved one, replacing absence with the felt presence of representation (407). Studying one particular set of nineteenth-century texts,
namely the literary output of the Bront sisters, Brown further suggests
that these works stand in contrast to Freuds understanding of mourning
as paralysis and death as absence. By contrast, Brown points out how
the Bronts across various works preserve the dead among us, because
they insist upon the importance of mourning as comprising objects and
items that [restore] creativity, family connection, and an image of the
body as capable of fullling desires (407408).
Browns sense of a body still being present and still provoking desire
marries with the nineteenth century ethos of mourning as lling a space
(rather than accentuating absence) in a way that is especially useful to

Victorian ValuesHarmes

45

understanding Victorian-set zombie lms, which portray sex with the


dead and the sexualization of women after they have died. The dead in
Orgy, Hichcock and Plague are not allowed to rest in peace. Actual
deceased persons also had active afterlives in the nineteenth century. If
their mourning family could afford it, dark clothing was worn for months
or even years as a reminder of a persons death. Tolling bells, grave monuments and even sepulchers drew attention to a persons demise. Portraits, lockets of a dead persons hair and other types of paraphernalia
also kept memories alive.
Yet some sectors of Victorian society also feared another type of
active afterlife, in that people may have been buried alive (Behlmer 207).
Of course, fears of premature burial and the return of the dead as zombies are different horror tropes. Yet such terror highlights a liminal space:
when a persons biology is thrown into doubt, so too are their social
functions and position. As Behlmer points out, Victorian doctors and
undertakers, as well as interested observers, had a diverse and conicting
vocabulary to account for the different stages moving from being
unquestionably alive to denitely dead. Somewhere on the spectrum
between these two states a person could be in a trance, cataleptic, in
suspended animation or anaesthetized (as was the rst Mrs. Hichcock).
These different terms and their proliferation in nineteenth-century discourses on living and dying testify to the anxiety of the period that the
border between living and death was not clear. Actual Victorian society
feared the possibility of premature burial; gures as exalted as Lord Lytton, the Viceroy of India, feared the possibility and many stipulated that
clear signs of decay needed to be waited on before nal internment
(Trumble 20). It is in this uncertain space that Dr. Hichcocks perverse
sexuality expresses itself. He makes love to a woman who has been medically treated to appear dead, until the night he gets the dose wrong and
Hichcock ends up sleeping with a woman he has killed. In Plague, Sylvia
is tied down, groped and kissed by the Squire as she undergoes the
process of zombication. Again her ontological status is uncertain.
The zombie lms set in the nineteenth century exploit and promote
this uncertainty. Clearly the rst Mrs. Hichcock became a sexualized
entity in her husbands eyes only when simulating death and therefore
when she was released from the constraints of normative female conduct. Mrs. Hichcock is passive and powerless as well as vulnerable, three
tropes stereotypically associated with normative Victorian female conduct. But the consequence of this conductthat Mrs. Hichcock becomes
a participant, even a passive one, in abnormal sexual practiceschal-

46

Zombies and Sexuality

lenge and complicate the idea that her passivity is normative. These
lms also reect a current of both Victorian theological and scientic
thought that was open to ontological speculation: whether death was
actually a xed state. Giovanni Aldinis galvanic experiments were among
the early nineteenth century scientic tests that seemed to reanimate
the dead. In one instance a dead mans muscles began to move and the
left eye actually opened (Behlmer 213). Experiments of this nature
prompted speculations as to whether death was a permanent or a mutable condition. These three zombie lms contain their own analogues to
these speculations. Orgy actually contains a kind of mad scientist gure, who has been experimenting with the dead and implanting transceivers in them that allow them to be reanimated and controlled. Dr.
Hichcocks chemical experiments that induce a deathlike state and ultimately kill her reect actual Victorian scientic speculations such as Sir
James Simpsons experiments with self- administered chloroform
dosages, which sought to discover its properties and effects (Gordon
108). While Plagues explanation for the zombiesthe voodoo magic
is more traditional and not at all scientic (Sir James Forbes, Professor
of Medicine at University College London, has to overcome his scientic
skepticism to accept the reality and power of voodoo), it still casts into
doubt the idea that death is ontologically absolute.
It is nonetheless equally clear that undead women can still be
objects of desire. The key denominator between the women in Orgy,
Hichcock and Plague is their accessibility. They occupy an uncertain
space; they are neither dead nor alive but undead, and certainly passive.
It is at this point that the creative decision to set these narratives in the
Victorian period becomes most salient. Gary Farnell, thinking of
nineteenth-century ctional women including Miss Havisham from
Dickenss Great Expectations refers to the eroticized and forbidden girlwoman at the heart of many Victorian accounts of female sexuality (14).
But set against this ctional construction is the very real accessibility of
womens bodies to men. The 1857 Divorce Act, while making escape
from a violent marriage possible for some women (albeit fraught with
potential for scandal and disgrace) did not particularly mitigate legal
circumstances which left Victorian women essentially as the possessions
of their husbands. Nor did the Married Womens Property Act (1870)
alleviate this legal reality (Combs 10281057). Instead the legal status
of Victorian women facilitated male possessiveness. Victorian-set zombie lms reect these legal contexts. Here, possessiveness extends to
posthumous control. The zombied women are sexually subordinated.

Victorian ValuesHarmes

47

Being undead they have no voice and offer no resistance. In Orgy the
control is explicit: the doctor has implanted devices that allow him to
control the mind and actions of the deceased lady of the house. In Hichcock control is more oblique: Hichcocks dead rst wife remains in his
house and at his bidding, although his possession of her is not as obvious
as the scientic explanation provided in Orgy. Both these European horror lms reect the sexual status of Victorian women, where loosely
dened legislation about sexual consent provided little protection and
failed to protect women who suffered unwanted sexual contact (Trumble
32). The lms distil ideas on both anxieties about womens sexuality and
the fears of women themselves. Womens agency is suppressed by various
meansdrugs, electrical implants, voodoo magic. But womens fears are
also depicted; the second Mrs. Hichcock ees in terror through the catacombs and Sylvia is strapped down and unable to resist the Squire.
Being enslaved by Haitian voodoo, the zombies of Plague are positioned within the diegesis more as pitiful and exploited creatures than
as threat; in common with the voodoo zombies of White Zombie these
are not rampaging esh eaters, but downtrodden manual slaves. The
two women in Plague, Alice and Sylvia, both succumb to the powers of
the zombie master Squire Franklin and both become passive victims of
sexual violence. The passivity of the living dead in Plague was pregured
by Hichcock and repeated in Orgy. The rst Mrs. Hichcock, while a willing participant in her husbands macabre sex games and consenting to
the stupefying injections, does not actively participate in the lovemaking.
To all intents and purposes she is dead, just as her husband likes it: she
is the object of his sexuality rather than a participant in lovemaking.
The two women of Orgy, the maidservant and the mistress, are the lovers
of the hero Serge in life, but their lovemaking is shot through with suggestions of exploitation. Serge insists the maidservant strip in front of
him and subjects her naked body to his gaze and evaluation, causing her
humiliation. The mistress of the house meanwhile suffers her own sexual
humiliation, having to share Serges sexual favors with her servant.
Tellingly, the impression of sexual exploitation continues once the mistress of the house is dead and zombied. When she has become a zombie, she moves naked and vulnerable through the Scottish countryside,
her body on display to the men pursuing her. Her brain is dead and she
no longer alert to their gaze. While this state may mean she is free from
the humiliation she would have felt when alive and objectied by Serge,
she nonetheless remains a sexual object. Sylvia is the least powerful of
all; she is strapped down as the Squire moves in to kiss her. Actual Vic-

48

Zombies and Sexuality

torian writings on sexuality, such as Walters record of sexual transgression My Secret Life,6 suggest that women were mostly unwilling participants in male scopophilic gratication. The women in Walters
sexual memoirs are mostly remembered as assemblages of body parts
whom he observed through keyholes, with the aid of mirrors, or during
sex itself (Harmes and Harmes 24). Importantly, this point of view resonates with the women in these zombie horror lms; once their minds
have died, they too are purely assemblages of body parts, nothing more
than animated corpses. This point of view also nds a natural counterpart in the funerary and mortuary rituals of the period which these three
horror lms evoke. Victorian mourning reduced the deceased individual
to a dispersed collection of artifacts. Hair was encased in lockets and
other trinkets. Such mementos of a persons physicality were handed
out among friends and relatives of the deceased.
The themes iterated in these lmsof funereal intercourse, of
female sexual bondage that continues beyond the grave and the uncertain space that undead women occupyevoke actual Victorian practices.
The deathly xations, including the tombs, sepulchers and mourning
practices that the lms showcase, were normative Victorian practices.
As we have seen, a range of voices from Dickens onwards testify to the
preoccupation of nineteenth-century people with mourning. While
zombies did not actually roam Victorian England, intensely observed
and elaborately practiced mourning rituals kept the dead alive and their
status ontologically uncertain. Such rituals did not so much commemorate the dead but keep their physical presence close by. But within this
normative practice, the lms show non-normative types of sexuality taking place: the Squire in Plague is leader of a pack of gang rapists; the
women in Orgy are adulterous; and most deviant of all is the necrophilic
Dr. Hichcock. The lms illustrate the productive potential of the nineteenth century setting; the periods distinctive mourning rituals are the
inspiration for lms that move beyond commemorating the dead to having the undead walk again.
But allied to this creative potential is the inversion of a societys
sexual morality. The dead in these lms transcend the mourning practices of Victorian society; returning as the undead they need no longer
be mourned, but they will become objects of sexual desire and lust. Figures such as Dr. Hichcock adhere to the iconography of public mourning
but repudiate the normalizing sexuality of the Victorian period. The disjunction between public practice and a private liminal space is developed
across these three lms. Tellingly, none of the male characters are the

Victorian ValuesHarmes

49

married patres familias that epitomizes Victorian respectability. Hichcock is married, but his perverse sex games do not led to healthy procreation. Both Serge and the Squire are bachelors. The anxious and
distorted sexual realms they occupy in the lms echo nineteenth century
warnings against sexual deviance. The 1870 iatric text Chronic Diseases,
especially the Nervous Diseases of Women by the German physician D.
Rosch warned that [p]unishments follow transgression, and if sins are
committed against the laws of nature, the offenders are driven through
abjection and affliction out of the paradise of a happy matrimonial life
(256). While this tract was issuing a warning, Freud made a similar
point, claiming that the essence of perversion lies solely in the exclusiveness with which these deviations are carried out and as a result of
which the sexual act serving the purpose of reproduction is put on one
side (Introductory Lectures on Psychoanalysis 364). The sexual acts of
these lms are not reproductive. Neither the Squire nor Dr. Hichcock
nor any of the male characters in Orgy are interested in producing children. In these three lms, the purpose of reproduction is put aside in
favor of sexually exploiting undead women who were unable to resist,
who are objects of desire, and cannot possibly be fecund. They are bodies
and nothing more.

Conclusion
These lms pursue the complex linkage between private sexual perversion and the public spaces, including those where people publicly
exhibited their grief. One factor above others that denes the world of
Victorian mourning, mortality and commemoration is its sheer physicality. Prince Albert is the apotheosis of this idea. With his living quarters
and office left as they were when he died, Albert remained a prominent
posthumous physical presence in the Victorian royal household. It is
neither a long nor a difficult jump from the physical proximity of the
Victorian dead to a zombie. A mindless creature of instinct, a zombie is
the quintessence of sheer posthumous physicality. The lms under analysis in this essay as much as the more familiar zombies from American
cinema bear this point out. The Cornish men zombied in Plague are
nothing more than physical laborers in the Squires mine, while the
women in all three lms become objects of sexual gratication for men.
The sites and iconography of Victorian mourning became major sites of
private transgressive sexuality.

50

Zombies and Sexuality

But we should remember these are not primary texts; they are set
in the Victorian period, but were not products of it. Rather they are
1960s and 1970s examples of European exploitation horror cinema and
they raise challenging and disturbing questions about twentieth-century
sexual attitudes and their bridges back to the nineteenth century. These
lms signicantly problematize female sexuality. I suggested above that
the undead women were bodies and nothing more. The women are
undead (or narrowly rescued from that state) and the lms situate female
sexuality and sexual action in deeply disturbing, perverse contexts. These
women are not fecund, for fertility would restore them to a living realm
of normative female sexuality, where bearing a mans children and perpetuating a family name were prime female duties, from Queen Victoria
downwards.7 But these lms problematize female sexuality by severely
limiting their options. In these lms women are expected to become
child bearers to respectable pater familias. The alternative is being
reduced to mindless receptacles for sexual gratication. As examples of
exploitation cinema, these lms revel in their transgression. They do
not resolve the dilemmas they pose about female roles as undead objects
or fecund child bearers. They certainly make robust and dramatic use
of various Victorian social mores, extrapolating to a horric extent the
mourning rituals so that they modulate into the ritualized fetishes of
undead sexuality. Likewise they play with popular perceptions of the
status of Victorian women, who in these lms are the helpless playthings
of men. But in their eagerness to exploit rather than challenge, these
lms bring these attitudes into the twentieth century largely intact. The
lms use types of secret perversity to expose the cruelty and exploitation
that Victorian women were subjected to and to demonstrate that the
perverse men are the real monsters here, rather than the zombie women
they exploit. But as products of 20th century lm making, not the Victorian era itself, the lms also suggest that that these values are perhaps
not as distant from the 20th (and maybe even the and 21st) century as
we might imagine. Perhaps these values are, like the Victorian deceased,
still all too uncomfortably present.

Notes
1. The development of photography contributed to this discourse, creating photographic mementoes including post-mortem photographs of the deceased people,
to which were added religious icons and symbols and which record the full pageantry
of funerals. The spirit photographs of the Victorian period are one manifestation of
this trend, but the works reproduced in The Harlem Book of the Dead taken by James
van der Zee of corpses, caskets and mourning apparatus are its apotheosis.

Victorian ValuesHarmes

51

2. Spanish horror lms were frequently set elsewhere than Spain; many were
European co-productions with other countries including Germany and Italy and
used generic European settings, and sometimes more exotic settings as well, including the Tibetan setting of Fury of the Wolfman (La Furia del Hombre Lobo 1970)
and Night of the Howling Beast (La Maldicion de la Bestia 1974). Other Spanish horrors of the 1970s horror boom in that country used British settings, such as Seven
Murders for Scotland Yard ( Jack el Destripador de Londres 1971).
3. An inuence also clearly at work in other national contexts, such as the period
horrors made by Roger Corman for American International Pictures, which were a
series very loosely based on Edgar Allen Poes writings, starting with The Fall of the
House of Usher (1960), and including The Pit and the Pendulum (1961), The Masque
of the Red Death (1964), and The Tomb of Ligeia (1964).
4. Carpentieri and Donati as Louis Mann and Gastaldi as Julyan (or Julian) Berry.
Cast members in Orgy also acted under English names. For example, Stelvio Rossi
appeared as Stan Cooper.
5. The 1966 theatrical trailer also invites such comparisons, promising cinema
patrons a view of a place dominated by men without morals, where blood lusts are
excited by hunting a human quarry.
6. Walter is the nom-de-plume of an anonymous Victorian author, famed for
his volumes of sexual odyssey.
7. Victoria herself was remarkably fecund and was pregnant for much of her married life. She gave birth to princes and princesses who married into almost all European royal families including the Prussian, Danish and Greek.

A Love Worth Un-Undying For


Neoliberalism and Queered
Sexuality in Warm Bodies
Sasha Cocarla
Popular culture has long been both a key resource for knowledge
on and a cultural creator of social insecurities, doubts, and fears. While
enjoyment, discussion, and catharsis are perhaps the most encouraged
outcomes and benets of popular culture consumption, in moments of
particular social unrest and cultural change/upheaval, popular culture
avenues also become even further saturated with storylines and characters that not only assist in social understanding, but also, and perhaps
even more aggressively, instill a sense a normalcy and moral righteousness in relation to outside threats and apparent indecency.
This threat to personal, social, and national security, normalcy, and
life is most often portrayed as an outsideran Otherwho, either ideologically or literally, fails to (or perhaps chooses not to) adapt to mainstream (read: normative) understandings and general ways of being.
Whether in reference to criminal outsiders, sexual deviants, or international terrorist threats, the representation of this other is alwaysalready made monstrous. And in popular culture, this is blatantly obvious in horror and supernatural examples, where the dangerous external
threat literally becomes the monster of your nightmares.
Like many ctional zombie narratives, Isaac Marions 2011 bestselling novel Warm Bodies describes a post-apocalyptic landscape where
the living dead scavenge for remnants of their previous lives. Uniquely
diverting from more traditional rotting corpse plotlines, Warm Bodies
52

A Love Worth Un-Undying ForCocarla

53

(narrated by the protagonist, R, a zombie) positions heteronormative


desire and romance at the forefront of the story. Hidden within this
novel (and the recent lm adaptation) is an unconventional reading of
queerness that is, arguably, steeped within wider social consequences
and commentary that rearticulate neoliberal, hetero- and queerlynormative ideals in an era that threatens to wreak havoc on traditional
American values. This essay will provide a queered1 reading of Warm
Bodies by situating it within discussions of neoliberal ideologies and
monstrous sexuality. Although this storyline allows for the possible reading of a queered, monstrous politic of desire, radical in its potential to
subsume heteronormative understandings of sex, desire, and romance,
it instead resituates hetero- and queer-normativity as being the only
possible solution to maintaining life.
While my queered reading of Warm Bodies will weave itself
throughout this essay, in order to better situate this zombie romance
within a broader understanding of queerness and neoliberalism, I will
rst provide a brief overview of the role of zombies in current popular
culture. Following this, I will move into a discussion of homonormativity
and homonationalism (Duggan The Twilight of Equality? and The New
Homonormativity; Puar), two theories that have highlighted the
homogenizing effects of neoliberalism and American nationalism on
LGBTQ identities and romantic, domestic, and sexual relationships.
Drawing from these theories, queer normativity will be used to illustrate the homonormative-like elements that are present within many of
the key themes in Warm Bodies, including romantic norms, understandings of life and death, ideas of progress and personal/collective growth
for the betterment of society, and fear of non-complying others/tolerance
of complying-others, while also making space for the monstrous, living
dead, queered sexual desire. More specically, queer normativity will
help us make sense of the ways queered/monstrous desire and sexuality
perpetuate and maintain neoliberal domestic ideals.2 Finally, these theories will assist me in underscoring the ways that Warm Bodies facilitates
a reading that is both extraordinary and ordinary, transgressive and uniform, and queered and normative.

Bump in the Night


The Other-as-monster3 serves many purposeson its most basic
level, it allows for a more creative, and oftentimes, playful, way of sorting

54

Zombies and Sexuality

through general social anxieties and fears. On a more insidious level,


however, the Other-as-monster works to perpetuate hegemonic ideals
by melding together the gure of the monster and its horric
qualities/actions with the ideological myths and prejudices often
ascribed to racial, sexual, gender, and dis/ability minority groups. In
other words, the lmic monster lurking in the closet or eating your
neighbors brain is imbued with traits that are already deemed culturally
deviant/strange/excessive/unnecessary. In this respect, this symbolic
representation further vilies, marginalizes, and ostracizes real people
and experiences, while at the same time it further perpetuates mainstream, hegemonic ideals.
The joining together of monsters with real social fears and anxieties
over a perceived threatening other has become a cultural mainstay in
both popular literature and lm, with perhaps the most popular monstrous gure being the vampire, who has represented deviant sexuality,
fears of contagion, foreign outsiders, and aging and death (to name but
a few).4 While the gure of the vampire has undoubtedly portrayed such
social insecurities, this monster has also manifested as less threatening,
and especially recently, as domesticated and romantic (Twilight, Vampire
Diaries, True Blood ). As the vampires less suave, unintelligible, evenmore-dead dead relative, the gure of the zombie has also been no
stranger to representing cultural fears and anxieties. However, unlike
vampires, zombies rotting esh and general lack of composure has left
them neutered and asexual. Until recently, that is.5
Since their lmic inception in White Zombie (1932), zombies have
most often stood in as metaphors for deep cultural fears and tensions,
including racism and enslavement of racial minorities, cannibalism, bioterrorism and disease outbreaks, the fall of rationality and independence
to instinct-motivated herd mentality, and the complete numbing of
humanity, to name but a few examples (Dendle The Zombie as Barometer of Cultural Anxiety; McIntosh; Drezner). Zombies have also been
used to illustrate our discomfort with the abject, death, and decay.
Finally, in a capitalist economy fueled by the pathological need for continual growth, consumption and expansion, it becomes clear that the
zombie of modern storytelling often acts as metaphor for mass consumption under capitalism, abandoning ideals of rationality and moderation, and instead consuming without question (Dendle The Zombie
as Barometer of Cultural Anxiety 51).
As previously mentioned, the monsters of the horror lm genre
have been steadily used to demonstrate social upheavals and uncertain-

A Love Worth Un-Undying ForCocarla

55

ties. Following the events of September 11th, 2001, in the United States
cultural imaginary, the zombie became one of the primary gures that
social anxieties became inscribed upon. In this context, zombies have
been used to both symbolically work through and reproduce uncertainties surrounding terrorism, immigration, contagious diseases, and apocalyptic events (Saunders 81). While not all are as obvious as Call of Duty:
Modern Warfare 2 (2009), which features the Taliban as literal zombies
under attack by the hero rst-person shooter, and, Osombie, a 2012
lm that nds Osama Bin Laden as a living dead monster who is working
on creating an army of zombie terrorists, the popularity of zombies in
popular culture is deeply symptomatic of cultural upheaval and fear over
maintaining the status quoa sense of normalcy.
Within popular culture, zombie storylines generally culminate in
one of two waysmass defeat of all the living dead (either through physical elimination, quarantine, or subjugation) or the slow eradication of
all of humanity (Drezner 8). Unlike vampires, who are often depicted in
popular culture as not only coexisting with humans but also romancing
them, such narratives for zombies are few and far between.6 In this climate, the conation of monster/monstrosity with readings of the threatening and/or sexually perverse other become highlighted.
Within post9/11 zombie ction, it is clear that the very presence
of a zombie-other conjures up ideas of risk and transmission, social dissent and upheaval. This contagion that the threatening other/terrorist
other/monstrous other risks spreading to the masses is threatening
because of its very undoing of norms. For the zombie of modern ction,
the threat seems obvious; contagion of the zombie virus and movement
from living to the undead. On a symbolic level, this contagious threat
(again, especially within a post9/11 context) intersects with political
and social fears about the complete destabilization of national and
domestic norms, values, and ideals. Here, patriotism and nostalgic
strongholds of traditional values become seen as the antidote to ward
off the contagion of terrorism, which is feared as seeping into the cracks
of society and undoing political, social, and ideological norms (through
political dissent and activism, as well as progressive politics, lifestyles,
and sexualities more generally). These fears of contagion and disease
are palpable in zombie narrativesthe transmission of the zombie
infection is a symbolic form of radical brainwashing, where anyone can
become infected and be turned into the zombie other/an ideological
threat (Bishop American Zombie Gothic 29). It becomes necessary, then,
in both the zombie lm/story as well as in a post9/11 society, to make

56

Zombies and Sexuality

every effort to protect ones self from the monstrous, sexually perverse
threatening other.

Musings of a Neoliberal Corpse


The book Warm Bodies (2011) seems to be one exception to the
zombies general role in popular culturenot only do zombies coexist
with humans from nearly the beginning of the story (albeit, on separate
ends of the city), the entire storyline is premised upon an unlikely
romance between a zombie and a human. The story is narrated by R,
our zombie protagonist, who leads us through the monotony of his life
up until he meets his romantic interest, Julie. Detailing his un-life of unliving in an airport with other zombies, occasional wanderings into the
city for food (humans), and the boredom that results from not being
able to talk, feel, and emote, readers are encouraged to see R as simply
going through a series of motions, which he has no rational control over.
What R does seem to have control over, though, are his philosophical
musings. It becomes clear through his ramblings that R is not like the
other zombies he exists with. He does not enjoy eating other humans
and he is constantly frustrated by his inability to remember what his life
was like before he became undead (Marion 7). Although R does not take
pleasure in the act of eating other humansthere is no thrill behind his
hunthe does take immense pleasure in the effect that consuming
human brains has on him. When zombies eat human brains, they are
momentarily ooded with intense images and emotionsthe memories
of the brains owner (Marion 7). These images are short-lived, but the
effects are long-lasting on R. Those moments allow him to feel less
dead and closer to life (Marion 7).
Within Warm Bodies it is Rs quest to feel less dead and closer to
life that propels this zombie narrative into a romantic storyline. Rs quest
to be alive, to resemble humanityto be normalare deeply steeped
within neoliberal ideals. At perhaps its most basic understanding,
neoliberalism is most often equated (at least economically) with a radically free market (Wendy Brown 38). Key to this understandingand
to understanding neoliberalism more broadlyis the term free. Free
choice, free market, and free enterprise (Harvey A Brief History 2). The
guise of freedom and personal agency is an active myth within neoliberal
policies as well as general social conditions and ideals. However, this
freedom cannot be separated from the creation/perpetuation of an

A Love Worth Un-Undying ForCocarla

57

ideal rational actora citizen whose ability to invoke neoliberal agency


is intrinsically tied to their classication as rational, sound, and normal.
And, perhaps most importantly, these classicationsrational, sound,
normalare themselves key markers/creations of a neoliberal ideology.
A key part to the regulation and perpetuation of neoliberal ideologies is the creation and maintenance of structures and functions that
facilitate in making these ideals the norm/status quo. The military, law,
politics, and other social institutions such as health care and education,
are all needed to create the neoliberal cultural climate. However, state
intervention must appear to be limited, as the founding characteristics
of neoliberalism are freedom and independence (Harvey 2). In order for
the guise of freedom to best operate within a neoliberal agenda, various
processes of governmentalitygovernmental intervention, power, and
discipline that is not related to state politics alonemust x themselves
within various bodies and institutions of power, including the body of
the free-acting citizen (Foucault The Government of Self and Others).
Within this space, free subjects internalize state power and modes of
governing and they self-surveil all their actions and choices, as they
increasingly become aware that they will bear the responsibility for the
outcomes of any choice they make. After all, the rational, neoliberal subjects freedom and positionality is entirely contingent upon their very
ability to make rational, neoliberal choices.
Of course, there are other positionalities within a neoliberal project.
In order for there to be a rational, normal subject, there equally needs
to be an irrational, abnormal objector zombie, in this casewho deviates from the path of hegemonic ideals. Under this neoliberal agenda,
this deviation is most often understood as a literal failure to subscribe
to the norm. It is a failure to make the right choices, failure to selfregulate and follow social rules. If one is unable to attain status and privilege within a neoliberal framework, then it was because they failed for
personal and cultural reasons to enhance their own human capital
through education, the acquisition of a protestant work ethic, and submission to work discipline and exibilitynot because the system itself
ourishes on such failure (Harvey Neoliberalism 34).
Here, those that fail to subscribe to the neoliberal project become
simultaneously seen as deviant through their inability to choose correctly, and, deviant through their literal inability to ever be read as a
rational subject. The project is then cyclical. This other must make
the correct choices in order to properly fulll neoliberal ideals, and yet
their choices are nevercan neverbe understood as being rational

58

Zombies and Sexuality

because of their very other-ness. Even more so, the neoliberal project
benets from and is maintained by both the presence of the other and
their inherent inability to comply with neoliberal norms, with key sites
of power (including global warfare, neo-imperialism, the prison industrial complex, to name a few) being based on racist, sexist, queerphobic,
and abelist agendas and ideals.
With this in mind, it would seem that the neoliberal project should
simply implode on itself due to the fact that fewer bodies are able to be
read as rational and normal. Within the ideal neoliberal space, the
proper neoliberal subject is white, male, able-bodied, and heteronormativemeaning, they are able to subscribe to values associated with heterosexuality (the proper sexuality), including marriage, raising a family, and
participating in conspicuous consumption practices. In order to perpetuate the myth of free choice and rationality, then, the neoliberal project
cannot focus entirely on economic and legal reform, but must also
immerse itself within identity politics, and in doing so, alter some of its
membership policies for sake of a neoliberal legacy. Of course, this does
not mean that, for example, queer individuals or women of color are
automatically deemed rational citizens, with full access to the free market and all other social and political advantages. Instead, some minority
groups are granted certain accesses only when they subscribe to some of
the preordained characteristics that the proper, rational neoliberal subject
projects, namely, mass consumption practices, unfaltering national allegiance, and normative (or as close as you can get) domestic partnerships.
But what does this look like for zombies in Warm Bodies ? R details
numerous ways that he and the other zombies try to hold onto some
semblance of rationality and normal life, even if they cannot actually
remember what their lives were like before they became the undead.
The zombies have all congregated in an airport on the outskirts of a city.
Within this airport, there are specic moments of regularity that symbolically allude to the zombies inherent humanity and capacity to
change. They meet in airport bars with their zombie friends (although
these meetings are fairly uneventful since zombies can only speak a few
syllables at a time). There is a zombie place of worship, where all interested zombies congregate and wave their arms towards the sky. There
are marriages between male and female zombies. Zombie couples bump
their bodies together in an attempt to sexually engage with one another,
and unions between married zombies and parentless zombie children
(who attend zombie school) form domesticated zombie families. The
relevance of these activities to neoliberalism cannot be overlooked. Sub-

A Love Worth Un-Undying ForCocarla

59

scribing to social norms without question and going through the


motions (the zombies do not know why they are doing these things)
allows for the understanding that this is simply the way things are to go
unquestioneda key tenet of neoliberalism. This ideology simultaneously
allows for the negation/ignorance of systemic inequalities, and, the apparent inevitability of this natural order of things. For R, there appears to
be no interest in nding out why he is a zombie, why they are segregated
from the humans, or why they cling to the activities of their prior human
states. Instead, they go through these motions because there is some
sort of understanding that that is simply what they are supposed to do
in order to retain some sense of normalcy, value, and purpose.
Interestingly, while R longs to regain a sense of normalcy that he
had when he was human (although he cannot remember what that normalcy looked like) sex does not gure in his longing, and in fact R is
glad to be rid of his human sexual urges and is bored by bumping bodies
with other zombies.
Maybe its a kind of death throe. A distant echo of that great motivator that
once started wars and inspired symphonies, that drove human history out
of the caves and into space. Sex, once a law as undisputed as gravity, has
been disproved. The equation is erased, the blackboard broken. Sometimes
its a relief. I remember the need, the insatiable hunger that ruled my life
and the lives of everyone around me. Sometimes Im glad to be free of it.
Theres less trouble now [Marion 18].

R bumps his body with other female zombie bodies because he feels like
that is something he faintly remembers doing; he seeks normalcy
through these actions simply because they are what living humans do,
not because they bring him any enjoyment. As the story progresses, Rs
relationship to neoliberal values becomes more and more apparent, and
in doing so, the possibility of him moving closer to life and humanity
become tangible. However, while Rs monstrosity forever denies him the
possibility of attaining normalcy (read: neoliberal status quo), his ability
to change and evolve exists both due to his belief in neoliberal ideologies
as signifying life and the norm7 and his differentiation from the other
undead who do not show his same resolve and dedication.

The Undead Exception to the Rule


As an attempt to differentiate between rational, neoliberal subjects
and deviant, marginalized others, a gesture of symbolic national inclu-

60

Zombies and Sexuality

sion is extended to a small group of people who have the possibility of


subscribing to some of the core tenants of neoliberalism. In Jasbir Puars
discussion of homonationalism, she articulates the ways in which the
proper, neoliberal, white, homosexual has become the newest addition
to the nationalist project of assimilation (namely, the United States, but
many other Western nation states invoke similar agendas). Within this
space, proper homosexual bodies lose their queernesstheir previously perceived deviance and othernessin an attempt to not only perpetuate neoliberal free choice and market ideologies, but also, and
perhaps more importantly, to encourage a national sense of belonging
in the face of an always-present external threat. For Puar the temporality
of these moments, sentiments, actions, and reactions create assemblages
of dominant societal schemas; in other words, the neoliberal case for
individuality, rationality, and freedom articulate with key historical
moments, like the war on terror, gay marriage, immigration, and so
on. These assemblages create new anxieties and tensions surrounding
notions of belonging and not belonging, status quo and abnormality, and compliant citizen and terrorist other.
Within this context, certain bodieswhite, male homosexuals with
adequate spending power and appropriate consumption practicesare
given admission into neoliberal, heteronormative sites of access.8 However, this membership is not without a strict set of guidelines, as LGBTQ
bodies that are most easily read as normative (primarily mainstreaming
gay and lesbian individuals) must subscribe to a new sexual politics that
readily hinges upon the neoliberal possibility of demobilized gay constituency and a privatized depoliticized gay culture anchored in domesticity and consumption (Duggan The New Homonormativity 175). In
other words, a heteronormative approach to gay identity and experience
needs to be invokedhomonormativity.
In Warm Bodies, this membership is visible through the differentiations between R and the other undead, namely, the Boneys. While R
belongs to the group of zombies who, to varying degrees, have their
esh, physically resemble humans, and, as in Rs case, long to regain
their humanity, the Boneys are virtual skeletons who actively detest
humans and strive for an undead takeover (Marion 46). In other words,
even in the land of the undead, social norms, propriety, and neoliberal
values still reverberatethere are good, proper zombies, who still manage to partake in civilizing activities without knowing why they are doing
so, and the inherently broken Boneys, who are too far past saving. One
might assume that due to their shared undead-ness that R would hold

A Love Worth Un-Undying ForCocarla

61

some sort of allegiance to the Boneys. On the contrary, Rs very determination to save Julie from the Boneys, positions humanity, rationality,
and freedom at the forefront, even at the cost of the undeads demise
(Marion 54).
It is here where homonormativity is evoked, which does not
threaten dominant heteronormative ideals, assumptions, and institutions, but instead upholds and further solidies them (Duggan The Twilight of Equality? 50). The effects of this are threefold, allowing for: (1)
the legitimization of a depoliticized gay culture within the larger cultural
imaginary (we are just like you!); (2) rational gays access to neoliberal
avenues previously hidden from them, including the free market, state
recognition and acceptance of their domesticity, and patriotism; and (3)
the neoliberal project to both expand its followers (who will continuously
work to uphold its values) and to further differentiate themselves from
monstrous others.
Returning again to Puar, this new homonormative body holds an
incredible amount of power. Especially since the attacks in the United
States on September 11, 2001, and the subsequent War on Terror,
national (American) allegiance is more necessary than ever in order to
gain access to neoliberal norms as well as to maintain readiness against
terrorist threats. The proper, neoliberal, gay citizen, who is no longer
queered, perverse, and sexually deviant, becomes enveloped within this
national cause, to rid the state of perceived threatsthat is, the racialized
terrorist and the queered, sexual and gendered other (Puar 34). Yes,
the neoliberal gay citizen can still be read as sexually other through their
same-sex attraction and sexual relations. But what becomes more pressing within the context of safe-guarding against monstrous others is that
the American white, gay individual still enacts proper neoliberal and
nationalist ideals: the spending habits, familial values, and political interests of their hetero, rational counterpart. Within homonationalism, a
sexually deviant threat needs to constantly exist (or at least needs to be
believed to exist) in order to best mobilize citizens to their utmost potential.
In the process of perpetuating the myth of America as an allforgiving and accepting nation that is a safe-haven to persecuted outsiders, the racialized, queer, perverse, and other bodies that are perpetually deemed monstrous and irrational remain as the core
ideological threats to the neoliberal project and national undoing. In
other words, even though R is a literal monster himself (and thereby
queered in relation to the human norm), he clings to the dominant

62

Zombies and Sexuality

notion of normalcy and the neoliberal mantra of achievement (if you


work hard enough, you will be successful), implying that he has more
in common with living humans than he does with the Boneys. Through
a homonationalist understanding, in relation to the Boneys, R is the
undead exception to the rulethe undead/homo-par excellence.
Key to the forging of a proper homonormative/homonationalist
project is the distancing of gay subjects from their historically radical
sexual politics, the sexual ethics and practices that in large part constituted their queerness, their difference and ostracism from the norm.
This severing acts as not only a separation from more deviant queers,
but also serves to facilitate the reproduction of classed, gendered, and
racialized norms. Through this intricate relationship, the threatening,
ideological other becomes inscribed with neoliberalisms disaffections,
namely queerness, non-nationality, poverty, and the perversely racialized
(Puar 37). In Warm Bodies, R is only seen as non-threatening through
his desire for neoliberal values, including romance and heteronormative
desire. Without the relationships described at length below, Rs ability
to transcend his inherent otherness would become impossible. It is
therefore through his disgust of his own monstrosity, his queerness, that
neoliberalism is able to grab hold. At the same time, R can never become
un-undead, and so neoliberal success is tentative. The story of R and his
relationships with Perry and Julie are then steeped with complexity,
allowing for both impossibility and possibility, monstrosity and humanity, and queerness and normativity.

Zombie Romance: Worth Undying For


While we are rst introduced to Rs neoliberal yearnings through
his internal musings, it is the romance between R and Julie that is the
catalyst towards obtaining these ideals. On a voyage into the city to scavenge for humans, R kills and eats the brain of a young man named Perry
Kelvin while ambushing a group of late teens/young adults who are also
scavenging for food and resources of their own. As he begins to consume
Perrys brain, R becomes affected by the human memories in a way he
has never before experienced. As he is ooded with these images, for
the rst time since his death, R feels pain and intense emotion, to the
point that he is not able to comprehend what is happening to him (Marion 15). At the same time that R is trying to process Perrys memories
and their effects, he hears a woman scream. As he turns towards the

A Love Worth Un-Undying ForCocarla

63

noise he recognizes her as Perrys girlfriend, Julie, and is overcome with


an intense desire to not only save her from the other zombies but to disguise her as a zombie and take her back to the airport with him (Marion
16).
It is at this moment that the zombie romance begins to unfold.
Within the story, a queered sexuality or romance can be read in multiple
waysthrough the relationship between Perry and R, through the relationship between Perry, R, and Julie, and through the relationship
between R and Julie. At their most basic level, all of these relationships
are queered because they involve the living dead. Unlike the vampires
in many current romantic storylines, the zombies in Warm Bodies are
not attractive beings. While they may be rotting at varying stages, they
are still undoubtedly decaying corpses (Marion 4). Therefore, any
romantic yearning and sexual undertone evident throughout the story
is always-already deeply imbued with a sexual taboo: necrophilia. It is
important to note that I am not conating queerness with necrophilia
or vice versa. Instead, through an understanding of the rational neoliberal sexual subject, any othered sexual act, identity, and desire instantly
becomes monstrous, and, through an understanding of the neoliberal
subject as displaying hetero- and homonormative values, this then translates into queer monstrosity.

Perry and R
While for the most part Warm Bodies subscribes to a conventionally
heteronormative plot (boy meets girl, boy saves girl, boy and girl fall in
love), there are queer elements throughout (perhaps most notably being
the fact that said lover-boy is dead). In addition to this zombie romance
storyline, which I will later argue is an example of a queer normativity,
there are other relationships with R that are inscribed with queerness
(again, due to Rs undead state), with the relationship between Perry and
R being perhaps the most interesting in its queer possibility. The relationship between Perry and R opens itself up to a radical queer reading
that provides a hopeful alternative to the queerly-normative pair that is
R and Julie.
After the initial jolt of emotion that Perrys brain brings when R
eats a part of it, R decides to bring the rest of the brain with him back
to the airport (along with Julie). Instead of instantly devouring every
morsel of it, embracing his zombie instincts, R instead decides to ration
Perrys brain and savor each bite he takes. As he slowly consumes it, he

64

Zombies and Sexuality

is continuously ooded with Perrys memories, including moments from


his childhood, the moment he rst met Julie, the deepening of their
romantic feelings for one another, his fathers death, and the moment
that R killed him (Marion 2011). With each inux of new memories, R
longs for more, but it is not more brains that he is longing for. Instead,
he longs for the familiarity of Perry; his memories seem so familiar in
that it is detailing a life that R once had himself. Through the consumption of Perrys brain, Perrys memories become Rs memories; Perrys
feelings and emotions begin to become Rs feelings and emotions. It is
almost a complete envelopment of one into the other.
Perhaps the most interesting aspect of Perry and Rs relationship is
when Perry begins interacting directly with R, breaking away from the
mere memories (Marion 63). These moments can be understood in multiple ways: perhaps Perrys ghost/spirit is trying to communicate specic
messages to R (after all, why would we assume that R is the only supernatural presence in this story?), or, maybe the consumption of Perrys
brain has created a drug-like hallucinatory effect. Perhaps the most likely
possibility is instead that the consumption of Perrys brain has triggered
dreamlike states in R (he was previously unable to dream), and Perrys
memories are melding with Rs own dreams and thought processes. In
this possibility, Perrys presence is both literal (his brain is in Rs body)
and imagined, an avenue that lets R work through his own existence.
Through both Perrys memories and his communications with R,
we begin to see that Perry had slowly become disillusioned with his surroundingsthe perpetual quest to maintain a sense of normalcy through
clinging to the way things were before zombies and always needing to
dene ones self in reaction to the other (here, all humans are proper and
rational in the face of the zombie-other). The failure of neoliberal rationality seems most apparent when R apologizes to Perry for killing him:
Im sorry I killed you, Perry. Its not that I wanted to, its just
Forget it, corpse, I understand. Seems by that point I wanted out anyway
[Marion 63].

Perry wanted out, and the only way to remove himself from a project
that prized rationality at all costs, was to place himself in a dangerous
position, thereby making an irrational choice.
The pairing of Perry and R is queered on many levels. Aside from the
most obvious point of queerness (the homosocial relationship between
these two men), at all moments of their relationship with each other, Perry
and R are both in various states of death; they are both the abject, mon-

A Love Worth Un-Undying ForCocarla

65

strous other. When R rst encounters Perry he kills him; then R consumeseats/eats outPerry; and nally, they communicate with each
other because one is in the other. I am in you, Perry tells R (Marion 107).
The eating out/eating of Perry is the rst moment that R experiences this
level of intense pleasure. Previous brains left R with only mere seconds of
enjoyment and Perrys brain allows him to reach a more potent, even
orgasmic, state of being, to the point that R does not want it to end.
This relationship is also queered because of their connection with
Julie. This will be expanded upon more below, but throughout their interactions together, Perry continuously asks R to take care of Julie (Marion
63, 107). Finally, and perhaps most importantly, this relationship is queered
because it is positioned within a neoliberal understanding of proper/
improper bodies, proper/improper choices. While R as a zombie is perhaps
most easily read as anti-neoliberal subject (through his decay, irrational
consumption, and undead-state), it actually becomes Perry-through/in-R
that is begging for a complete undoing of social norms. R still clings to the
neoliberal possibility of success, where success is represented by
humanity/life. However, Perry not only recognizes the impossibility of
these social ideals, but also posits neoliberalism as the main culprit. His
continuous presence in Rs mind, blending with his thoughts, is an attempt
to break down Rs quest for normalcy/his quest to attain a yesterday.
Perry: Come on, R, dont you get this yet?
He seems upset by my question. He locks eyes on me and theres a
feverish intensity in them.
Perry: You and I are victims of the same disease. Were ghting the same
war, just different battles in different theaters, and its way too late
for me to hate you for anything, because were the same damn
thing. My soul, your conscience, whatevers left of me woven into
whatevers left of you, all tangled up and conjoined. He gives me a
hearty clap on the shoulder that almost hurts.
Perry: Were in this together, corpse [Marion 107].

Here, Perry is challenging R to recognize the systemic inequalities that


have affected them both. He is asking R to break away from normative
understandings of life, worth, and rationality, and to instead embrace
a queered existence that actively challenges the very notions R is working
so hard to obtain.9 Unfortunately, whether due to the last piece of Perrys
brain having been eaten or the love between Julie and R, Perry then disappears from both Rs mind and the pages of Warm Bodies. It is also
here where a queer, revolutionary possibility dissipates into hetero/
queered-normativity, as R loses the queered, radical possibilities that

66

Zombies and Sexuality

Perry was championing for. Without Perrys queer presence in R, R is


able to move closer to his neoliberal longings, slowly shaking off another
layer of his monstrosity, and bringing him another inch closer to a hetero/queerly-normative-like10 possibility.

R, Julie and Perry


Before entering the culminating sections of this essay, as well as the
more climactic zombie-romance moments, it is important to briey
examine the queered relationship between R, Julie, and Perry. This relationship is unique in that at no point throughout the book are the three
characters physically together at once.11 Yet, the entire romantic relationship between R and Julie exists because R consumed Perrys brain
and his memories. R has romantic feelings for Julie mainly because Perry
had romantic feelings for Julie. All of the relationshipsPerry and R, R
and Juliewould not function without the presence of the missing other.
Although this threesome is not the focus, nor is it even directly referenced within the story, by reading Warm Bodies through a queer lens,
it becomes apparent that this relationship is the literal catalyst for the
other relationships.
Love triangles are not unfamiliar in gothic or supernatural romances,
especially in young adult ction where one commonly nds competition
and contempt between the two male leads over the female lead. In Warm
Bodies, however, there is never competition for Julie between R and Perry.
Yes, that could be simply reasoned to the fact that Perry is dead, but so
is R, and that does not stop a relationship from forming between him
and Julie. Nor is there contempt; in fact, on multiple occasions, Perry
tells R to look out for Julie, to take care of her, and to care for her in
ways that Perry was not able to. If Perry had continued to exist within
R, to be a part of his dreams, thought processes, and emotions while R
romanced Julie, a unique, almost polyamorous relationship could have
ourished, a relationship that would have undoubtedly challenged both
hetero- and homonormative boundaries. Unsurprisingly, though, this
threesome is split up, and a more dominant, normative, acceptable couple emergeseven if one half of that pairing is the undead.

R and Julie
At its core, Warm Bodies is a zombie-romance story, where two
unlikely lovers nd themselves having to battle against forces that deem

A Love Worth Un-Undying ForCocarla

67

their love and choices unacceptable and incompatible. While there are
many amusing similarities between the story of R and Julie with Shakespeares Romeo and Juliet (balcony scene included [Marion 85]), this tale
is not so much about incompatible love as it is about shaping ones love
to t a compatible mold, to change ones self enough that they are an
acceptable love match. The ability to change and evolve into a higher
state of being are the dening features of this story. Throughout Warm
Bodies, many of the characters undergo various changes/processes of
evolution, including Julie (who recognizes Rs growth) and Julies father
(who nally believes Julies pleas). However, amidst all these changes, it
is in fact R who changes and must evolve the most in order to be loved,
accepted, and seen as a rational, contributing citizen.
While the pairings of R and Perry and even R, Perry, and Julie invoke
multiple queered readings, the queerness that manifests through R and
Julies relationship is primarily relegated to R being a zombie and Julie
being human. At its most basic level, the relationship between R and
Julie is tinged with necrophilic possibility without ever actually being
necrophilic; they do not even share a kiss.12 This is not unfamiliar territory, though, especially in young adult ction. Intense yearning and
longing for the monster is common, but many of these supernatural
romance stories promote abstinence, and maybe this is in part to quell
the necrophilic taboo (Platt). While Warm Bodies never explicitly highlights necrophilia, something like it is undoubtedly scattered throughout
the book by mere virtue of the fact that R is dead and Julie is not. Here,
the reader is encouraged to ignore the necrophilic readings since R is
changing, and to instead focus on his progress as he becomes more and
more un-undead/less and less monstrous through his subscription to
normative values and ideals.
The power dynamic of necrophilia, as Scott Dudley states, turns on
the ways that the necrophilic act attempts to convert a subject that has
become an object back into a subject again (Dudley 288). With respect
to Warm Bodies, since R and Julie are never actually physically intimate,
it is the prospect of sex and romance that seems to encourage R to evolve
into a less-dead subject. There is a familiarity in Julies body that he
longs for, and as he spends more time with her, in addition to gaining
Perrys memories of her, he increasingly thinks about what it would be
like to be romantically intimate with her. I nd myself imagining her
dolled up for a concert, her neck-length hair swept and styled, her small
body radiant in a red party dress, and me kissing her, the lipstick smearing onto my mouth, spreading bright rouge onto my grey lips (Marion

68

Zombies and Sexuality

30). Here, these necrophilic possibilities hint at a nostalgic past for R,


and later Julie, as they both begin to piece together their aspirations for
a time that once was but can never be again (Dudley 291).
At the same time, there is fear in both Julie and R over what may
happen if they give in to their desires for one another. If they engage in
necrophilic acts, they will be taking extreme risks, ones that could detrimentally effect their potential to nd normalcy. On multiple occasions,
Julie asks R if his undead disease will be transferred to her if she decides
to kiss him (Marion 86, 122123). On both occasions R is struck by her
forwardness and desire to engage sexually and romantically with him,
but the uncertainty of his monstrous contagion is too much of a risk for
him to take. If they kiss, they risk the possibility of Julie becoming
undead as well, thereby removing the possibility of them achieving a
normative, rational, neoliberal life together, as Julies current state of
humanity is the main thing slowly pulling R up from his lowly existence.
This questioning of Rs contagion in relation to sexuality and romance
is also deeply imbricated in a history of sexual otherness and disease,
specically the cultural fears surrounding gay sex and the transmission
of STIs and HIV. Since Rs queerness is watered down due to his neoliberal aspirations, any submission to his desireshis true monstrosity
via sexuality would leave him forever without hope of fully changing.
Through this, R becomes neutered out of fear, and an abstinence-only
approach is the only way to fulll his (and Julies) aspirations. Longing,
however, is a necessary part of his evolution. He must long for Julie and
the life she promotes in order to achieve the normativity he desires (even
if queered by his undead state).
These longings, where R wishes to be human enough to meet Julies
needs, and where Julie anticipates and encourages his evolution, are
scattered all throughout their abstinent relationship. In two discussions
in particular, Rs desire for change becomes evident, as well as the belief
that his change is dependent on how badly he wants it. The rst occurs
just after the meeting of Julie and R, when R takes Julie back to the airport to save her from the other zombies. While having a (very slow) conversation with his zombie friend, M, R begins to explain that he is feeling
something he has never felt before. M asks:
M: Brought back Living girl?
R: Yes.
M: You crazy?
R: Maybe.
M: Whats feel like?

A Love Worth Un-Undying ForCocarla

69

R: What?
M: Living sex.
I give him a warning look.
M: Shes hot. I would
R: Shut up.
He chuckles.
M: Fucking with you.
R: Its not that. Not like that.
M: Then what?
I hesitate, not sure how to answer.
R: More.
His face gets eerily serious.
M: What? Love?
I think about this, and I nd no response beyond a simple shrug. So I
shrug, trying not to smile.
M: You okay?
R: Changing [Marion 5051].

And later, while reecting on the same conversation with M, R recalls:


M: How can you change? If we all start from the same blank slate, what
makes you diverge?
R: Maybe were not blank. Maybe the debris of our old lives still shapes
us.
M: But we dont remember those lives. We cant read our diaries.
R: It doesnt matter. We are where we are, however we got here. What
matters is where we go next.
M: But can we choose that?
R: I dont know.
M: Were Dead. Can we really choose anything?
R: Maybe. If we want to bad enough [Marion 58].

In these conversations, R expresses how he is changing due to his relationship with and feelings for Julie (as well as Perrys memories). He also
notes that his change could, at least in part, be due to his deep desire to
change. This is key to a neoliberal politic, where one must see the ability
to obtain social and economic privileges as resting solely on ones ability
to change and adapt, to incorporate neoliberal ideals into ones life, as
opposed to seeing inequality as a precondition for the state and cultural
ideals and realities. In the neoliberal view, if one does not achieve (success, rationality, access to the free market, etc.), it is simply because one
has not tried hard enough.
As both the story and R and Julies relationship progress, R increasingly becomes less-undead. He remembers every moment he has had
with Julie (where previously he could not remember anything), his ability

70

Zombies and Sexuality

to speak begins to improve, and most importantly, Rs instincts to eat


humans has subsided (he eats one person after meeting Julie and then
subsequently vomits the remains) (Marion). The end of the book culminates in a showdown between R, Julie, a group of other changing zombies (Rs progress ignites change in his fellow zombies) and Julies father
(who is the leader of a human army) (Marion 138). While we arent aware
of the exact events that transpire, we know that previously Julie had
tried to explain to her father that R was different and that zombies retain
some of their humanity, and, most importantly, they have the ability to
change. The nal scene fast-forwards to a future moment where the
changing zombies are being welcomed into the stadium where the
humans live, while Julie and R are taking a moment to enjoy the sun
outside. Here R contemplates the journey he has been on, including his
ability to become a more rational, and normative subject, even in his
queered state. Rs nal thoughts close Warm Bodies and summarize the
power of a neoliberal agenda during apocalyptic times. The sky is blue.
The grass is green. The sun is warm on our skin. We smile, because this
is how we save the world. We will not let Earth become a tomb, a mass
grave spinning through space. We will exhume ourselves. We will ght
the curse and break it. We will cry and bleed and lust and love, and we
will cure death. We will be the cure. Because we want it (Marion 142).
Just as neoliberalism advocates for individuality and success-via-hard
work only, R similarly sees the possibility of a new world existing because
he wants it bad enough. If they cannot change the world it is simply
because they must not be working hard enough to rid themselves of
roadblocksnamely, their perversity, queerness, monstrosity, and state
of undeath. If R can evolve into a higher being, then there is no excuse
for the other undead.

Conclusion
In Warm Bodies, R embodies the monstrous queer because he is
read as castrated and asexual. He is a zombie on the one hand, and on
the other, he risks infecting Julie if he engages in sexual relations with
her. R also embodies the monstrous queer because of his consumption
of Perry. Throughout the story, R is made asexual, castrated, effeminate,
and monstrous because of his inability to subscribe to heteronormative
valueshe can never-not be a queered being because of his undead
nature. However, as the story unfolds, we see that through Julies encour-

A Love Worth Un-Undying ForCocarla

71

agement and Rs own desire, he slowly begins to unlearn some of his


most deviant behaviors. And as he becomes indoctrinated into normal
life Julie sees him as more sexually desirable. But he is still not-human.
His state of being can never allow him to fully transgress his monstrosity
into normalcy. Because R is always-already queered he is never able to
enter into the space of the neoliberal subject par excellence. R is, however, very willing to comply with social scripts and ideals; he wants nothing more than to regain some semblance of his previous life as a rational
subject. Through his allegiance to state ideals and social norms, R is
increasingly given more access and privilege, including romantic and
sexual access. He becomes a queerly-normative subject in a sexually perverse relationship, who, through a belief in the neoliberal myth of personal freedom, embraces a homonational-like positionality by assisting
in the rebuilding of humanity and the state (Marion 142). By queering
an otherwise fairly heteronormative zombie romance, it becomes evident
that not even death can undo or discourage a neoliberalist project of
rationality and sexual normativity.

Notes
1. Throughout this essay I use queer to imply a non-normative sexuality/gender
identity. This is specically positioned in reference to hetero- and homonormativity
which actively work to reect social and political normalizing ideologies. Here,
queer seeks to go beyond these and all such categories based on the concepts of
normative heterosexuality and traditional gender roles to encompass a more inclusive, amorphous, and ambiguous positionality (Benshoff 5).
2. The perpetuation of liberal and neo-liberal ideologies under the disguise of
sexual openness and tolerance has been highlighted by many theorist in addition to
Duggan and Puar, including Robert McRuer, Judith Butler, Jos Esteban Muoz, Lee
Edelman, and Lauren Berlant, to name but a few. The links that Duggan and Puar
draw out between terrorism and the monstrous-other, in conversation with queerness and neoliberalism, are best suited for this discussion of a queered zombie
romance.
3. Discussions of the monstrous other has been detailed by many theorists,
most notable being Russo; Grosz; Creed; Benshoff.
4. See Auerbach; Gordon and Hollinger; Dennison; Overstreet; Clarke and
Osborn; Click, Aubrey, and Behm-Morawitz for more recent examples of the vampire
as metaphor for social fears and anxieties.
5. While there have been other romantic-comedy stories that feature zombies
(Shaun of the Dead, for example), there are a small number that actually involve
romantic and/or sexual relationships with the zombiesone notable example:
Perkins Hungry for Your Love. With the widespread popularity of both the book and
lm versions of Warm Bodies, it would not be a surprise if zom-rom became a
popular genre in and of itself.
6. The lms Fido and ParaNorman are two notable exceptions where zombies
coexist with other humans (although not always without difficulty).

72

Zombies and Sexuality

7. Here, Rs attachment to and understanding of neoliberalism as being the


norm is deeply tied to his disenchantment with the unlife of the undead. The acts
of the undead are rooted in animalistic instinct, not rationality. As R catches glimpses
of the living-life (through Perry and Julie), R longs to self-improve through subscription to the rational values of the living.
8. Although specic to this article and discussions of sexuality and LGBTQ identities, it is important to note that other queered identities are also given limited
entrance into sites of access under the guise of neoliberal multiculturalism and
tolerance, most often when it best serves neoliberal agendas.
9. This type of failure has been brilliantly theorized by Halberstam in The Queer
Art of Failure, which details the ways in which the notion of success within a neoliberal capitalism is inherently unachievable to marginalized peoples (by virtue of their
existence), and specically highlights queerness as failure and queers as failing the
neoliberal project. In turn, Halberstam works to reframe failure as a fruitful
moment of possibility and achievement.
10. Homonormative has primarily been used with reference to mainstreaming
gay and lesbian individuals. Here, R can never attain heteronormativity (even if in
a hetero relationship) because of his inherent monstrosity/queerness (even if less
queer than the Boneys and after Perrys absence), nor can he attain homonormativity
due to his opposite-gender desire for Julie. He remains sexually othered, and monstrously queered, even while clinging to normative ideals and understandings
queer normativity.
11. The three characters are never together at the same time in Warm Bodies
except for near the beginning when R kills and eats Perry during Perry and Julies
scavenge for food. Interestingly, even in this moment, Julie is unaware/unable to see
what is happening between R and Perry (Marion 21).
12. Interestingly, in the motion picture adaptation of Warm Bodies, R and Julie
do kiss, and it is this kiss that is seen as the nal catalyst needed to complete Rs
change. After they kiss, Rs heart begins to pump, his blood owsfor all intents
and purposes, he is more alive than he is dead. In the book, R remains undead,
although considers himself to be on the road towards life/a less-dead-like state (Marion 142).

For a Good Time Just Scream


Sex Work and Plastic Sexuality
in Dystopicmodern Literature
Denise N. Cook
The transformation of intimacy might be a subversive
inuence upon modern institutions as a whole. The
changes now affecting sexuality are indeed revolutionary,
and in a very profound way.
Giddens 3

In recent years, various short stories have focused on a hitherto


untapped aspect of zombie infested society: undead sex work. This literature provides a unique lens via which to consider the implications of
plastic sexuality, Giddens paradigm for the future evolution of human
sexuality. Although Giddens did not discuss the possibility of zombie
sexuality in The Transformation of Intimacy: Sexuality, Love and Eroticism in Modern Societies, elements of plastic sexuality are pertinently
reected in recent zombie culture, not least since zombie ction illustrates contemporary anxieties about the future. In zombie ction, such
futures are typically indicative of what I term dystopicmodernity: a ctionalized post-apocalyptic society. The term dystopicmodernity refers
to portrayals of modern societies rather than as- yet-inconceivably
advanced techno-societies. In the examples I will address here, the most
signicant component of such societies is the presence of zombies. In
recent ction, many post-apocalyptic portrayals depict the undead as a
key component of dystopian society.
Indeed, zombies are integral to what makes society dystopian in
73

74

Zombies and Sexuality

these texts because, for example, the undead are so ubiquitous in those
societies. In some zombie ction, zombies are a new subspecies of
humans that exist on the fringe of society; they are to be feared and
killed. In other zombie ction, such as the narratives considered in this
essay, the undead are integrated into the core of society. In such societies,
the service sector is comprised of zombies and humans alike. Zombies
are primarily used to complete dangerous tasks, or are employed as a
cheaper alternative to the human employee base. The undead may serve
as domestic servants or indentured slaves, for example. Such inclusion
amplies the sense that zombies are a commonplace feature of dystopicmodern society. The omnipresence of zombies in dystopicmodern society normalizes their presence.
Despite their prevalence, zombies are nevertheless treated as different to and therefore separate from humans. Zombies are treated as
sub-human by the living. Accordingly, in these dystopicmodern stories,
zombie leasing companies offer clients a full range of services, including
sex work. In continuity with sex-workers in reality, zombie sex-workers
in popular culture are hired out or forced to perform sexual services,
typically by living managers, pimps or human-owned companies. There
are some exceptions to these patterns, and I will exemplify some of these
concessions in the analysis of zombie ction below. Regardless, sex work
demonstrates the extent to which the presence of zombies is normalized
in dystopicmodern society. The undead are integrated into all spheres
of life, including sex work.
Portrayals of zombie sex work under dystopicmodernity provide an
interesting vehicle via which to analyze plastic sexuality. Zombie sex
work both evolves and deviates from Giddens notion of plastic sexuality.
Plastic sexuality is what Giddens describes as an outcome of posttraditional sexual attitudes (Gross and Simmons 531). In practice, sexual
plasticity may potentially yield both positive and negative outcomes.
Self-fulllment is the driving factor of plastic sexuality and it is the standard by which behaviors are judged: if sex is not fullling, it is not moral
(Rubin 15). However, plastic sexuality is also underpinned by an egalitarian ethos. Sexuality should be fullling for everyone equally, or ones
self-fulllment should not come at the expense of someone elses. This
balance between self-fulllment and egalitarianism is hard to maintain.
That difficulty is explored in various ways in the examples of zombiection I analyze below. The main source of tension here is the difference
between human sexuality and zombie sexuality: the former is routinely
privileged over the latter. The living typically perceive zombies as sub-

For a Good Time Just ScreamCook

75

human and negate the desires of the undead. That biaswhich centers
on zombie sexualityis distinctly non-egalitarian. Although zombie sex
work appears to offer a plastic, expanded range of sexual expressions in
these dystopicmodern texts, they do so for humans only. Thus, by centralizing various forms of zombie sex work, these stories evoke plastic
sexuality and expose its aws. During the course of this essay then, I
will explore what zombie sex work is, and how zombie sex work relates
to plastic sexuality. To do so, I will examine several literary short stories
in which zombies and sex work collude. Before engaging with those
examples, I will begin by briey explaining what is meant by plastic sexuality.

Plastic Sexuality
As Giddens denes it, plastic sexuality is dissimilar to passionate
love because of its detachment from romance (2). Plastic sexuality is a
form of sexual expression that is performed for pleasure as opposed to
procreation (27). Furthermore, plastic sexuality varies in expression from
one person to the next (2). Accordingly, plastic sexuality is connected
to the identity of the individual, and so helps to mold ones identity (144).
Since sexual expression varies from individual to individual, normalcy
is also hard to pin-point: almost anything goes in the realm of plastic
sexuality (179). Two key ideas follow. First, plastic sexuality is uid and
malleable. Second, so long as participants derive pleasure from the sexual
exchange, any sexual pursuit is acceptable. These conditions can certainly lead to positive outcomes, including a greater sense of egalitarianism. Yet, the lack of explicit sexual boundaries in plastic sexuality may
also lead to negative outcomes such as addiction (although Gross and
Simmons 549) contend that Giddens overemphasizes how common such
outcomes are.
Giddens (27) coined the term plastic sexuality to describe how our
sexual attitudes have and might continue to evolve over time. Subsequent
thinkers have utilized his paradigm to examine a myriad of related topics.
Langdridge and Butt (65) explore erotic power exchange utilizing plastic
sexuality as means to describe the emergence and normalization of sadomasochistic power play. Ross (342) argues that the Internet may help to
facilitate plastic sexuality. Guy uses Giddens Transformation of Intimacy
as a template when recounting the evolution of sexuality, situating plastic
sexuality in what he calls an autonomous social system (Guy 6). Gid-

76

Zombies and Sexuality

dens sexual evolution was previously expanded on in Warrs (251) elucidation of how plastic sexuality affects safe sex practice. Warr explains
that as the practice of monogamy becomes less common, the importance
of safer sex becomes paramount in limiting the spread of sexually transmitted diseases. What is important here is the emphasis placed on nontraditional forms of sexuality; that is, on how sex manifests a nonmonogamous, post-traditional world. Paul Johnson (191) is among the
thinkers who have explored related issues, coming to rather more cautious conclusions about how far sexuality has evolved. Johnson uses Giddens model to explore ways in which plastic sexuality might affect
homo/hetero sexual binaries. In spite of Giddens broad scale assertion
that sexual norms have become less stringent over time, sexual identity
and orientation remains fairly intact according to Johnson. In other
words, Johnson nds that the people he studies are not comfortable with
exceeding the bounds of normative intimate practices. While Giddens
conceptualizes plastic sexuality as an advance towards post-traditional
forms of sexuality, the cultural imagination shares some of Johnsons
caution when it comes to sexual plasticity. As I will demonstrate via
my analysis of zombie ction, zombie sexuality appears to embody many
of the traits that characterize Giddens plastic sexuality. However,
dystopicmodern ction is ultimately underpinned by a regressive vision
of sexuality, for men and women alike.

Zombie Sex Work


To clarify these points, I will turn to zombie sex work itself. Zombie
sex work is depicted in short stories such as What Maisie Knew, by
David Liss. In this and other zombie narratives, zombie sex-workers
come in various forms, ranging from prostitutes and mistresses to strippers and sex objects. Before we can apprehend who zombie sex-workers
are, it is important to grasp what zombie sex work is. In the examples I
employ below, zombies and sex work collude in four ways. The rst is
the most prevalent: humans seek the services of zombie sex-workers.
The other three incarnations of zombie sex work include zombies seeking the services of zombie sex-workers, zombies seeking the services of
human sex-workers, and nally zombies seeking voyeuristic entertainment by viewing humans engaging in sex with other humans.
The incarnations of sex work found in zombie ction do not simply
manifest plastic sexuality as Giddens describes it, although Giddens

For a Good Time Just ScreamCook

77

paradigm provides a way into understanding what sex work means in


the context of dystopicmodern zombie ction. One of the core tenets of
plastic sexuality is that sexual expressions are contingent on participants
mutual enjoyment. Pleasure and attraction are the facilitators of plastic
sexuality, not romance (Langdridge et al., 68; see also Giddens 27; Gross
and Simmons 536). This is because romance is not egalitarian; as Warr
(245) posits, romance reinforces traditional sexual hegemony. Thus,
plastic sexuality potentially provides a liberating alternative to romances
subordinating structure (Giddens 57; Rubin 9). Portrayals of zombie sex
work typically follow this pattern, eschewing romance. In The Dead
and First Love Never Dies, zombie sex work is a nancially driven
exchange driven by sexual release rather than romance.
Among my examples, the only exception to this trend is the short
story Third Dead Body, but even here the romance is short-lived. In
Third Dead Body, Shelias grandmother cursed her to love the thing
that hurts her and kills [her], even after it kills [her] (Hoffman 84).
When Shelia arises from her grave, she is compelled to love Ritchie, the
client who hurt and killed her. Zombie-Shelia at rst seeks to enter into
a romantic relationship with Ritchie, pursuing what Giddens would call
a quest-romance; a love-based relationship that starts with sexual expression (50). However, the relationship is one in which Sheila is victimized
by Ritchie. In time, and spurred on by the women who gave her a ride
into town, Shelia realizes that she must no longer submit to Ritchies
power. Her quest-romance is not destined to end with a happily-everafter coupling. Eventually, Sheila turns against Ritchie, having him
arrested for her murder. Indeed, since it was founded on murder and a
curse, Sheilas quest for romance was doomed from the outset.
In this tale, romance is rejected in favor of mutable and uid sexuality between human and zombie. Sheila and Ritchies relationship is
not characteristic of plastic sexuality in Giddens sense, however. Sheila
is eventually compelled to reject Ritchie because their relationship is
not mutually fullling. During her relationship with Ritchie, zombie
Sheila is subordinate to his desires, seeking to appease him. In Shelias
case, plastic sexuality eventually manifests not as an equal partnership
between Sheila and Ritchie, but via Sheilas self-fulllment. The tale
nears a close not with an idealized, conventional romantic coupling, but
with Sheilas rebirth as a full sexual subject (albeit an undead one). In
the conclusion, Shelia makes her way back to her grave to nally rest in
peace.
Plastic sexuality is not limited by conventional modes of expression

78

Zombies and Sexuality

such as romance. In fact, varied expression is a key component of plastic


sexuality (Ross 346; Huei-Hsia Wu 128; Guy 4), one which is representative of how discourses about sex are changing in the 21st century
(Attwood 80). The zombie texts under analysis contribute to those shifting discourses. They also exemplify sexual diversity, thereby contributing
to an expanded sexual imagination. For example, What Maisie Knew
represents forms of sexuality that may appear to be illicit or forbidden
by contemporary standards. In the dystopicmodern context, however,
the protagonists are free to indulge in all manner of sexual expressions.
In What Maisie Knew, Walter, a promising salesman, purchases a reanimate from a zombie sex and strip club. In the club, zombie sex-worker
enthusiasts (reanimate fetishists), enjoy the titillation that zombie sexworkers provide and also contract the direct sexual services of zombie
prostitutes. Walters visit to the club is initiated by a coworkers bachelor
party: it is a public, acceptable form of sexual entertainment enjoyed at
a time of celebration, rather than a seedy, private liaison. This example
illustrates the kind of market-led freedom to express and explore ones
sexual appetites that is characteristic of plastic sexuality. In dystopicmodern zombie ction, these varied opportunities for sexual expression
increase for two reasons. First there are new potential partners to copulate with (namely zombies). Second, from the perspective of the living
clients, zombies are the ultimate plastic sexual partners. Zombie sexworkers are like the real thing (human sex-workers), only better. Those
who consume sexual services from zombies certainly are not concerned
by the risks of pregnancy, for instance, as they might be when engaging
with other living humans. These zombie sex-workers are servile to the
purchasers unfettered whims. No limitations or penalties are imposed
on the customer, so the living have no direct impetus to stop and reect
on their acts. In these texts, zombies represent a source of free, adaptable
sexuality that is not hindered by traditional sexual morality. In short,
they epitomize the goal of plastic sexuality.
These forms of plastic zombie sexuality therefore also stretch the
bounds of normalcy. In dystopicmodern society, zombie sex work is both
a viable and an acceptable option for sexual fulllment. In our current
social context, many nd the commodication of sex distasteful. However, zombie sex work takes commodication a step further. Sexual intimacy is bound by social context (Giddens 19; Wagner 290). The context
of dystopicmodernity provides a unique opportunity to redene notions
of normalcy (sexual or otherwise) because in a post-apocalyptic society,
rules change. That is, the zombie apocalypse reshapes the social struc-

For a Good Time Just ScreamCook

79

ture. As part of the same process, social norms are altered, because one
is inextricable from the other. Sexual pleasure bridges between our most
intimate personal attitudes and the social fabric that impacts on such
desires. Zombies, who are usually considered monstrous, become sexually desirable. As is illustrated by ction in which living protagonists
freely and openly engage with zombie sex-workers, radical changes in
the social fabric impact on ones most personal attitudes.
Similarly, plastic sexuality shapes the identity of those who participate in it (Hancock et al., 4; Hawkes 3411; Wagner 292). Thus, although
plastic sexuality stretches the boundaries of normalcy and despite freedom being the goal of plastic sexuality, it is hard to see how plastic sexuality can facilitate such an escape. According to Gross and Simmons,
the individual is continually obliged to negotiate life-style options, and
this can lead to positive and negative outcomes (540). The positive outcomes are that the individual is not stuck in any one mode of behavior
and if ones sexual activity is not pleasurable there are ample opportunities to change ones sexual practices. But the negative outcomes are
rather dire: constant change and a lack of self-security can lead to
anomie.
Meathouse Man by George R. R. Martin exemplies the perilous
line between these outcomes, depicting a blue collar corpse handler
(Trager) who forms his identity around plastic sexuality and zombie sex
work. With savings earned from his job controlling zombie miners,
Trager regularly frequents meathouses, brothels which offer the sexual
services of zombies. These brothels are havens of sexual freedom for
the clients, who pay to indulge in any sexual acts they wish. In the narrative, Trager is personally invested in his amorous encounters with a
zombie prostitute. Since they climax simultaneously, he is under the
impression that she too enjoys their encounters. However, Trager discovers that the zombie sex-worker does not reciprocate his feelings.
Rather, the zombies are implanted with microchips that make the zombie
respond automatically to the clients brainwaves. The revelation leads
Trager into depression and isolation. The benet that Trager gains from
the interaction is that in spite of heartache and self-doubt, he grows and
develops into a passionate person who is capable of feeling what he
believes to be an intimate connection with the zombie, something Trager
failed to achieve in his relations with human women. Tragers case illustrates both the positive and negative outcomes Gross and Simmons refer
to. Plastic sexuality can be a vehicle for personal growth, but a stable
foundation is paramount to the success of shaping those sexually-dened

80

Zombies and Sexuality

identities. Simultaneously, because plastic sexuality is uid, ones sexual


identity must also be malleable. The liminal world of zombie-apocalypse
is shaky terrain, and so does not lend itself to stable growth. Accordingly,
sexual identities are typically fragile in these texts.

Egalitarianism
In its superlative formabstracted from social circumstance
plastic sexuality should empower women and men alike. Various scholars
gesture towards this ideal telos. Giddens refers to sexual freedom as
a means by which power is expressed (144), for instance. In addition,
Rubin (9) perceives plastic sexuality as a means for women to gain
control over their sexuality and thereby yield greater power within
society. Pace these views, portrayals of zombie sex work in ction
illustrate the aws that arise from putting such notions into practice.
Zombie sex work is rarely sexually empowering for women in these
narratives. In fact, zombie sex work is typically more phallocentric in
nature. In stories such as Meathouse Man and What Maisie Knew,
most clients are human and male, while most zombie sex-workers are
female. Zombie Gigolo by S.G. Browne and The Dead by Michael
Swanwick are rare exceptions to this rule, featuring male zombie sexworkers.
Zombie Gigolo is narrated from the perspective of the male zombie sex-worker whose clients are female zombies. He speaks rather candidly about his sexual arousal and the sexual pleasure he provides for
his clients. Since his role is to sexually satisfy female clients, the clients
might appear to hold the powered position in their exchange. However,
should the female client fail to arouse the gigolo, the session is quickly
terminated. Thus, this narrative illustrates that males have sexual privilege, even in undeath and even in the apparently plastic world of
dystopicmodern sexuality. In this example, zombie sex work is closer to
traditional romantic love-based sexual culture than to the egalitarian
ideals of plastic sexuality. The male gigolo has sexual agency and his
female clients are subject to his decisions. The females have only the
power to request his services, but ultimately he decides whether he
wants to see that client and for how long. This male-biased arrangement
echoes Giddens description of romantic love as an active engagement with the maleness of modern society (2). In other words, romantic love is anathema to plastic sexual egalitarianism because it reinforces

For a Good Time Just ScreamCook

81

male hegemonic power. The romance model typically assumes that


females need men in order to nd sexual fulllment.
Even though The Dead is based around a more equal gender balanceclients and zombie sex-workers can be either male or female
the narratives sexual climate is far from egalitarian. First, in this story,
zombie sex work is just another component of the zombie service sector.
Zombie sex-workers are given to clients as corporate gifts and are mainly
consumed by those who can afford to indulge in undead sex (namely the
wealthy). The zombies are explicitly treated as lesser beings in this equation. In these ways, the zombie sex exchange is founded on inequality.
Second, the story features a male zombie sex-worker, whose client
(Courtney) is an inuential female executive. Courtney has power in the
exchange, and the zombie is hired simply to enact her sexual fantasies.
The male zombie is given orders and performs. His opinion, if he has
one, goes unacknowledged. Although this story more closely ts Giddens denitions of female empowerment than other zombie sex-worker
narratives do, it is nevertheless notable that female empowerment comes
at the cost of the zombies freedom. Although it is plastic insofar as sexuality is openly pursued and takes on a variety of uninhibited forms, sex
is not based on freedom for all in The Dead.
The same issues haunt other examples of zombie ction in which
the zombie sex-workers are female, including Seminar Z by J.L.
Comeau, Meathouse Man by George R. R. Martin, First Love Never
Dies by Jan Kozlowski, Third Dead Body by Nina Kiriki Hoffman,
and What Maisie Knew by David Liss. In Seminar Z, a living male
teenager receives a female zombie sex-worker as a gift from his father.
The teenager and his friends use the zombie as a source of recreational
sex. In this case, it initially appears as if the zombie sex-workers feelings
are accounted for in this schema. She wears a mask, which appears to
be a way of providing the zombie with modesty. However, the mask is
designed for the customers benet. Principally, the mask is a safety
device. So, when an EcoCorp InniZ client attempts to pry off the mask,
the customer service agent implores the client to leave it in place;
InniZ does not recommend that you (Comeau 182). However, the
client ignores the advice and demands that the customer service agent
watches the havoc that ensues. The mask is designed to restrain the
zombie, thereby privileging the customers sexual desires over the zombies will. Moreover, on wrench[ing] the mask aside the client is
exposed to the zombies true visage: the sex-worker has the ravaged,
decomposing face of an elderly woman (Comeau 182). Thus, the mask

82

Zombies and Sexuality

is also designed to obscure the reality of the zombies body and former
identity: it hides the fact that the zombie was elderly and is now an animated rotting cadaver. In Seminar Z then, the zombie sex exchange is
not a portrayal of sex work as an acceptable practice engaged in by willing participants who retain their dignity. Rather, the story is underpinned
by traditionalist sexual views (albeit in an amplied form). The zombiehuman sex exchange is conditional on male sexual pleasure only; the
male decides when the female zombie is sexually useful and when they
are not. If the male no longer derives sexual pleasure from the zombie,
then the zombie sex-worker is discarded and disposed of. Indeed, the
masks feature a deactivation button that allows the client to permanently
terminate the undead sex-workers services when they are no longer useful. In Seminar Z, the zombie is not simply a lesser creature. She is
reduced to a sex object. The mask implies that the zombie sex-workers
have feelings (which need to be muzzled), but it also allows men to treat
them as objects.
Meathouse Man and First Love Never Dies offer similar narratives. As outlined above, the sex-workers in Meathouse Man are
undead prostitutes implanted with microchips that cause them to
respond automatically to their clients desires. Although they appear to
actively enjoy the sexual exchanges they participate in, the zombies provide no input in the sexual encounters. The clients (such as lead protagonist Trager) thus assume that they are engaging in a form of plastic
sexuality. The clients are free to indulge in whatever fantasy they wish
to, and the zombie prostitute appears to mutually benet from their
congress. Indeed, the zombie prostitutes are programmed to achieve
orgasm concurrently with the clients, fostering a sense of sexual egalitarianism. Yet the implanted microchips undercut that impression,
demonstrating that egalitarianism is not possible when the sexual
exchange is based solely on one partys desires. While one party is under
the inuence of behavior-altering neural implants, sex cannot be equal
or mutually fullling, however free it appears to be. This underlying
inequality is highlighted when Trager discovers the truth. Despite knowing that the prostitute is mirroring and performing rather than sharing
his pleasure, Trager continues to visit the Meathouse. In the end, his
sexual fulllment is privileged over the zombies well-being. His decision
to continue frequenting the brothel supports inequality to the detriment
of the fully formed plastic sexuality he originally thought he was engaging in.
In these dystopicmodern texts, it is not only zombies who are sex-

For a Good Time Just ScreamCook

83

ually exploited. Skull Faced City offers a different vision of inequality


in which humans are sexually exploited by zombies. In this short story,
zombies force imprisoned humans to have sex with each other for purpose of entertaining the zombies. The captives are not paid for their
sexual performance; rather they are threatened with death if they do not
have sex with one another. This form of sexual expression might be considered plastic inasmuch as it frees humans from the pressures of normative social structures and romantic love, for instance. It also creates
an egalitarian state of sorts. First, the zombies are equals to one another.
The male zombie in charge respects the wishes of his wife, for example.
Second, the captured humans are equal to one another: they are all
equally sex slaves. However, that limited form of egalitarianism comes
at the expense of their sexual freedom. In Skull Faced City, sex is ultimately non-egalitarian, since sexual power belongs to the zombies alone,
and the living are divested of sexual choice. Moreover, this version of
sex is not plastic, since although they are equal to one another, the
humans do not share or demonstrate satisfaction. Sex is performed on
demand, and is an expression of coercive harm, not pleasure. Ironically,
the humans sexual performances are distinctly mechanical and zombielike.
None of these stories capture the sexual egalitarianism at the heart
of Giddens plastic sexuality, then. In these stories, the structures that
govern sexual codes of conduct are imprisoning, and are severely biased
towards the pleasure of one party over another. Indeed, in these stories,
one partys sexual pleasure is typically contingent on the other partys
sexual subjugation. Most notably, despite some fanciful exceptions such
as the zombie-run system depicted in Skull Faced City, or the fantastic
vision of zombies who can mirror the clients passion in Meathouse
Man, these examples of zombie sex work usually privilege normative
traditionalist views of sex, such as the centralization of male desire. In
cases where the sex-workers are zombies, the clients are typically male.
Male sexual pleasure is paramount and male sexual control is underlined
in these texts. Rarely do the male clients consider the sexual pleasure of
the female undead sex-worker. Even where they doas in the cases of
Maisie and Walter (What Maisie Knew) or Trager and the sex-worker
(Meathouse Man)the zombies opinion is ultimately disregarded in
favor of male sexual pleasure.
Thus, Seminar Zs gagged zombie sex-objects offer an archetypal
image of the zombie sex-worker. Outside of occasional guttural growls
or moans, zombies are rarely even able to express any desires they might

84

Zombies and Sexuality

have. This is exemplied in the case of the zombie sex-worker in First


Love Never Dies. In this tale of zombie sexual servitude, a criminal
pimps his zombied daughter out to the highest paying customers. After
a whistleblower informs the authorities of the situation, the police rescue
the zombie daughter. However, the police discover that they cannot communicate with the bound, voiceless, undead victim, who can only moan.
As such, it is impossible to tell whether she consents, suffers, or even
whether she has sexual sentience. Since zombies often cannot communicate, they are effectively silenced by their limiting physiology. That is,
they are muzzled at the most fundamental level.

The Dangers of Plasticity


Thus, although these texts embody elements of plastic sexuality,
they lack the egalitarianism that Giddens valorizes. That lack is anchored
in two core elements: (a) social structures that are oriented towards providing one individual with sexual pleasure at the expense of another
individual, and (b) zombie physiology, which is not adapted to permit
expression of desires. At these fundamental levels, the version of plastic
sexuality offered in zombie ction is limited. Here, plastic sexuality is
stripped of its key tropeegalitarian sexual freedomand reassembled
as a kind of Franken-sexuality: a bastardized and awed assemblage.
Subsequently, it is little wonder that this version of plastic sexuality typically veers towards the ill effects Giddens outlines as potential negative
consequences of plastic sexuality. These include addiction, anxiety, compulsiveness, male violence toward women, and obsession (121).
For example, Tragers frequent visits to the brothel in Meathouse
Man are illustrative of addiction. Unable to sustain a relationship with
another living human, Trager compulsively returns to the zombie
brothel, where modied zombie prostitutes are programmed to reect
his own desires. Tragers compulsion is born out of anxiety; fear of being
rejected by his own kind. Interacting with other humans damages his
self-esteem, while the zombie prostitutes bolster his self-love. Since they
mirror and reinforce his desires, the zombie prostitutes are conduits for
Tragers immature narcissism. They not only conform to his desires, but
also validate his desirability. Therefore, his engagements with the prostitutes are addictive because they are rooted in his self-esteem. Each visitation conrms that he is worthy of sexual attention. At the same time,
it is an unfullling form of self-validation because it is only simulated

For a Good Time Just ScreamCook

85

attention. In order to satisfy Trager, that attention must be continually


reinforced by repeated visits to the Meathouse. Tragers visits to the
brothel are fraught with the kind of deep- seated anxiety and selfjeopardy that Giddens (71) and Gross and Simmons (539) refer to when
discussing the potential pitfalls of plastic sexuality.
In Giddens view, sexual compulsion typically manifests via two key
behaviorswomanizing and episodic sexualitywhich are linked by
compulsiveness (81). Although Giddens phrasing implies bias towards
male sexual attitudes (womanizing), such forms of compulsion are not
exclusive to men, and the zombie texts under discussion do not limit
compulsive sexuality to men alone. Both The Dead and Third Dead
Body depict women enacting sexually compulsive behaviors. In The
Dead, Courtney lusts after a nameless zombie sex-worker. Indeed, her
compulsion for sex with the dead leads her to forego sex with a human
male when it is offered to her. As with Trager in Meathouse Man, the
zombies conformity to the living clients desire is more appealing than
complex human relationships. Like Trager, Courtney nds sanctuary in
the fantasy-world of zombie sex. The Dead describes zombie sex as an
acceptable pursuit rather than an abnormal form of expression, so Courtneys choice is not condemned as such. However, her rejection of humanity in favor of a non-reciprocal relationship with a mindless sex-slave
captures the key danger that Giddens notes when theorizing plastic sexuality: freedom may lead to power-biased, obsessive forms of sexual selffulllment that undercut the sexual egalitarianism we ought to strive for.
Third Dead Body is explicit about the damage that might arise
out of compulsion. Under the sway of her grandmothers curse, undead
protagonist Shelia is compelled to lust after her murderer (Ritchie). Her
obsession leads her to reckless abandon as she seeks to reunite with him.
Shelia hitchhikes from her grave to the city in search of Ritchie and when
she nds him, she allows him to take her captive so he can escape from
authorities. In this case, Sheilas curse-based obsession is analogous to
compulsion since both sway the individuals sexual behavior, causing
them to act in unsound and potentially harmful ways. In fact, the curse
and compulsion are akin to ardent sexual lust, which may also blind the
individual to the potentially self-effacing consequences of fullling their
desires. Third Dead Body thereby captures the dark side of plastic sexuality Giddens hypothesizes about in The Transformation of Intimacy.
Another of Giddens hypothesized negative outcomesthat plastic
sexuality might lead to violence against womenis manifested in What
Maisie Knew. After discovering that zombies talk about their previous

86

Zombies and Sexuality

human lives during sex or if they suffer pain, living human protagonist
Walter purchases a zombie sex-worker, Maisie: the undead version of a
women Walter previously murdered. Walters intent is to stop Maisie
from telling others about Walters crime. Over several sex sessions, Walter discovers that Maisie remembers everything about the night he murdered her. Fearing that she will enact revenge on him, Walter has Maisie
destroyed: Maisie is taken to a gathering of male reanimate fetishists
who dismember her corpse with hand tools. Maisies disturbing fate at
the hands of these men manifests an extreme version of Giddens concern regarding violence towards women. Giddens (153) hypothesizes
that such violence is the result of a failure to sustai[n] basic trust,
related unresolved issues regarding mastery and control, and
repressed emotional dependence upon women. Walters fear that someone might discover his secret is indicative of his inability to sustain trust,
since it spirals into a paranoid compulsion to destroy Maisie entirely.
Violence is expressive of Walters desire to assert mastery and control.
Such control is inextricable from his sexuality since Walter purchases,
imprisons, and has sex with Maisie. He has complete control over her.
His decision to have her killed is the ultimate articulation of that control.
Since she belongs to him, it is not necessary to have her dismembered.
Nevertheless, Walter does so out of fear over her ability to eventually
take revenge. Walters reaction underlines that he considers Maisie to
be powerful: she ultimately has the power to ruin him if she exposes
him. In order to repress his dependence on her (to use Giddens terms),
Walter enacts extraordinary violence on her person. What is notable
here is that Walter is concerned with himself: his guilt over the murder
he committed and his fear that he will lose control. Maisie is reduced
to simply an embodiment of Walters inner-conicts. To Walter, Maisie
is a cipher, not a being. In What Maisie Knew, then, plastic sexuality
is undercut by the same narcissistic projection we see elsewhere in stories about zombie sex work. Tales such as What Maisie Knew highlight
that personal sexual freedom could easily slip into harmful selfindulgence. This, as Giddens recognizes, is one of the main dangers that
encumbers plastic sexuality.

Conclusion
At its best, plastic sexuality opens a door to endless sexual possibilities (Young; Johnson; Langdridge et al.). Yet, at its worst, Giddens

For a Good Time Just ScreamCook

87

believes that plastic sexuality could have dire consequences for men and
women alike (Giddens 65; Gross and Simmons 540). In Giddens view,
plastic sexuality may be fragmentary, and could lead to destructive
behaviors (see also Sanders 401). Whilst researchers such as Gross and
Simmons (549) are less convinced that plastic sexuality is problematic,
the representations of plastic sexuality offered in dystopicmodern zombie ction underline the darkest potentials of sexual plasticity.
Although the dystopicmodern context differs from our own everyday environments, these depictions analogize social and sexual concerns
that are relevant to our lives. Giddens uses real-world examples to conceptualize the directions in which sexuality might be heading. Zombie
ction provides an alternative way of hypothesizing about the same
issues Giddens raises. As Glassner (xi) observes, popular culture commonly reects our societal fears and assumptions about the future.
As such, portrayals of zombie sexuality paint a mixed picture of
sexual freedoms and sexual dangers. Zombie sex-workers may seem farfetched and fantastic compared with the everyday realities of sexual
expression that we engage in. Consequently, we might fail to see the
connections between sexuality under dystopicmodernity and under our
present social circumstances. However, it is worth noting that, as I have
demonstrated throughout this essay, the potential pitfalls of plastic sexualitynarcissism, distrust, violence against womenare all-too familiar and are readily applicable to our daily sex lives. In contrast, the ideals
that plastic sexuality could representegalitarianism, mutual pleasure,
sexual expression free from moral judgmentseem, troublingly, all-too
distant.

Laid to Rest
Romance, End of the World
Sexuality and Apocalyptic
Anticipation in Robert Kirkmans
The Walking Dead
Emma Vossen
I cant believe Im saying this but the dead, theyre a manageable threat. I can see the mistake I made wanting to run
not being willing to stand and ght Ive seen how we can
organize, plan, how if we do things right if everyone does
their part we can survive anything we can rebuild the
walls, stronger, taller make our community better than it
ever was I think about the road ahead of us, and for the
rst time it seems long and bright. After everything weve
been though, all the people weve lost I suddenly nd myself
overcome with something I thought wed lost hope. I
want to show you this new world I want to make it a reality
for you
Rick Grimes to his son Carl after the destruction of their
home and community [Kirkman ch 14].

Apocalyptic Anticipation
In 2007 lm scholar Kirsten Moana Thompson established and
traced the phenomenon that she refers to as apocalyptic dread throughout late 90s and post9/11 American cinema. Thompsons analysis builds
88

Laid to RestVossen

89

on Soren Kierkegaards concept of dread, which includes theorizations


about the paradoxical and ambivalent dimensions of anxiety (dread)
that suggest that the implications of knowledge and freedom of choice
are not just liberating, but also deeply terrifying (Thompson 18).
Thompson observes that horror narratives built on anxieties about both
the future and the present became increasingly popular around the turn
of the millennium. Narratives of global catastrophe often represent these
apocalyptic fears in the form of monsters, including the zombie.
These apocalyptic narratives, Thompson argues, are a new manifestation of a long-standing American apocalyptic tradition that was
built out of puritanism and has since reemerged many times in cinema,
from the science ction lms of the cold war, to the demonic horror
lms of the 1970s (18). Thompson contends that this American apocalyptic tradition reach[es] a hysterical peak in the nineties in a cycle of
horror, disaster, and science ction lms explicitly focused on the
approaching millennium (18). The last phase of this trend includes the
post9/11 horror lms, in which the dread took new forms with anxieties about the rise of Islamic fundamentalism and terrorism from
within (Thompson 18). This same tradition of apocalyptic dread can be
traced not only within cinema, but within the medium of comics as well.
The same apocalyptic fear that Thompson tracks was reected in the
early Cold War pulp comics,1 and the genre subsequently underwent an
extreme dystopian turn in the late 70s and early 80s alongside lm
(Thompson 2). This turn can be seen in the extreme popularity of
Reagan-era dystopian comics, including Frank Millers The Dark Knight
Returns (1986), as well as Alan Moores Watchmen (19861987) and V
for Vendetta (19821989).
The idea of apocalyptic dread can be traced throughout the lineage
of science ction and horror in both lm and graphic ction: both art
forms attempt to confront our ambiguous future. Fredrick Jamesons
esteemed observation that science ction is oftentimes dystopian
because it embodies our inability to imagine a collective future, has since
been taken up by Constance Penley who instead insists that we can imagine a future, and dystopia instead illustrates that we cannot conceive
the kind of collective political strategies necessary to change or ensure
that future (qtd. in Thompson 2). Both theorists illustrate that dystopia
represents our desire for global change, even if we would not want to
live in the apocalyptic worlds of our dystopian ction. Almost twelve
years after 9/11, dystopian narratives remain popular, but contemporary
dystopian science ction comics and lms demonstrate that we have

90

Zombies and Sexuality

moved beyond our inability to conceive of the collective political strategies to escape capitalism, and accepted that there is no political strategy
that will take us into a post-capitalist, utopian future.
Many of us have conceded our utopian dreams, admitting that capitalism, and the social and ideological constraints that accompany it, are
too pervasive to overcome. Indeed, it is becoming harder to distinguish
between our current pre-apocalyptic existence and our dystopian imagination. The period of apocalyptic dread that Thompson chronicles is
over. We are now living in a time in which our lms and comics stand
not for our fear of apocalypse, but instead reect what I will refer to as
apocalyptic anticipation.2 Because we have no political strategy that
will lead us to a more advantageous post-capitalist world, we are instead
searching for a larger, greater end that is above political distinction, an
end that is all consuming. Recently, the zombie apocalypse has become
the most popular of dystopian end-points. These dystopian zombie narratives no longer represent our dread that the world might end, and
instead offer a fantasy in which we anticipate and invite the apocalypse,
hoping that it will liberate or relieve us not only from our debt and more
quotidian economic constraints, but also from our increasingly bleak
looking future. Rather than offering portentous warnings, many new
apocalyptic narratives are optimistic and romantic versions of the end
of the world. They offer escapism from the present, allowing readers to
imagine what day-to-day life would be like in a near future postapocalypse. The post-apocalyptic world is one in which it is hard to take
anything for granted. Having lost their quotidian luxuries and possessions, survivors are forced to acknowledge and appreciate the simple
pleasures of companionship.
To illustrate this phenomenon, this essay is focused on a prominent
example of anticipatory apocalyptic ction: Robert Kirkman and Charlie
Adlards wildly popular zombie epic The Walking Dead (2003-present)
(Gaudiosi). The Walking Dead comic sets a new standard for the zombie
narrative by focusing not on the monsters, but rather on the humans
living amongst them. The protagonists are visibly concerned about nding food, shelter, and weapons, as is characteristic of post-apocalyptic
narratives. However, these details are mechanical rather than pivotal to
The Walking Deads thematic interests. The primary concern, instead,
is attaining and sustaining human contact. These survivors are not simply concerned with killing or avoiding zombies; the impetus for their
very continued existence is to nd a suitable home in which to settle
down, begin anew, and very importantly, to fornicate. What makes this

Laid to RestVossen

91

series such a distinct artifact in the saturated zombie subgenre is the


prominent roles that sex and relationships play in sustaining the storyline. Narrative conicts revolve less around a zombie threat than they
do the narrative tropes of romantic melodrama, focusing particularly
on emotional and physical relationships. The story is ripe with lies, love,
murder, sex, cheating, pregnancy, jealousy, mental illness, friendship,
family, sickness, and mourning. Moreover, Kirkmans characters disappear, switch partners, die off, and reappear much like one would expect
from any daytime television drama.
These interpersonal and physical connections are pivotal. Kirkmans
text is an exemplar of apocalyptic anticipation, and its optimism about
the end of the world is represented through the characters relationships.
Apocalyptic anticipation is also demonstrated by the characters themselves who are living full, satisfying lives, as opposed to characters in
other zombie narratives who are impelled by the most basic ght for
survival. Instead of simply attempting to survive for the sake of living,
Kirkmans characters only liveonly desire to surviveif they have
someone for whom to live. Kirkmans characters are forced to prioritize
what is important to them as humans when almost all of their preapocalyptic responsibilities and belongings are lost.
Fans of Kirkmans narratives have devoured his zombie tales
because they offer soap-opera style indulgence and escapism that, in
our current economic struggles, only seems plausible after the end of
the world. For many young people today, it is hard to fantasize about
the possibility of getting married, owning a home, having job security,
having children, or living without debt. Subsequently, all of these typical
milestones no longer seem achievable, economically plausible, or, more
importantly, worthwhile. Furthermore, environmental disaster and political catastrophe have led many to question the point of participating
in the classic, conventional adult rites of passage. Developing a lasting
partnership seems fruitless in a world where day-to-day existence is so
difficult for the individual. There is no clear impetus to have children
when one is unable to provide for them and their future looks bleak.
Apocalyptic destruction of the current world, offers a clean break and
a fresh start where these milestones and possessions (as well as economic
constraints on them) no longer exist. This fresh start inspires new lifeaims and causes characters to re-prioritize which relationships are worth
pursuing. Thus, in contrast to the difficulties we face in the real world,
the apocalyptic world presents romantic fantasies of falling in love and
building a family that seem worth pursuing. The apocalypse essentially

92

Zombies and Sexuality

offers utopian escapism. Yet, we cannot imagine a new world, a better


world, without rst imagining the end of the one in which we currently
live. Kirkmans narrative embodies this apocalyptic anticipation, providing hope that a new future may be both possible and appealing.
In recent years, many other popular texts have represented the
apocalypse in this anticipatory fashion. Noteworthy examples include
Max Brooks New York Times bestsellers World War Z (2006) and the
Zombie Survival Guide (2003), the latter of which sold a million copies
in its rst year (Staskiewicz). Contemporary zombie narratives such as
those by Kirkman and Brooks are well received not because they depict
apocalyptic terror, but because they anticipate and desire the dead rising
and unhinging societal order. The Zombie Survival Guide is an imaginative tool that provides escapism while positioning itself as a piece of
very real non-ction. The deadpan text is written as a survival manual
that helps its reader prepare for and live through the impending zombie
threat. The manual chronicles what is treated as a very real history of
zombie attacks in the past, and includes a blank outbreak journal in
which the reader can record their observations of current zombie activity
(Brooks). These texts by authors like Kirkman and Brooks are just a few
artifacts in a burgeoning line of narratives that reect apocalyptic anticipation, a vein of art that not only envisages life beyond contemporary
socio-economic shackles, but that also depicts post-apocalyptic life in
a hopeful and appealing light.
The preoccupation with the zombie-induced apocalypse is founded
on not only on the fantasy of capitalisms nale, but a return toor
reopening ofthe American frontier. In the introduction to The Unnished Nation, Alan Brinkley explains that to many Americans in the
late nineteenth century, the West seemed an untamed frontier in which
hardy pioneers were creating a new society (Brinkley). It was from this
perception that Americas romantic frontier mythos was born. Americans believed in a destiny that promised them both the physical terrain
and a social space in which they could reinvent themselves, a new land
unfettered by the constraints of the old. The post-apocalyptic landscape
of these zombie narratives functions as a reopening of the conceptual,
romantic frontier well known in American history. In this zombie frontier, characters reinvent themselves and live a life that holds concrete
tangible purpose: that of simple survival. The pan-zombie genre is no
longer about the fear of ones world crashing down, but the pleasure of
escaping the drudgery of capitalism and the trepidation its currently
fragile economy causes. The implausibility of the dead coming back to

Laid to RestVossen

93

life represents how unlikely it is that capitalism can be overcome, that


revolutionary utopia can feasibly be achieved. The utopian impulse can
instead be seen in the desire for apocalypse in Generation Y and Zs
zombie narratives.3 The generation born after the year 2000 has been
called generation Z (Anatole): a label that captures the sense that this
grouping represents the end of the proverbial line (since Z lies guratively at the end of alphabet). Generation Xs fear of the end of the world
was represented through the lms and comics of the time (as was
demonstrated by Thompson); generation Y and Zs anticipation of the
end of the world is represented through their dystopian apocalyptic
texts. At some point in recent years, the end of the world stopped representing horror, and began representing hope. The current youth would
still like to imagine a better place, a better time, a better way of life, but
can only imagine these feats and indulge their utopian impulse if it takes
place after the end, the complete destruction, of this world. Instead of
representing utopia as an unrealistically perfect place, these texts instead
represent a future that can only be achieved through destruction of current society.

The Walking Dead: Twilight for Zombie Fans


The Walking Dead comic, written by Kirkman and illustrated by
Adlard, has been serialized over the past ten years, totaling over 100
issues and well over 2000 pages, and has continual success in its adaptations as both an extremely popular television show (McMillan) and an
award-winning videogame (2012). What sets Kirkman apart from his
predecessors in this genre is his commingling of romantic, family drama
with horror; the aesthetics of the latter serve to reinforce the sentimentality of the former. Indeed, horror serves mainly as the backdrop to a
complex and fundamentally social and romantic drama. This unique
combination of traditionally unexpected elements has proven immensely
popular. Indeed, these zombie narratives are incredibly popular with
this generation, and there are discernible shifts towards a more positive
sentimentality in what was once the modus operandi of horror. Examples
of this optimistic and romantic shift in tone and theme can be seen not
only in The Walking Dead but also in movies like Shaun of the Dead
(2004) and Zombieland (2009), and more recently in Isaac Marions
popular book and its lm adaptation Warm Bodies (2013). Warm Bodies
is the story of a beautiful young girl and a surprisingly attractive zombie

94

Zombies and Sexuality

who is brought back to life by their love (Marion). Warm Bodies shatters
the living/dead binary and establishes instead a continuity, a spectrum
of life in which the recuperation of a zombies humanity can only be
fully established through love. Love is thus framed as the fullest extent
of an interpersonal existence.
Kirkmans ongoing comic series The Walking Dead epitomizes this
same trend, being as much about sex and romance as it is horror and
apocalypse; Kirkmans characters learn how to fully live and love after
the end of the world. Indeed, Kirkman has claimed the success of his
series can be directly linked to its focus on human relationships. He
explains, Twilight is to Dracula as The Walking Dead is to [George A.]
Romero movies. Im the Stephenie Meyer of Zombies. I watched Romero
movies and I was like, yeah, but what if they had more kissing? (The
Nerdist). Kirkman argues that it is not zombies that makes The Walking
Dead so popular, but rather traditional soap opera elements such as
romance, betrayal, and sex. Soap operas and similar dramas have long
functioned as a type of escapist wish fulllment in their indulgence in
ctional American luxury. Whereas soap operas and dramas of the late
80s and 90s focused on the exciting sex and love lives of the rich and
beautiful, Kirkmans zombie-lled dystopia has become a choice form
of utopian escapism for those who see economic success as unattainable,
and who would rather imagine a social order unhinged and a world that
required a return to the primal apocalyptic pastoral.
Kirkmans departure from Romero hinges on optimism: the notion
that the end of the world provides opportunity to build a new and better
world, not just the chance to watch the old world crumble. Kirkmans
zombie narrative bears all the thematic dressings of horror, with its
macabre scenarios and constant threats from the innumerable hordes
of the undead but, more often than not, its plot is indulgent and driven
by palpably erotic fantasy fulllment. Kirkman explains that his approach
to the series is to take what is really cool about zombie movies and then
just add soap opera stuff. So its like action heroes crying, people falling
in love, people being sad I think thats what makes it popular (The
Nerdist). The Walking Deads protagonists are concerned less with slaying zombies than they are with being better people. Frequently, this
equates to being a more sexually and romantically fullled person. Sex
is emphasized in The Walking Dead as that which separates the living
from the dead. The survivors primal sexual urges and desire for personal companionship separate the living from the monstrous other.
Sex, and the momentary escape that accompanies it, is the force the

Laid to RestVossen

95

characters use to ght against the temptation to give up, to become inhuman.
However, that is not to suggest that sex creates a dichotomy between
the living and their undead counterparts. The zombies provide a backdrop, the ctional conditions which facilitate the living characters interactions. Being constantly confronted with death means that the survivors
must prioritize what really matters to them during what are potentially
their last days on earth. Protagonists are frequently impelled to participate in the acts that accentuate their humanity. After being exposed to
death so frequently, the living characters must come to terms with the
possibility that they could be next. The survivors therefore live in a state
of perpetual acceptance of death. The survivors lives are dened by
their proximity to death. When not ensuring that they are staving off
death by fullling the basic needs of sustenance and safety, the protagonists live every spare moment as if it were their last. This mode of living
sets them apart from the dead. The zombies omnipresence underscores
how pivotal life and death are to existence.
The zombie highlights how inadequate it is to think of life and death
as entirely separate states. The Walking Deads characters instead adopt
a more postmodern view of death in which alive is measured by relative
quality of life. As Jeffrey Jerome Cohen explains in his study Monster
Theory, postmodernism itself is akin to Frankensteins monster. It is a
history, a theory, and a culture that is composed of a multitude of fragments, rather than of smooth epistemological wholes bound together
to form a loosely integrated netor, better, an assimilated hybrid, a monstrous body (3). Monsters enable postmodern theoretical examination
because they inhabit liminal spaces, policing what Cohen calls the borders of the possible, and calling into question binaries such as us and
them (12). Zombies epitomize this view of postmodern monstrosity,
since the undead inhabit the liminal space between human and inhuman,
between living and dead.
If one simply survives rather than lives, the line between living and
dead begins to blur. Rick Grimes, the series protagonist and leader of
the survivors, lectures his group on this topic:
The second we put a bullet in the head of one of those undead monsters
the moment one of us drove a hammer into one of their facesor cut a
head off. We became what we are! You people dont know what we are!
Were surrounded by the DEAD. Were among themand when we nally
give up we become them! Were living on borrowed time here. Every
minute of our life is a minute we steal from them! You see them out there.

96

Zombies and Sexuality

You KNOW that when we die we become them. You think we hide behind
walls to protect us from The Walking Dead? Dont you get it? We ARE The
Walking Dead! WE are The Walking Dead [Kirkman ch 4].

Unlike the invading governments and aliens of many other dystopian


texts, zombies are not outsiders looking to conquer America. They are
not evil incarnate. Rather, zombies are us. They come from within and
they embody the multitude of fragmented identities that constitutes
America itself. Ricks speech encapsulates Kirkmans thesis. Ricks realization underscores why the comic is so full of sex and romance. The
decision to kill (or otherwise) is a complicated matter. What is much
more complicated in Kirkmans new world is the choice whether to live
or die: if one chooses the former, is one truly living or just surviving on
borrowed time? In these narratives, a beating heart is not enough to
evince life. Just like the zombie who slowly comes back to life in Warm
Bodies, a survivors life is placed on a continuum of living in which
survivors attempt to move as far away from the undead as possible. In
these narratives one is never fully alive, or fully dead; they are instead a
human existing somewhere in between these two extremes. If one does
not sufficiently live as a sexual or romantic being, then one may as well
be one of the zombies from whom the group is trying to protect themselves. Simply put, a zombies life is quite over; they cannot sleep, love,
make decisions, make memories, or have sex. Those in the community
taking control of their life and actively having lots of sex are those that
remain furthest from the dead, in a psychological, existential sense. In
postmodern zombie narratives such as Kirkmans, living protagonists
frequently seek to maintain the fantasy that humanity and zombidom
are contrasting modes of existence. In The Walking Dead, however, that
desired separation is critiqued; contemporary societys constraints and
rules are directly compared with the lack thereof in the post-apocalyptic
state.

Yearning in (and for) the New World


The Walking Dead follows lead protagonist Rick Grimes, who wakes
up from a coma in his local hospital to discover that he is the only living
person in a small town overrun with the titular ghoulish horde. By the
second issue, Rick escapes from the hospital and serendipitously nds
his wife (Lori), his young son (Carl), and his best friend (Shane) at a
camp outside of Atlanta. From this point on, the narrative follows Ricks

Laid to RestVossen

97

struggles to protect not only Carl and Lori (who is pregnant), but also
the community of survivors with whom they travel (Kirkman ch 1). As
the story progresses, almost every character partakes in coupling at some
point, giving the group a reason to keep moving, to continue looking
for other survivors, and to nd a secure place to settle down. Because
making money and sustaining wealth are no longer goals in this world,
the characters focus on the happiness that human interaction offers
instead. In this zombie-infested apocalyptic environment, when an eligible, desirable individual becomes sexually available, there is no time
for the timidity, rituals, or shame that characterize contemporary sexual
standards and courting rituals. Here, bachelors and bachelorettes make
themselves readily available to each other almost entirely without any
hesitation or heed to heteronormative socio-sexual customs. Characters
establish very quickly what they have to offer and their willingness to
have sex in a timely and efficient manner in order to not be passed over
by potential partners. As one survivor, Maggie, explains, weve gotta be
proactive or were going to end up alone (Kirkman ch 2). Coupling is
more than just a choice, it is a survival technique. Pairings like Rick and
Lori, or Maggie and fellow survivor Glen, search for places where they
can properly raise not just existing children but children they want to
bring into the world. Sexual desire and romantic partnership stimulate
the characters will to keep living despite the fact that almost everyone
they knew before the apocalypse is likely dead.
This sexual desire mirrors apocalyptic anticipation and the collective desire amongst generation Y and Z for the end. Kirkmans characters
demonstrate collective desire for a new and better world through their
romantic satisfaction, utopian hope, and general contentment in spite
of the hardships they face. The characters nd and form life-changing
relationships that they did not previously have. Their world is constrained, but also offers new opportunities. Sometimes the characters
sexual satisfaction is eeting but, this type of momentary escape makes
life worth living, since they provide hope for the future in otherwise
bleak circumstances.
For some of Kirkmans protagonists, sex is the primary reason to
keep going in the face of seemingly hopeless circumstances. One of the
more endearing characters in the series is relatively young Glen, who
humbly admits being sexually interested in a slightly older fellow survivor, Carol. When Carol couples up with Ricks second-in-command,
the strong and reliable Tyreese, Glen realizes he has lost his chance, and
quietly reassesses his position in the group. Kirkman and Adlard demon-

98

Zombies and Sexuality

strate Glenns episodic loss of desire to live through many silent panels
of Glen looking longingly at Carol. The otherwise proactive Glen vacillates between survival and aimlessness throughout the rst three
camps that the characters inhabit (Kirkman ch 2). Glens attitude
towards his own life is unclear during this period: it is implied that Glen
may take his own life, or that he may recklessly gamble with his wellbeing by volunteering for dangerous missions to forage for supplies. Just
when it seems like Glen is about to see an early grave, the survivors are
taken in by a veterinarian, Hershel, and his young adult family. One of
Hershels daughters, Maggie, inquires after Glens gloomy temperament,
to which he replies, Everyone around me is pairing off I dont want
to end up alone too (Kirkman ch 2). Maggies succinct and pragmatic
responseif thats what youre after, Ill fuck youmight seem terse,
but it spurs possibly the most authentic and earnest romance of the
entire series (Kirkman ch 2). The two become arguably the most psychologically stable couple in the book, killing zombies en tandem
throughout the day, and enjoying each others company at night. They
become self-sufficient as a pair, and provide for the greater group. As
the couples relationship becomes more serious, they begin to consider
their new world version of marriage as well as the possibility of having
children, although they readily admit that they rst require a permanent,
stable home and community. Their ideal designs are rooted in sexual
chemistry, motivating their desire to instigate a new society. Because
they have nothing to lose and everything to gain as a young couple, Glen
and Maggie are able to very quickly get on with their life together. Their
pragmatic outlook, and the lack of nancial barriers allow them to very
quickly become serious about their relationship and live happily together,
getting married and having children. The normative pleasures of marriage and family seem increasingly unattainable and futile in todays
world of widespread unemployment, educational debts, ever-increasing
cost of living, and prohibitive housing costs. For Glen and Maggie, the
apocalypse simplies this romantic process immensely.
Social constraints that currently inhibit sex and relationships are
typically tossed off by The Walking Dead characters. There is no time
for traditional courting in the wake of the apocalypse. The characters
sexual liberation represents their liberation in all facets of life including,
most importantly, the freedom to be themselves and to follow their
desires. For example, because they are not separated by institutions such
as school systems, employment, and retirement, large differences in age
cease to be a factor for many of the characters when selecting romantic

Laid to RestVossen

99

partners. Age has little relevance as a societal qualier within The Walking Dead because it has very little to do with how soon one may die in
a landscape populated with the shambling horrors. All characters are
effectively at the same stage of life as they all share a goal: to survive.
Driven by the desire to spend their limited days with someone else, the
characters feel free to couple up with who they want regardless of age
or other socially constructed obstacles. For instance, near-geriatric survivor Dale questions why his twenty-something spouse Andrea would
want to be with someone so old, askingn How many good years can I
have left? Andrea quickly replies, Nobody has any good years left
(Kirkman ch 3). Andrea and Dales relationship is life changing for both
of them. Andrea is with Dale for the rest of his life and her life is better
and more satisfying because of their partnership. Shortly after Dales
death, Andrea explains to Rick: Over the course of a year I inherited a
familyI grew upI loved the woman I became and the life I had. And
now its all gone. Im all alone and all I can think about is how Im that
girl again, the girl I was the one I didnt like (Kirkman ch 12). During
her sexual attachment with Dale, Andrea implicitly displays her refusal
to recede into some existential infancy; her ability to nd in Dale a reason
to keep living marks her and those like her as alive, and thus distinct
from the undead.
Despite being surrounded by death and decay, having no luxuries
and being constantly uprooted, Andrea valorizes her post-apocalypse
life, characterizing it as more satisfying and honest than her previous
existence. She attains all the achievements and satisfactions she could
not nd in normal society, including falling deeply in love with a much
older man and adopting children. After Dales death, and a series of other
unfortunate events Andrea is left with nothing, not even herself (as she
had come to be). At this point in the narrative the survivor-community
is at its most utopian in terms of supplies, security, and stability; yet,
without a partner, Andrea spirals into self-loathing. This depression
does not last long as Andrea again nds a new world happiness when
she nally gives in to her long-suppressed feelings for Rick (who is
also recently widowed) and consummates that relationship. Both Rick
and Andrea reached near zombie status in terms of emotional living
after losing their respective partners (Lori and Dale), but their
partnership reignites their will to live. Right before this coupling takes
place, Rick claims that although he is physically alive, he emotionally
died a long time ago, to which Andrea replies, Have you forgotten?
Death doesnt affect people quite like it used to. Dont you think its

100

Zombies and Sexuality

about time you came back to life? Andrea then kisses Rick for the rst
time (Kirkman ch 15). Although they have both experienced substantial
losses, together they gain hope for their future, they know that they
must live everyday as if it is their last in order to be proud of the people
they have become.
Andrea is not the only person who feels that their new life is an
improvement over their old world life. Glen and Maggie are depicted as
exceedingly happy throughout the series, and Carol displays a similar
favoring of her new, post-apocalypse life. She explains to Lori, Ive
almost got things better nowTyreese is better than my husband ever
was I mean look around you. Look at this place. We could have it all
here. We could rebuildmake a new life (Kirkman ch 3). The focus
here is on creating a new life, not re-creating the ultra-structured life
they had previously. In fact, at one point Rick settles his survivors down
in a gated community that Carl considers to be too much like their old
life. Carl, having grown-up in the wake of disaster refuses to buy into
the fantasy the community offers. He claims the members of the community are all stupid. The roamers didnt go away because you cant see
them. I hate this place, Dad. It doesnt feel real. It feels like everyone is
playing pretend (Kirkman ch 12). Despite Ricks initial reluctance to
Carls point of view, he eventually realizes that there is no benet to
living in a simulation and alters the communitys practices, adopting a
more pragmatic approach to the zombie threat.
Kirkmans zombie narrative offers readers a fantasy that is as liberating as it is unimaginable. The Walking Dead depicts a world without
capitalism, without traditional social structures and the designations
that go along with them. When these structures are uprooted, life decisions are no longer limited by economics or socially circumscribed
mores. This post-apocalyptic world invokes a new kind of American
dream, one of self re-creation. Kirkmans characters can completely reinvent themselves. As such, they are conduits for fantasizing Generation
Y and Z readers, whose prospects seem bleak, but who hope for postapocalyptic escape. For many characters in The Walking Dead, postapocalyptic existence is an improvement over their previous lives. They
have the opportunity to transcend their imposed roles within the social
order: a gym teacher becomes a soldier; a policeman becomes a leader;
a lawyer becomes the lone warrior; a young girl becomes a mother; a
prisoner becomes a farmer; a thief becomes a husband. Social upheaval
allows them to overcome self-hatred or self-doubt and truly live as the
people they always wanted to be.

Laid to RestVossen

101

Sex, Desire and Hope


Rick and his fellow survivors have the power to change their world,
their living situation, and their day to day lives in a way that often feels
impossible for The Walking Deads readers. This better life may be lled
with kill or be killed encounters, but it is new, empowering, and relatively unaffected by the weight of history. This hope for a better life is
represented primarily through the characters romantic and sexual satisfaction. In this new world, sex is readily attainable regardless of differences in gender, age, race, sexual orientation, or ability, as long as the
protagonist is willing to be a stable and loving partner. Even if characters
have not found permanent partners, they can typically nd someone
else willing to participate in a type of last hurrah, since neither participant can be sure whether they will ever have another chance to indulge
in the act. For example, upon discovering that the world is over and realizing that he is free after years of incarceration, one prisoner (Axel)
chooses to stay within the safety of the prison. Faced with the possibility
that he will die when the groups prison camp is invaded, Axel engages
in consensual sex with Patricia, another survivor. This experience is a
source of satisfaction for them both and would have never happened in
the old world. The post-apocalyptic climate may be fraught with danger,
but as Axel and Patricias liaison illustrates sexual interactions are frequent, accessible, and necessary: sex is a source of life-affirming sociality
in this environment.
Characters also nd comfort in observing sex. Such a sight inspires
hope and optimism for the observing characters own future and for
their own visceral escape. Sex signies that the characters are physically
safe, and that their immediate needs are met. For example, Donna walks
in on Dale and Andrea having sex soon after the group has arrived at
their rst settlement, Willshire Estates (Kirkman ch 2). Although Donna
initially recoils from this display of physicality between the elderly
Dale and twenty-something Andrea, Donna leaves with a sense of genuine optimism. As she says to her husband Alan directly after wards, you know, I still dont approve of those two, but Andrea is a
grown woman and she can make her own decisions. Its just nice to
see people happy with all thats going on. Im happy for them seeing
[Dale and Andrea] together knowing that they can put their lives back
together, it gives me hope (Kirkman ch 2). Donnas reaction at this
moment reects her practical optimism: she interprets sex as the sight
of people truly living, and it inspires her to change her attitude. Donna

102

Zombies and Sexuality

acts as voyeur in this scene much like the reader does throughout
the rest of the text. Like Donna, we are voyeurs on the characters
progress, satisfaction, and freedomboth sexual and otherwisewhich
stand in contradistinction to the constraints that we face in our day-today lives.
Unfortunately, Donnas voyeuristically inspired enthusiasm is shortlived. The next morning the newly hopeful Donna is careless in her
inspection of homes that the characters seek to inhabit. She joyfully
explores the house, exclaiming, This is going to be so fun. Its going to
be like one of those home shows but better! (Kirkman ch 2). Almost
immediately after making this proclamation, the left side of her face is
torn off by a stealthy zombie. Killing off Donna is not a means of cynically undercutting optimism per se. Rather, the incident debunks her
over-compensatory enthusiasm. In this scenario, Dale and Andrea use
sex to cope with their changing lives. In contrast, Donna is inspired into
blind idealism. Such naivety frequently leads to a gruesome demise in
Kirkmans narratives. Unrealistic expectations about the futuresuch
as Donnas statement regarding their potential abodeare kept in check
by the realities of the zombie plague. In The Walking Dead, the characters who survive are pragmatic about life and death; they are satised
with what happiness they nd and do not attempt to recreate their previous lives. Dale and Andreas relationship reects the type of new world
optimism that Kirkman proffers. They enjoy their freedom but remain
cautious and aware that they could die at any moment. Donna and Alan
on the other hand are unt for this new world, as are most characters
who seem to value the old world and its ideals. They are incapable of
appreciating their new world for what it is. They seek to simulate their
old lives instead of nding happiness that is more attuned to their surroundings (as Andrea and Dale do).
Soon after Donnas death, her bereaved husband Alan expresses his
despair, saying to Rick that [e]verything is just hard. Ricks replyI
know, nothings easy anymore. Nothing (Kirkman ch 2)corroborates
Alans reversal of the idealism Donna previously espoused. Yet that is
not to say that the narrative perspective concurs with Alans pessimism.
Their conversation is contrasted by parallel panels depicting Glen and
Maggie walking hand-in-hand. The text box containing Alans despair
overlaps two panels portraying Maggie and Glen sneaking off to have
sex. They have found an escape that is in fact easy. This contrast
between the couples depiction and Alans dialogue implies that, even at
the end of the world, sex is a fundamental aspect of existence. Finding,

Laid to RestVossen

103

protecting, and maintaining a sexual partner and attaining this new


world happiness becomes, for many, their raison detre.

Conclusion: A Postmodern Zombie Narrative for Gen


Y and Gen Z
Post-apocalyptic zombie texts are not the only narratives in which
these millennial anxieties of apocalyptic anticipation are depicted. For
example, the directionless angst of the current generationcommonly
labeled as generation jobless4can be seen in the everyday setting of
Lena Dunhams award-winning HBO series Girls (2012). Dunham, who
has been both congratulated and criticized as the voice of her generation (Walker), plays the shows central character Hannah: a privileged
and lost twenty-something living in Manhattan. One poignant example
of 21st century anxiety can be seen in the rst season when Hannah is
getting an STD test and explains to the gynecologist that she has a fear
of AIDS, only then to immediately retract her statement:
these days if you are diagnosed with AIDS its actually not a death sentence. Theres so many good drugs and people live a long time, so. Also,
um, if you do have AIDS there is a lot of stuff people arent going to bother
you about. Like for example no one is going to call you on the phone and
say did you get a job or did you pay your rent or are you taking an
HTML course because all they are going to say is congratulations on not
being dead! [Girls].

Eventually, Hannah concludes with the epiphany Maybe I actually am


not scared of AIDS. Maybe I thought I was scared of AIDS and what I
really am is wanting AIDS (Girls). Under the crushing pressure of
contemporary adulthood, Hannah naively fantasizes that even the cruel
death of AIDS could be a possible relief from the expectations of societal
participation. Hannah at this point acts as a representative member of
Generation Y. She feels hopeless and craves a life she feels is worth living,
an escape from her current zombie-like existence. She wishes upon herself a type of personal apocalypse that will free her from the directionless
banality of unpaid internships. In line with Thompson and Kierkegaards
assertions, the chronically overeducated and under-employed individuals who comprise Generation Y are more aware than any previous generation of the contradictions presented by a secular, modern,
knowledge-based society, in which millennial and apocalyptic beliefs
have proliferated (Thompson 18). Generation Ys and Zs collective

104

Zombies and Sexuality

existential yearning for the end represents a desire to return to a simpler time: a time in which surviving is lifes principal challenge; a time
in which individuals might congratulate one another for not being
dead! The post-apocalyptic landscape of The Walking Dead functions
in the same manner. Such narratives are particularly resonant with those
individuals who identify with the sense of collective disempowerment
Thompson and Kierkegaard evoke.
Zombie narratives are especially pertinent in agging these themes.
The zombie apocalypse causes social upheaval and necessitates starting
anew. It illuminates how zombie-like existence within capitalism can
feel. Sarah Lauro, author of The Zombie Manifesto, argues that unconsciously we are more interested in the zombie at times when as a culture
we feel disempowered. She goes on to explain that zombie narratives
provide a great variety of outlets for people during periods of dissolution, such as the global economic crisis (Kinnard). In contrast to the
unconceivable scale of capitalism or international nancial ruin, the
zombie offers a singular threat to survival that signies all of our problems and anxieties. As such, the zombie summates the threats of debt,
unemployment, global warming, war, homelessness, disease, and so
forth.
Yet zombies are not the primary focus in The Walking Dead. Rather,
they catalyze social reorganization, and this is the principal source of
both trepidation and anticipation for Kirkmans characters and readers.
Those of us fortunate enough to live in relative affluence have so much
control over what we want to do with our individual lives, but so little
control over how we function in the larger web of society. Kirkman is
particularly attuned to these notions. Indeed, the publishing blurb on
the back of the comics highlights how pivotal these anxieties are in shaping The Walking Deads ongoing story of apocalyptic anticipation:
When is the last time any of us REALLY worked to get something that we
wanted? How long has it been since any of us really NEEDED something
that we WANTED? The world we know is gone. The world of commerce
and frivolous necessity has been replaced by a world of survival and
responsibility. In a matter of months society has crumbledno government, no grocery stores, no mail delivery, no cable TV. In a world ruled by
the dead, we are forced to nally start living.

This summation centralizes and universalizes a desire to stop going


through the motions and start living again. The blurb suggests that
The Walking Dead performs a particular function for individuals struggling with their position in a capitalist world, whose identities are delim-

Laid to RestVossen

105

ited by class, race, gender, nationality, among other socially constructed


impositions. Readers are encouraged to fantasize about an allencompassing end of days, and indulge in their personal desire to hit
the road and return to the frontier, a situation where things really matter in a tangible, immediate sense. This monstrous world overrun with
the dead may initially seem daunting, but it may also be an improvement
compared with the world as it currently exists. For all its dangers and
challenges, the version of post-apocalyptic sociality represented in The
Walking Dead simplies what parts of being human are valuable. Fear
that they may soon be dead (or worse, undead) motivates the characters
to focus on what makes them feel alive: attaining sex and love. Throughout The Walking Dead, these traitsliving, loving, and fuckingare
characterized as the essences of life itself. Although the series combinations of utopian, dystopian, optimistic, and hopeless sentiments may
seem paradoxical (much like the dead-alive nature of zombies does), the
world depicted is one in ux. Resultantly, it is a world pregnant with
possibility.

Notes
1. As has been chronicled in the anthology Comic Books and the Cold War (2012).
2. A term that was also used in Matthew Barrett Grosss The Last Myth, although
he uses it to describe a phenomenon of fear of the apocalypse, much like Thompsons
apocalyptic dread and unlike the ideas that I am attempting to advance here.
3. Typically generation Y is considered those born roughly between 1980 and the
year 2000. Generation Z is comprised of individuals born any time after the year
2000, although often times those born in the late 90s are also considered part of
generation Z.
4. Sharon Bartlett and Maria LeRoses 2013 documentary enshrines this phrase
in its title.

Queering and Cripping


the End of the World
Disability, Sexuality and
Race in The Walking Dead
Cathy Hannabach
Since its 2010 debut on AMC, the television show The Walking
Dead1 has garnered vast popular and critical attention. Embedded within
the contemporary obsession with a zombie apocalypse, the show is part
of a broader cultural project seeking collective ways to navigate a post
2008 imploded capitalist system that many economically vulnerable and
privileged populations are still experiencing as the end of the world.
In doing so, the show raises questions about post-apocalyptic racialization, kinship ties in the absence of social institutions to nance them,
and intimacies that include cannibalism, disembowelment, and homosocial/homoerotic zombie orgies. Bringing queer disability studies to bear
on the show, in this essay I ask how disability, race, and sexuality intertwine in The Walking Dead to reect histories of zombie representation
as well as anxieties over early 21st century neoliberal capitalism.
While many scholars have examined the racial and colonial politics
of zombie constructions,2 little work has examined how popular representations of zombies reect norms of ability and disability. This is a
problematic omission in existing literature as the links between zombication and diverse forms of embodiment are encoded into the visual
representation of the walking dead. In popular culture, zombies and
people with disabilities are constructed in problematically similar ways:
communication practices, gait, and cognitive reasoning skills attached
106

Queering and Cripping the End of the WorldHannabach 107


to zombie representations mirror those attached to depictions of people
with autism, cerebral palsy, and other various disabilities. Simultaneously
mapping disability onto the living dead, and mapping death-in-life onto
people with disabilities, zombie culture contains some deeply troubling
ableism. Yet here I ask how a more radical queer crip reading is possible,
one that values the ways compulsory able-bodiness, compulsory whiteness, and compulsory heterosexuality are questioned, troubled, and ultimately challenged within one particular zombie cultural production.
Doing so requires drawing on the burgeoning eld of queer disability
studies, an interdisciplinary and radical social justice-oriented eld of
inquiry. Queer disability studies does not just look for the queer, disabled
characters in a given text or history, seeking to bring them out from
invisibility and into the light. Rather, queer disability studies critically
interrogates the social construction and intertwining of heterosexuality,
able- bodiness, white supremacy, and patriarchy, revealing the ways
power and hegemony are at work in the ways they currently animate
social and political life.3
I demonstrate here that in The Walking Dead, queer has little to
do with who (or what) characters have sex with and much more to do
with anti-normativity. Indeed, the queer elements of The Walking Dead
are found in the practices, embodiments, and desires that resist white,
bourgeois heteronormativity and its attendant demands, while simultaneously revealing their centrality in both viral zombie narratives and
contemporary neoliberalism. In this sense, queerness in the show is
always an intersectional constellation, as race, gender, sexuality, and disability intertwine.

Viral Politics in Zombie Capitalism


A number of cultural studies scholars have sought to make sense
of the current zombie obsession in U.S. popular media by attributing it
to the 2008 economic collapse and consequent recession. Henry Giroux,
for example, writes eloquently about zombie capitalism, a form of
global neoliberalism that has created a new world order that views competition as a form of social combat, celebrates war as an extension of
politics, and legitimates a ruthless Social Darwinism in which particular
individuals and groups are considered simply redundant, disposable
easy prey for the zombies (Giroux 2). For Giroux, it is the 1 percent and
their institutions (to use the language of the Occupy Movement) that

108

Zombies and Sexuality

are the zombies, as their ideologies spread through contemporary culture and politics like a virus, infecting the rest of us 99 percent in the
process. David McNally also mobilizes the viral zombie metaphor to
explain global neoliberal capitalism, but for him it is the exploited who
are the walking dead: those disgured creatures, frequently depicted
as zombies, who have been turned into mere bodies, unthinking and
exploitable collections of esh, blood, muscle and tissue through the
processes of alienated labor and commodity fetishism (McNally 4,
emphasis in original). While these economic explanations for the zombie
revival are convincing in many ways, their primary focus on political
economy often fails to engage with the explicit ways that race, sexuality,
and disability shape both how global capitalism operates and how the
viral zombie functions to knit together political, cultural, and economic
anxieties.
The Walking Dead demonstrates the ways these cultural, political,
and economic concerns feed each other. The show takes place in a postapocalyptic Atlanta, Georgia, overrun by zombies called walkers. A
mutated virus has been introduced to the human population that causes
them to turn into zombies upon their death, after which they attack and
consume humans for food. The show follows a core group of human
survivors as they struggle to stay alive, avoid the walkers, and gure out
how to maintain social bonds in a world largely absent of the political
and economic institutions that are designed to support them. The few
human survivors, led by the straight, white patriarchal sheriff Rick, must
navigate a state-less, service-less world that even capital seems to have
abandoned, drawing only on their own strengths and bootstrap-agencies
for assistance. In many ways, The Walking Deads setting, while hyperbolic, embodies a logic that is central to neoliberal capitalism: privatization of social services and basic human needs is enabled through the
withdrawal of public state support, and individuals are left to fend for
themselves in a hostile world with only their ambitions and families on
which to draw. In this way, Giroux and McNally are correct in their
assessment of neoliberal global capitalisms zombie production. The
Walking Dead offers us a world in which there are no working banks,
grocery stores, apartment buildings, or schools even though the buildings that housed these public institutions litter the landscape, haunting
and taunting the human survivors in their lack of safety. In postapocalyptic Atlanta, only independent, able-bodied, virile folks are imagined to be able to survive while those whose embodiments or identities
are interdependent with others and with a social safety net face death

Queering and Cripping the End of the WorldHannabach 109


or abandonment. As Robert McRuer and Abby Wilkerson argue, neoliberalism disproportionately harms populations that have historically been
positioned to rely more heavily upon public servicessuch as people
with disabilities, poor people, queers, trans* people,4 immigrants, and
womenwhile it simultaneously enshrines the heterosexual nuclear
family as the proper private location of support (McRuer and Wilkerson 3).5 In neoliberalism, unpaid labor in the heterosexual family by
spouses, parents, and children is understood to substitute for public
support, and marginalized populations are expected to invest in the heterosexual nuclear form as a safeguard against poverty and death. In The
Walking Dead, these populations similarly face potential annihilation as
those who are elderly, have physical or cognitive disabilities, are pregnant, or cannot or will not attack zombies with weapons are quickly
killed or abandoned. The tenuous kinship ties still remaining are
expected to provide for basic human needs. All of the groups represented
as families in the show are either heterosexual couples or children and
parents related through heterosexual unions. While the entire group of
survivors shares some of the affects and practices associated with family in its heteronormative sense (economic interdependence, primary
affective bonds, and shared domestic space, for example), heterosexual
couples and child/parent units are granted primacy over the group as a
whole, leaving the heteronuclear family intact even in a post-apocalyptic
world that in many ways might seem to require a more expansive and
heterogeneous network of kinship and community. The ultimate neoliberal world, The Walking Dead reveals the centrality of disability and sexuality to global capitalism, even when that political economy has been
annihilated.

Zombies as Others, Others as Zombies


If disability and sexuality shape the ways humans navigate the
shows landscape, they also dovetail with race to construct the ubiquitous
antagonist of the show: the viral zombie. Kristin Ostherr and Priscilla
Wald have demonstrated that zombie narratives since the Cold War have
heavily drawn on virology, as virology offers a ripe metaphor for cultural
paranoia over potentially infectious people and ideas that could move
undetected through supposedly normal populations. In these viral
zombie narratives, anxiety over the loss of humanity has been represented as a theft of the bodywhich can be seen, for example, in novels

110

Zombies and Sexuality

and lms such as Last Man on Earth (1964), The Omega Man (1971),
and the recent I Am Legend remake (2007) starring Will Smith ghting
viral zombies, all adapted from Richard Mathesons Cold War novel I
Am Legend (1954).
The viral zombie also has a specically racial, sexual, and disability
history even as disability seems to be largely absent from most critical
analysis. The zombie has roots in Afro-Haitian spiritual traditions and
the zombies blackness has historically been central to the horror it produces in the white United States imaginary. Drawing on racialized histories, zombies are often represented as mindless bodies, staggering
around and often maimed, unable to fully communicate or participate
in the social contract. In this way they join the list of marginalized populations who have similarly been constructed as the others against
which the (neo)liberal social contract has been denedmost notably
women, people of color, queers, trans* people, and people with disabilities.6 Signicantly these groups have been excluded precisely through
their imagined lack of rationality and interdependence (rather than independence), as well as their embodiments that exceed white, cisgendered,7
able-bodied norms. These historical constructions are deeply imbricated
in popular constructions of viral zombies, particularly within The Walking Dead.
The specically Afro-Haitian history of the zombie, which lurks in
the shadows of all zombie representations including those on The Walking Dead, render even more clear the intertwining of sexuality, disability,
and race. For example, the show explains the zombies as infected with
a virus that brings death and life-in-death. Viral narratives in popular
culture often mobilize sexual and racial panics that locate disease, disability, and death in sexually and racially othered bodies. In The Walking Dead, the zombies historical racialization as Afro- Haitian and
alignment with improper desire that can spread a virus to unsuspecting
and undeserving humans raises the specter of HIV/AIDS and draws on
even while it disavows this connection.
For example, in the rst season the survivors head to the Centers
for Disease Control, assuming that answers about the virus and zombies
would be available there if anywhere. After meeting with the head
researcher in charge of eradicating the zombie virus, Edwin Jenner, the
group learns that no cure has been found, even though French scientists
had come close. In choosing to highlight the CDC and American-French
viral research relationships, the writers of the show invoke the specic
history of the AIDS pandemic, as both played key roles in publicizing

Queering and Cripping the End of the WorldHannabach 111


HIV/AIDS in its early years (often with highly discriminatory effects)
and constructing viral origin and transmission narratives that became
the dominant ones circulating today. French and U.S. scientists share
credit for discovering that HIV is the virus that leads to AIDS (Wald
24445), and it was the CDC played a key role in associating certain
scapegoated populations with HIV/AIDS and encouraging bans on specic populations donating blood (Treichler 4760; Bayer and Feldman
2027).
In the early years of the AIDS pandemic, Haitians (and later, African
Americans) were targeted by the CDC and other health agencies as especially dangerous vectors of HIV, and in public health policy, immigration
law, and popular cultural representation they were depicted as the walking deadtechnically alive but soon-to-be-dead infected bodies capable
of contaminating and killing good unsuspecting Americans who were
white and middle class. This framework also shaped how Haitian immigrant women were positioned, as their reproductive and sexual practices
were understood by the U.S. state to be capable of infecting the body
politic with the HIV virus (Hannabach 3235). Intertwining Haitian,
gay male, and female subjects through their presumed shared bad
blood that could spread viral disability in the form of AIDS, such histories reveal the ways the zombie has long been constructed through
race, sexuality, and disability.
This historical construction heavily shapes how The Walking Dead
represents both zombies and humans. What separates the zombies from
the humans then is that the zombies are ruled by a need for human esh
that in the logic of the show is coded as anti-social. While the heterosexual desire valued on the show is also a desire for human esh and a
type of communion through that eshly encounter, the zombies are constructed as different in the effects their desire has on their object: death.
If heteronormativity and its attendant gender, racial, and class ideologies
require a eshly desire that reproduces heteronormativity in the form
of children (presumed to grow up to be straight and start the process
again), the zombies enact a rather queer form of desire and reproduction.
The compulsory heterosexuality and compulsory able-bodiness that bind
the shows humans together are entirely irrelevant to the zombies, whose
desire for eshy consumption dees gender, sexual, and familial boundaries. Zombied wives attack their human husbands, zombied adults
rip apart their own children (and vice versa), and zombies of all genders
descend in bloody orgies to satiate their cravings for consumption, sexual
mores be damned. Essentially, the compulsory sexual norms structuring

112

Zombies and Sexuality

U.S. society no longer bind the zombies nor shape their desires, even as
the human survivors cling to them. Indeed, the zombies quite explicitly
refuse marriage ties, coupledom, childrearing, and gender norms, desiring instead some rather queer corporeal communion and reproducing
not through heterosexual intercourse but rather through promiscuous
orgies of esh and blood with bodies of all genders. The HIV/AIDS
metaphor codes the zombie virus as a challenge to heteronormativity in
ways similar to AIDS narratives that blamed the virus on sexually deviant
bodies, including gay men (Wald), Haitian mothers (Hannabach), and
sex workers (Treichler).
Heteronormativity is not the only social norm that the zombies of
The Walking Dead violate, however. Robert McRuer writes that compulsory heterosexuality is intertwined with compulsory able-bodiness;
both systems work to (re)produce the able body and heterosexuality.
But precisely because these systems depend on a queer/disabled existence that can never quite be contained, able-bodied heterosexualitys
hegemony is always in danger of collapse (McRuer 31). Quite literally,
the zombies are the constitutive outside of the human, they are what
the humans are dened against, and the zombies sexual and reproductive practices are a key component of what renders them inhuman in
this world.
Not only do the zombies perform a version of queer disability, they
trouble the boundaries separating queer from straight, disabled from
able-bodied, and human from inhuman. Further, they reveal the ways
that disability functions differently for different kinds of subjects. For
example, The Walking Deads white men are continually rendered disabled through traumatic injury, yet this form of disability is overcome
to avoid threatening white patriarchal heterosexuality. The show opens
with the straight white male protagonist Rick in the hospital, waking
from the coma he fell into after being shot. Staggering out of the hospital,
still weak and injured, Rick realizes that his wife Lori and son Carl are
missing, the city is seemingly empty of humans, and blood-thirsty zombies are running amok. It turns out that Lori and Carl have escaped with
Shane, another sheriff who is Ricks partner, and are camped out in the
woods with several other survivors. Thinking Rick dead, Lori and Shane
begin a sexual relationship that is depicted as partly out of desire for
each other and partly out of a desire to have Shane ll the open role of
Carls father, thus preserving the heterosexual nuclear family in the midst
of chaos. The show essentially begins in a place of straight white male
disability, which is overcome through Ricks reclamation of his physical

Queering and Cripping the End of the WorldHannabach 113


strength, leadership abilities, and heterosexual family. Later on, Rick
and his newly reclaimed wife and son join up with a few other human
survivors to form the core group of protagonists. Eventually confronting
Shane about his affair with Lori, Rick further solidies his right of sexual
access to Lori as well as his control over the reproduction of white masculinity exemplied by his relationship with his son Carl.
Unlike Ricks law-and-order form of straight white masculinity,
another of the core group members, Merle, embodies a specically
racist, misogynist, and homophobic white-trash form of masculinity.
After repeatedly harassing the women and people of color in the group,
threatening the groups survival, Merle is handcuffed to a rooftop by
Rick and left to die by the women and T-Dog, an African American man
who Merle had a history of attacking. To avoid being eaten by zombies,
Merle is forced to cut off his hand, rendering him an amputee who eventually nds and joins the suburban enclave of Woodbury, which is introduced in Season 3 and which I address below. Merles amputation, while
represented as traumatic, does not threaten his masculinity or white
supremacist claims to bodily and cognitive superiority. In fact, while in
the town of Woodbury Merle devises a weaponized prosthetic that he
uses to attack zombies and threaten human charactersthe prosthetic
consists of a metal tube with a bayonet attached to the end, essentially
turning his amputated arm into a stabbing phallus. In Woodbury, Merle
uses this prosthetic to attack Glenn, an Asian American man who
belongs to the core group of protagonists, as well as help the Governor
of Woodbury sexually assault Maggie,8 another member of the core
group and Glenns girlfriend. Essentially, the amputation that might have
challenged Merles claim to violent white heterosexual masculinity is
overcome through technology that in fact bolsters and expands the
violent ways such an institution can manifest.
There are a number of other instances of white male disability
throughout the show, and all are presented as sudden and unexpected.
For all of these characters, disability and bodily disruption are experienced as a break in their normal life course, a sudden interruption to
the physical abilities, sexual access, and economic future to which
straight white masculinity has historically been granted entitlement.
The trauma each of these characters experiences is predicated upon not
expecting disability to play a role in their life, at least until old age. In
some ways, the zombie apocalypse might even be seen to allay fears of
disability in old age, as the human characters dont even know if they
will live that long. Further, rather than challenge the sexual, racial, and

114

Zombies and Sexuality

corporeal norms governing the world of The Walking Dead, these experiences of disability all shore up such norms. As David Serlin argues in
Replaceable You, people with disabilities or with bodies considered different can often be reincorporated into the body politic through prosthetic and other medical technologies that have historically been made
available to white men (Serlin 2). However, what about disabled bodies
that do not have access to these technologies of social incorporation?
Those irredeemably queer bodies, those bodies that are rendered the
constitutive outside to the social, and whose disabilities are rendered
not through sudden, unexpected traumatic injury but rather through
historical processes of racialization, sexualization, and gendering enjoy
no such reincorporation.
In contrast to the white men who experience disability as sudden
and surmountable, the women and people of color in the show are disabled in more structural and sustained ways. Lori, who is entirely dened
in relation to the men in her life (Ricks wife, Carls mother, Shanes lover),
becomes pregnant during the second season and is unsure of the fetuss
father. Her pregnancy is presented as disabling both her and the rest of
the group, as it is the reason why characters are forced to risk their lives
obtaining pregnancy tests and baby formula, the reason why the group
cannot move as quickly or as strategically as the male leaders desire, and
the reason why Rick and Shane ght with each other. Eventually, Loris
pregnancy is presented as the reason why Loris son Carl is forced to kill
his mother, to save the baby and prevent its zombication. Loris dependency upon the group is attributed to her pregnancy, and sets her apart
from the other women characters. While almost all of the women on
the show are dependent upon men for survival, support, and basic
human existence, pregnancy in particular is pathologized. Feminist
scholars have been right to critique the pathologizing ways pregnancy
has historically been constructed as a disabling condition in legal and
cultural frameworks that take white masculinity as their norm (Samuels
5556). However, feminist disability studies scholars have also pointed
out that this critique also often leaves intact the ableist assumption that
disability is inherently contaminating and that certain bodily conditions
themselves are disabling (Hall 6). In the framework of the show, women
in general and pregnant women in particular are rendered disabled not
in the sudden, surmountable ways the white men are, but rather in their
very constitution by the social order that denes them as dependent.
Relatedly, the African American characters on the show are disabled
in ways quite different from the white characters. In Social Death:

Queering and Cripping the End of the WorldHannabach 115


Racialized Rightlessness and the Criminalization of the Unprotected, Lisa
Marie Cacho argues that disease and disability gure centrally whenever
there is the need to represent state-sanctioned violence as necessary for
national survival [because] disability is the language of devaluation, contagion, and control (69). In the history of U.S. law and culture, queerness,
non-binary gender, and non-whiteness have been construed as disabilities
that justied state and extra-state intervention.9 Unlike the white characters on the show who suddenly become disabled yet have their sexual
and gender propriety remain intact, the African American characters are
positioned as constitutive others who must be eliminated or managed
in much the same way diseases are. In all three seasons of the show
broadcast so far, African American men have been killed, harmed, and
incarcerated disproportionately to the white characters (men and women
both). For the most part the show itself is entirely uninterested in interrogating the racism at work in this representation. However, a brief scene
in Season 2 opens the possibility for critique even as it shuts it down.
In Bloodletting, the second episode of the season, T-Dog and the other
characters realize that a wound T-Dog had suffered when cutting his
arm on a rusted car frame has become infected. The blood infection has
been getting worse, and T-Dog begins to fear for his survival. Signicantly, his fear focuses not only on the zombies but white humans and
their historical propensity for racist violence. Speaking with Dale, the
older white grandfather-type of the group, T-Dog notes the precarity of
both blackness and disability in the neoliberal zombie world:
T-Dog: They think were the weakest. What are you? 70?
Dale: 64.
T-Dog: And Im the one black guy. You realize how precarious that makes
my situation?
Dale: What the hell are you talking about?
T-Dog: Im talking about two good-ol-boys cowboy sheriffs [Rick and
Shane] and a redneck [Dale] whose brother [Merle] cut off his own
hand. Who in that scenario do you think is going to be the rst
to get lynched?

This scene is exceptional in its direct address of structural racism and


white supremacy, as well as the ways it links both to ableism. T-Dog correctly notes that black bodies have always had more to fear from the
white state than the other way around, given the histories of racialized
slavery, mass lynchings, and criminalization/incarcerationall of which
have been justied as protecting white, heteronuclear families from black
male threats. Similarly, he links race to disability, noting the ways dis-

116

Zombies and Sexuality

ability in the form of Dales old age and his own blood poisoning make
them likely targets of violence from the other white characters, as well
as the neoliberal world itself. Dale here speaks as the good white liberal
who cannot believe that race and disability would matter in the biopolitical context of the apocalypse (partly because he cannot understand
racism and ableism as structural, as something other than individual
prejudice), but T-Dog points out that racism and disability have always
grounded U.S. state practices and heteronormative community formations, as well as histories of visual representation. Zombies or no zombies, black life has always been rendered precarious in the U.S. state and
visual culture even as that black precarity has grounded the construction
of the white, bourgeois heteronuclear family. Black people have historically been enslaved, tortured, lynched, murdered, raped, and incarcerated so that white heterosexual family life can be enshrined. Similarly,
compulsory able-bodiness lives at the heart of U.S. politics and culture.
In a rare moment of explicit critique, T-Dog and the show itself forces
viewers to confront the ways race, sexuality, and disability dovetail not
merely in the ctional and futural world of the zombie apocalypse, or
even in the present day world of the viewers, but across the entire history
of the United States. Just when we think the show might be opening up
space to critique the ideologies that thus far the show seems deeply
invested in maintaining, the moment is closed down. Dale reduces TDogs structural critique to hallucinations caused by a fever, and the
show cuts over to the white characters escapades in the woods. At the
end of this remarkable scene, ultimately structural racism and ableism
are reduced to the delusional fantasies of a black disabled man in need
of cure. Despite this attempt at foreclosure though, the show cant manage to entirely erase the lingering effects of T-Dogs radical and structural
critique of compulsory white heteronormativity and its attendant compulsory able-bodiness. T-Dog is eventually killed off, as are all of the
black male characters, save oneTyreeseas of the time of this writing
(the end of Season 3). Yet his critique seems to haunt the shows subsequent episodes, demonstrating how possibilities for resistance to the
shows ideologies lurk within the very fabric of visual culture itself.

Sexual Politics and Queer Crip Possibilities10


If T-Dogs scene opens up a critique that even the apparatus of the
show cant entirely close down, the representation of another African

Queering and Cripping the End of the WorldHannabach 117


American characterMichonnefurther explores the queer crip possibilities at work in The Walking Dead. It is true that The Walking Dead
is deeply invested in heteronormativity and seems unable to deal substantially with explicitly gay, lesbian, or bisexual identities. Indeed, there
are neither self-identied LGBTQ characters nor same-gender sexual
encounters in three seasons of the show, leaving viewers with the impression that the shows producers think that all the queers in the prominent
gay tourism location of Hot-lanta have either been eaten by zombies
or become zombies themselves. No self-identied queer characters in
Atlanta seems about as plausible as the extremely low number of African
American characters in a city that is known for its very large and vibrant
LGBTQ and African American populations.11 However, just because
there are no self-identied LGBTQ characters does not mean there are
no queers, any more than the fact that nobody saying the word disabled
on the show means that disability is absent. Indeed, if a queer crip reading of the show looks for and values moments when heteronormativity,
white supremacy, and compulsory able- bodiness are troubled and
exceeded, the character of Michonne offers some incredibly rich queer
crip pleasures. From her introduction to the series all the way through
her every scene, Michonne remains the most resistant and othered
body on the show. Simultaneously marked as African American, queer,
butch, and disabled, Michonne represents all that the show seems to be
working against. Yet because of this she provides one of the clearest
examples of the tenuousness of compulsory heterosexuality, compulsory
able-bodiness, and compulsory whiteness in post-apocalyptic Atlanta.
Michonne is introduced in the last scene of Season 2. In it, the camera follows Andrea, a young white woman and one of the core group of
survivors, eeing zombies in the woods while trying to nd the rest of
the group that has abandoned her, thinking her already dead. Pinned
down by a zombie and about to be killed, Andrea is saved by a hooded,
sword-wielding gure who swiftly decapitates Andreas attacker. This
savior turns out to be Michonne, who drags behind her two black, shackled zombies that have had their arms and mouths brutally cut off.
Michonnes physical prowess is established in her rst action and
repeated throughout subsequent scenes as she easily slices through
attacking zombies, outruns and out ghts most of the men in the show,
and wields her katana sword with a masters skill. Comfortable with
weapons and physical violence, Michonne waits for no savior and rejects
dependency on men, distinguishing her from all of the other women on
the show. She is coded as butch in relation to the other women charac-

118

Zombies and Sexuality

ters, queering her gender presentation. Her hair is in braids, she wears
no apparent makeup, and perhaps most tellingly, she walks with her
head held high, physical prowess, and even a bit of a swaggerall visual
signiers that in the world of the show are only attributed to men, never
women. Considering that all of the white women on the show are coded
as feminine, we might be wary of the racism at work in constructing
femininity itself as white and thus excluding Michonne, particularly
given the U.S. history of excluding black women from femininity12 and
queer black women from queer femme communities (Bryan 147).
Indeed, there are very few African American women on the show including Jacqui, a mother and wife who kills herself at the CDC; and Sasha,
a member of another survivor group who eventually joins the Governor
at Woodbury. However, these other black women are also quite feminine
in relation to Michonne, which renders her butchness not as synonymous with black womanhood per se but rather as something that explicitly queers her in contrast to the other black and white women.
In addition to her gender presentation, Michonne is queered
through her emotional and erotic attachments. After saving Andrea, the
two women become close, with Michonne tending to and often risking
her life to save Andrea from various illnesses and attacks as they live
and travel together for several months.13 Throughout the rst half of
Season 3, while there is no sex depicted between them, their relationship
is visualized through tropes associated with romantic and sexual coupledom: they are framed by the camera as physically close to one another,
they touch often (particularly signicant considering how rare it is for
other characters to touch or be touched by Michonne), their emotional
commitment is clearly to each other, they embody a vaguely butchfemme dynamic, and, perhaps most telling, Michonne becomes very
jealous when Andreas emotional and bodily attention shifts to another
sexual partner. When Andrea begins a sexual relationship with the Governor of Woodbury, a terrifyingly brutal and abusive character whose
violence is immediately obvious to Michonne, the women essentially
experience a break-up. Citing the long-standing and offensive stereotype
in lesbian cinema, literature, and cultural productions of the supposed
straight girl who leaves the supposed real lesbian for a man, The
Walking Dead renders their break up legible to audiences who have
already learned to read the codes signifying their erotic and emotional
entanglement. Richard Dyer explains that visual culture often relies upon
iconography to signify homosexuality without having to (or being able
to) explicitly depict it, using a certain set of visual and aural signs which

Queering and Cripping the End of the WorldHannabach 119


immediately bespeak homosexuality and connot[ing] the qualities associated, stereotypically, with it (Dyer 300). By employing camera angles,
framing, costumes, blocking, and eye line matches that we have been
trained to read as signifying sexual coupledom, indeed the same ones
used in the show to represent heterosexual couples such as Lori/Rick
and Maggie/Glenn, The Walking Dead can plausibly render Andrea and
Michonne a lesbian couple and make their relationship central to the
narrative without ever having to explicitly declare it. Given the obvious
coding of this relationship, we might wonder after the shows coyness.
However, doing so forgets the historic relationship between onscreen
homosexuality and connotation,14 as well as what Danae Clark15 and
Katherine Sender16 call gay window dressing: the strategic usefulness
of deploying ambiguous signiers that can be read as gay or straight,
depending upon the audience. In this way, Michonne can be queered
through her removal from normative constructions of gender (femininity) and race (whiteness), thus offering a momentary critique of those
ideologies, even while the show as a whole can maintain its overarching
ideological investment, much in the same way T-Dogs critique functions.
Michonnes queerness is additionally marked through disability in
ways that reveal the intertwining of racial, sexual, and gender norms.
After being ambushed by Merle and the Governors men, Michonne and
Andrea are kidnapped and taken to Woodbury where they encounter
the Governor for the rst time. Michonne is immediately suspicious of
the man and refuses to engage with him in any way, plotting their escape.
The Governor is also immediately suspicious of Michonne, and troubled
by her gender presentation, ease with weapons, and protection of
Andrea. Most particularly, Michonnes refuses to answer the Governors
questions or engage with the social systems he represents, instead
remaining silent and glowering. The white patriarchal town of Woodbury demands that this black, queer, butch body explain herself in its
terms, and she continually refuses to engage or acknowledge these norms
as valid. The show constructs Michonne as disabled in this context in
much the same way people with non-normative communication strategies are assumed to be developmentally disabled, stupid, or mad. For
example, stereotypes of the mad woman, the retard, the stupid person of color, and the stoic butch who just wont communicate reect
this conguration, aligning all of these gures with the zombies in the
show who similarly employ nonnormative communication strategies
that the humans cannot or will not comprehend.17 While it may seem

120

Zombies and Sexuality

surprising to read Michonne as disabled (after all, she is one of the most
physically capable characters and doesnt sustain any long-term serious
injuries through Season 3), disability studies reminds us that disability
is constructed by culture, as it is cultural institutions that disable particular bodies through constructing them as other. In this way,
Michonnes blackness, queerness, communication practices, affects, and
butchness are all rendered disabilities in the world of the show, disabilities that exceed and ultimately critique the ideologies of compulsory
able-bodiness, compulsory heterosexuality, and compulsory whiteness.
Part of what frustrates the Governor about Michonne is her refusal
of the gender norms, sexual practices, and racial hierarchies that the
Governor and Woodbury represent, as well as her revealing of the brutal
violence that undergird them. From their rst introduction, Michonne
reads the Governor as violent and dangerous. In contrast to the zombies,
whose violence and threat to the core group of survivors is obvious to
all of the characters, the Governors threat remains hidden to all but
Michonne. Unlike Andrea, she never buys into the faade of a social
contract and a community based around (coerced) consent. She recognizes from the beginning the brutal and constitutive violence that undergirds Woodburys social order, which includes torturing zombies in the
name of scientic experimentation, and refuses to play along. For this,
the Governor absolutely hates her. The show tries to suggest that his
brutal and terrifying rage stems from specic actions of hers (such as
killing his daughter, who is a zombie), but this is ultimately unconvincing
as his hatred of this black, queer, butch body is more clearly tied to her
very being rather than any specic actions she takes. As the show pits
Michonne and the Governor against each other for the affections of
Andrea, it subtly invokes sexual histories of race and disability whereby
white heteronormativity is dened against and through racialized queer
disability. While the show itself does not seem interested in critiquing
these histories, indeed its conservative politics cause it to uphold and
naturalize them, Michonne persists, ercely attacking those who attack
her and her loved ones, and refusing to allow such a system to dene
her desires, embodiment, or relationships.
As is clear, AMCs The Walking Dead offers a rich site to analyze
the ways that sexuality, disability, gender, and race intertwine in contemporary zombie media. Further, it elucidates the histories of violence
that stitch together global capitalism, compulsory able-bodiness, and
white heterosexual patriarchy. The show raises complicated questions
about these histories and offers moments of disruption that are never

Queering and Cripping the End of the WorldHannabach 121


entirely smoothed over by the narrative attempts at closure. A queer
disability studies reading elucidates queer and resistant possibilities
throughout the show, particularly regarding the intertwining of race,
sexuality, and disability in zombie representations. Placing the show
alongside the other zombie media examined in this book, we can also
further trace the ways political, cultural, and economic systems rise
again long after their supposed death. Ultimately, The Walking Dead
demands that we reckon with the radical possibilities of non-normative
bodies in all of their queer, disabled, and racialized forms. If zombie representations carry with them long histories of violence and exploitation,
then critical reading practices can intervene in these histories and construct other, more heterogeneous socialities.

Notes
1. The television show is adapted from Robert Kirkman, Tony Moore, and Charlie
Adlards comic book series of the same name. Due to space constraints, this essay
focuses on the television show only. The comics contain signicant differences in
narrative and character development, which renders some of the details of my argument only applicable to the television show. For example, in the television show,
Michonne (who I analyze extensively later in this essay) is a much queerer character
than she is in the comics, and in the show the narrative information about viral
transmission and the zombie virus is discovered in a different manner (and through
a different character) than in the comics. Many Walking Dead television audiences
are also fans of the comics, and analyzing how those transmedia audiences render
intertextuality might make for an interesting larger project.
2. See for example Christie and Lauro; Moreman and Rushton; McAlister.
3. For more on queer disability studies, see Kaefer; McRuer; McRuer and Mollow;
McRuer and Wilkerson.
4. Trans* refers to all non-cisgendered people, including transgender people,
transsexuals, transvestites, genderqueers, gender non-conforming people, and others.
5. It is important to keep in mind that these marginalized groups have been historically written out of the social contract; indeed they are the bodies against which
liberalism (and neoliberalism) has been dened. Through unequal suffrage laws,
slavery, discrimination in housing and employment, mass criminalization and incarceration, ableist constructions of public space, colonial genocide, heterosexist and
privatized health care systems, and racist immigration laws, these populations have
disproportionately been denied the basic means of survival to begin with, and then
are blamed in neoliberal discourse for being drains on the state coffer and used as
justication for cutting public services. For more on these histories, see Spade.
6. In making this claim, I do not mean to equate the historical ways these populations have been and are dened, nor do I mean to reproduce the violent analogies
proclaiming these populations mutually exclusive. Rather, following interdisciplinary
social justice scholars I want to emphasize how these populations have been historically produced against the white, male, heterosexual, able-bodied citizen through
shared discourses of medicine, law, political policy, economics, and popular culture
(Cacho; Chen; Smith; Spade; Mogul, Ritchie, and Whitlock).

122

Zombies and Sexuality

7. Cisgendered refers to people whose assigned gender and gender identity align;
in other words, people who are not transgendered.
8. Merle incarcerates Maggie and plans to interrogate her about the rest of the
groups whereabouts. The Governor tells Merle that he will take over, at which points
the Governor proceeds to sexually assault her and threaten her with rape. While
Merle does not directly assault Maggie in this scene, he sets up the situation, enables
the Governors actions, and defends the behavior afterwards.
9. The history of the eugenics movement is but one evocative example of this.
Throughout the 19th and 20th centuries, the term of feeblemindedness functioned
as a catch-all category that physicians and lawmakers attributed to lesbians, gay
men, transgender people, bisexual people, sex workers, African Americans, Native
Americans, people with physical and mental disabilities, unwed mothers, poor and
homeless people, and immigrants to justify forcibly sterilizing them (Cacho; Wilkerson; Hall; Garland-Thomson; Ordover; Briggs; Schweik).
10. I draw here on the work of Carrie Sandahl and other disability studies scholars
who argue for crip as both a radical adjective and verb analogous to and intertwined
with queer. For Sandahl, cripping spins mainstream representations or practices
to reveal able-bodied assumptions and exclusionary effects. Both queering and cripping expose the arbitrary delineation between normal and defective and the negative
social ramications of attempts to homogenize humanity (37).
11. See E. Patrick Johnson; Howard.
12. See Somerville.
13. The relationship between Michonne and Andrea is signicantly different
between the television show and the comic series. In the show, it is the central relationship for both characters in Season 3. In the comics, the two women barely know
each other and do not have any kind of intimate relationship.
14. See D. A. Miller.
15. Clark discusses gay window dressing in Commodity Lesbianism.
16. Sender discusses gay window dressing in Business Not Politics.
17. For more on how communication norms have been used to construct these
gures in popular culture, medicine, law, and even queer communities, see Gilbert
and Gubar; Hall; Garland-Thomson; Gates; Halberstam Female Masculinity.

Re-Animating the
Social Order
Zombies and Queer Failure
Trevor Grizzell
Zombies are failures. Whether it is in the realm of reproduction,
control, or life itself, zombies fail to t into the social order in ways that
make sense, and instead have a knack for bringing about the failure of
society at-large. In contemporary popular culture, works like The Walking Dead prominently feature zombies as plot devices, with zombies
infecting characters with unknown pathogens, making spaces unlivable,
and creating a generalized sense of panic that serves to push the narrative
forward. I do not think it is a coincidence that queer people have frequently been accused of these same actions and similarly seen as lessthan-human and societal failures, with accusations of contagion and difference similarly upholding normative standards of intimacy and life. It
is this articulation of queerness and the zombie that I analyze, asking
how the gure of the zombie might offer new visions of queer politics.
As Judith Butler questions in an analysis of violence and mourning post
9/11, if the humanities has a future as cultural criticism, and cultural
criticism has a task at the present moment, it is no doubt to return us
to the human where we do not expect to nd it, in its frailty and at the
limits of its capacity to make sense (Precarious Life 151). Along these
lines, I call on a variety of contemporary and historical works in cultural
theory and criticism to suggest we might nd in the zombie new perspectives on failure and the human (and non-human, for that matter)
that may give us a certain queer view of culture, a reconceptualization
123

124

Zombies and Sexuality

(or what one might call a re-animation) of the social order that gestures
towards a politics of the zombie that might be, in its seeming elision of
life and meaning, more livable and meaningful for queers and other nonnormative persons. Through this queer re-thinking of the zombie, I want
to continue critical work begun by other scholars that questions what
meanings we might gather from the supposedly meaningless and antisocial zombie, and reveal the ways in which the zombie can encourage
us to rethink how we understand life, intimacy, and interactions between
the human and non-human.
To talk about the politics of the undead is in many ways to take part
in a type of theorizing that might seem unnecessary, wasteful, or unconnected to real-world concerns; zombies arent exactly knocking down
the doors of the average citizen on an everyday basis, after all. As numerous scholars have shown, however, the ideological issues present in
depictions of the zombie are extremely pertinent; denitions of life and
death (and the meaning attached to these denitions), notions of proper
kinship and reproduction, and rhetorics of control and excess serve to
buttress innumerable inequalities in contemporary society. Even if the
subject matter may seem silly or illogical, that shouldnt stop us as critics
from engaging with it; if anything, this underlying assumption of uselessness should be immediately suspect and indicative of a critical gap
worth examining. In The Queer Art of Failure, Judith Halberstam encourages us to engage these seemingly childish and immature notions of
possibility in order to divine new ways of encountering and understanding the world and its underlying components and structures (23).
In many ways I am engaging with her notion of low theory, a type of
theorizing that makes its peace with the possibility that alternatives
dwell in the murky waters of a counterintuitive, often impossibly dark
and negative realm of critique and refusal (2). It is in the pursuit of low
theory that I nd myself knee-deep in the charnel house, digging through
discarded parts to nd meaning in seemingly meaningless corpses, a
vibrancy in death that might let us live, if not better, at least differently.
The core lens through which I am examining the gure of the
zombie is that of queer failure, exemplied in recent theoretical work
by Halberstams The Queer Art of Failure. As Halberstam asks, what
rewards might failure offer us? (3). Rather than being simply an inability to succeed and an impetus to do better, instead failure might be
reimagined as an opening for critical intervention or even an intervention in and of the social itself. From a queer theoretical perspective,
the failure to complete a task or live up to a normative standard is a cru-

Re-Animating the Social OrderGrizzell

125

cial moment in which ideology and behavior are incongruent. I argue


that in examining these incongruities, and even purposefully situating
ourselves alongside them, we can discover deeper effects of failure and
how it calls attention to alternate ways of doing or being, or at least provides respite from the never-ending call to be interpellated in the social
order, to make sense.
I will examine three main classes of failures in which the zombie
takes part. First, I look at the ways in which denitions of kinship and
reproduction are remade in the wake of the zombie, looking specically
at the symbolic death of the Child and queer forms of intimacy and
reproduction. Second, I suggest that the concepts of animacy and
necropolitics illustrate the failures of life and vitality to accurately dene
and represent the world post-zombie, opening spaces to form new ways
of understanding agency and meaning-making. Finally, I analyze the
zombies engagement with rhetorics of control, excess, and purity
through its inability to contain itself bodily and behaviorally, its inherent
impurity, and the ways in which the excess of ideology plays out in zombie literature. In these three classes of failure (family/life/control) exist
a wealth of contradictions, paradoxes, and elisions that call attention to
new or alternative forms of existence and intimacy that we might call
queer or critical because of their (sometimes violent) questioning of
implicit norms that disenfranchise those whose identities or actions lie
outside of the bounds of the social order.

Failure I: Babies Making Babies


In a memorable sequence from director Zack Snyders 2004 remake
of germinal zombie lm Dawn of the Dead, an at-term pregnant woman
is bitten by a zombie inside of the mall that survivors are using as a
refuge. Fearful that she will turn into a zombie and infect others with
whatever contagion causes zombication, her male partner ties her to
a bed but does not kill her. Soon after, she begins labor and seemingly
dies; she quickly re-animates as a zombie and gives birth to her child.
When another survivor comes to check on the couple and nds that the
mother has turned, she shoots the zombied woman, causing a reght
in the room that leaves everyone dead. When the other survivors elsewhere in the mall hear the gunshots and come to investigate, they come
across the dying shooter and quickly determine that a gunght had taken
place. Examining the other bodies in the room, they nd a small bundle

126

Zombies and Sexuality

of cloth in the fathers arms. After opening it up, the audience is presented with a close-up of what looks to be a dead child, its pale blue skin
and sunken-in eye sockets seemingly lifeless. The baby then ings its
arms wide and screams, revealing grey eyes that mark it as undead. The
audio of the baby screaming continues while the image cuts away to the
hallway outside of the room, and a gunshot is heard silencing the zombied child while the lm leaves the viewer with slow-cutting images of
empty locations in the mall.
This striking scene, and the seconds-long existence of this zombied baby, provides a wealth of imagery and incitements to thought that
epitomize, in many ways, how the zombie brings about and evinces the
failure of the standard family structure, reproduction, and intimate
human interactions. Following Mel Chens statement that queering is
violating proper intimacies, I argue that in the restructuring of human
intimacies, the zombie can be seen as engaging in a process of queering
the social order (11). For my denition of intimacy, I refer to Staci
Newmahrs discussion in her work Playing on the Edge, in which she
states that intimacy depends on the cultivation of a belief in the privacy
of a particular experience. What is intimate is that which is normally
not apparent, accessible, or available (171). I argue, through looking
specically at this sequence from Dawn of the Dead, as well as more
general conceptualizations of zombies in other ctional works as they
relate to reproduction, the body, and toxicity, that zombies undermine
simplistic understandings of bodies through their violent, unthinkable
acts that radically restructure normative models of the family, (a)sexual
reproduction, and pleasure.
If the proper intimate relationship between mother and child is one
in which the mother gives the gift of life to a child, this scene from Dawn
of the Dead begins to queer (re)production by instead presenting a
mother giving undeath to her baby. The womb itself becomes a queer
mechanism here, as it inverts the general understanding of birth practices (giving undeath rather than life). Thinking through Sara Ahmeds
conceptualization of orientations, from its queer birth this undead child
is already oriented away from the social order and towards alternative
forms of development and reproduction. As Ahmed argues, the orientations we have toward others shape the contours of space by affecting
relations of proximity and distance between bodies (3). As a zombie,
the child will seemingly never grow up, in the sense of puberty and body
development, and as such will never be able to reproduce in the normative method; in this respect, the process of infection has oriented the

Re-Animating the Social OrderGrizzell

127

child away from normative models of intimacy and love.1 Instead, however, the child would be able to (re)produce as a zombie does: through
the act of biting or sharing blood or other bodily uids. This queer act
of (re)production is not limited due to qualities of sex, gender, or even
species as standard sexual reproduction is; zombication as a process
knows few limits other than necessitating a subject for infection. The
incest taboo, as well, ceases to be meaningful in a system in which children may (re)produce with parents or siblings may infect siblings with
no extraneous consequences of consanguinity. One might think back to
the Night of the Living Dead and the scene in which the young girl Karen
is found feeding on her father who soon reanimates as a zombie, for
example, to see how a child can become the giver of undeath to her parents.
Denitions of bodily pleasure and intimacy are also complicated by
the zombie, as the mouth for the zombie becomes the privileged site of
bodily intimacy rather than the genitals and the point through which
the zombie makes its bodily connections. This intimacy, however, is not
explicitly sexual; on the contrary, it tends to be violent and frequently
traumatic for victims of zombie bites or infection. As the denition of
intimacy I presented earlier shows, intimacy does not have to be pleasant
for either or both parties. After all, to violate, and be violated, are intimate experiences if we conceive of intimacy as gaining access to something thought to be inaccessible (Newmahr 176). In this way, the bite of
a zombie could be seen as an intimate act for both parties; the bite victim
experiences something thought to generally be off-limits or taboo (the
bite of another person) as well as the foreknowledge (and accompanying
anxiety, dread, and fear) that they will likely become a zombie and experience a heretofore unknown way of existing, while the zombie experiences the specic taste of the victim and transmits the otherwisecontained contagion to the victim. The violation of human skin by zombied human jaws creates a vision of intimacy that is at once horrifying
and wondrous, life-ending and existence-creating; thanatos and eros
combine in this almost inconceivable act that disrupts the meaningmaking structures of the social order.
As these examples have hinted, intimacy is not a solely private concept. As Lauren Berlant states, the inwardness of the intimate is met
by a corresponding publicness (1). Intimacy, as a private experience, is
always understood relationally to other forms of action, and it is this
liminal space between public and private that the gure of the zombie
illuminates, bringing the intimate explicitly to the public. As many depic-

128

Zombies and Sexuality

tions of zombies in media show us, the act of a human being bitten or
eaten by a zombie seems to be most horrifying when it is seen by others.
The public display of an intimacy like violent infection or murder amplies its cultural disruption, and we can see this even beyond zombie
media and in current news. As recent events have shown us with Rudy
Eugene, the man referred to in some media reports as the Miami Zombie
who was recorded on video eating the face of another man while supposedly high on bath salts (with this video quickly making its way around
the Internet, accompanied with images of the victims devoured face [see
Koplowitz]), all intimacy is not treated equally. To know someone on the
level of taste, or to feel how ones teeth might sink into another persons
esh and the force needed to remove skin, is to cross the line of propriety
and know too much of another person, and for this act to be seen or
recorded is even more anathema (while at the same time being a curiosity
for a public discouraged from seeing such intimate acts).
These taboo forms of intimacy are not limited solely to material
bodily interactions; even the meaning of time and age affect what forms
of intimacy are seen as acceptable, and the zombie similarly disassembles
these understandings. The child is not the only age-dened gure that
is given new meaning in the zombied social order. The temporal shift
brought about by the zombie also changes the meaning of what it means
to be elderly. Bodies that may have been considered past their prime,
waning and quickly losing usefulness, once zombied become equalized
with bodies that may have once been youthful and far from the processes
of decay that are thought to characterize old age. While the zombie still
decays, it equalizes the process. The zombied child of Dawn of the
Dead is the same as the elderly woman from the same lm. In a similar
way, the (re)productive capability of the elderly becomes awakened in
the zombied form, with contagion taking the place of gametes. The
elderly person, seemingly incapable of contributing to the continuation
of society through their own reproductive processes, is now able to
(re)produce a new social order, one in which the state of decay of ones
body seems not to matter as long as ones brain is intact. Through its
reworking and redenition of time and the life cycle, the zombie calls
attention to the ways that temporality affects our understandings of what
sorts of intimacy are allowed for certain individuals (in this case, those
of certain ages).
The gure of the Child as evinced by Lee Edelman in his work No
Future provides a fantastic model for examining in greater detail the
complex meanings of this zombie child. Edelman states that in the social

Re-Animating the Social OrderGrizzell

129

order, the gure of [the] Child remains the perpetual horizon of every
acknowledged politics, the fantasmatic beneciary of every political
intervention (3). Rather than representing a real child, Edelman discusses how the idea of the Child serves to prop up the social order in
an unchanging state whose purpose is to save the children, creating a
future that is reproductive (producing itself over and over again) rather
than productive to protect the eponymous and imaginary Child.
If the Child in Edelmans formulation embodies innocence, propriety, and the continuation of society as-is, the zombie child embodies
desire, chaos, and the beginning of a radically new form of being. At
every point that the social orders Child is deployed to cover up realities
of society or individual behaviors, the zombie child shows its instabilities. While Edelmans Child lacks desire or passion, the zombie child is
id uncompromised. Where Edelmans Child is meant to remain a symbol
for all that is pure, the zombie child destabilizes notions of children as
pure and innocent, becoming a fully (re)productive subject at birth that
is only held back from eating as it pleases by its physical being. When
Edelmans Child gets trotted out whenever the social order is being
threatened in order to buttress a ailing social order, the zombie child
serves as a marker of a radically different (and productive rather than
reproductive) future.
In response to the Child of the social order, Edelman bases a model
of queerness around the death drive, what he describes as the inarticulate surplus that dismantles the subject from within, an excess within
that serves to destabilize the subject (9). Through heterosexual reproduction (and the desire for gays and lesbians to take part in similar
activities through creating families after the heterosexual model), the
state is able to reproduce itself and nds its greatest use out of sexuality. Edelman, however, sees queerness as nding its place with an
identication with the death drive and a denial of reason and the logics
of life; queerness attains its ethical value precisely insofar as it accedes
to that place [of the death drive], accepting its gural status as resistance to the viability of the social (9). Only through a denial of the
social order and politics itself can queerness truly be queer, and with
this denition, the zombie (and specically the zombie child) embodies
a form of queerness that is so radical it must be destroyed. The zombie
child is not simply dangerous on a physical level; its very existence is a
threat to the social order, as it represents radical possibilities that are
inconceivable under social norms as they are. As such, the zombie
child is never innocent, never a life worth saving (as so much political

130

Zombies and Sexuality

rhetoric surrounding abortion may tell us), only an unknowable Other


in the path of the unrelentingly reproductive social order.
If we take Edelmans argument in a slightly different direction, we
can see the ways in which womens bodies have been instrumentalized
by the social order in order to stabilize and continue the existence of
the state vis--vis the Child, such as through state incentives for having
and rearing children, the outlawing of abortion, or the presentation of
motherhood as a patriotic or moral act. While the social order of Edelmans Child holds mothering and heterosexual reproduction as stabilizing and necessary for the continuation and reproduction of life and the
social order, in zombie culture the female capacity for reproduction takes
on a destabilizing effect; the womb is no longer a safe haven for children
but a possible incubator of the undead, its membranes and ows nurturing children with whatever contagions may be present in the environment. Female bodies as sites of reproduction become dangers rather
than blessings, sites of disorientation rather than orientation, even if the
child does not become infected by a zombifying contagion.
In the second season of AMCs television adaptation of The Walking
Dead, Lori (the wife of Rick, the main character) becomes pregnant and
wonders whether it is worth bringing a child into the newly chaotic and
undead-lled world. Her acquisition of morning-after pills (which in the
logic of the show would seem to cause an abortion) is greeted with anger
from Rick, who strongly encourages her to keep the child. A season later,
Loris pregnancy leads to her death as she begins labor with the baby in
breach position and another survivor must cut open her abdomen (with
no anesthetic) to pull the baby out while Loris son sits nearby. After its
birth, the child (now named Judith) brings new needs to the group, in
terms of cleaning supplies and formula that cause rifts and complications
within the group. Rather than a symbol of societys continuation and
naturally unending reproduction of itself, then, the Child (gured here
as Judith) in this world becomes a marker of societys inability to reproduce itself without intense cultural, physical, and emotional work. While
in the show Judith is presented as a symbol of hope, Edelmans reading
of the Child brings an anxiety to this specic text that counteracts the
normative progress narrative, instead creating space for us to question
how we might re-gure or sidestep the social order as-is. She marks an
unstable space in which hope is revealed to be not just a desire for a better future, but a desire for a specic type of future that relies on the recapitulation and reinforcement of normative structures (that may be
outdated or no longer viable) to come into existence.

Re-Animating the Social OrderGrizzell

131

Failure II: Beyond Life and Death


In a scene from the rst season of The Walking Dead, the character
Andrea sits with her dying sister Amy, who has been bitten by a zombie,
and waits for her to turn into a zombie. The sequence, shot from a variety
of angles that imply Amy could awaken at any moment and attack
Andrea, similarly infecting her with the zombie contagion, continues
for an extended period of time, showing Andrea caressing Amy and talking to her. Even as Amy dies and lays motionless, Andrea still continues
to talk to and hold her sister, getting even closer to her physically to the
point that the audience feels increasing anxiety about an impending
attack. Extreme close-ups of the sisters faces and a swelling melancholy
soundtrack add to this anxiety over the inevitable reanimation and its
possible consequences for Andrea. When Amy nally turns into a zombie and begins groaning and grasping for any nearby esh, Andrea pulls
her sister in close to her own neck and strokes her hair a nal time before
pulling back and shooting her in the head, ensuring that she will no
longer be re-animated.
The key paradox underlying the re-animatedness of the zombie is
that in actuality, the body is never not animate. Processes of growth and
decay continue in the human body after it dies, with bacteria, viruses,
and microorganisms continuing to thrive in the body as an ecosystem.
While the self (in the Cartesian sense of the mind) may have died off,
the body does not cease to be meaningful; it literally lives on in both old
and new forms, as habitat and nutrient for organisms of all types and as
material. The zombie in one way, then, calls attention to an anxiety
(whether founded or not) of human beings as creatures without souls,
as lacking an essential humanness, as being able to function without
what we may think denes humans as sentient, whole beings. The horror
of the zombie as a returned family member who may not remember the
family or friends they may now be eating or attacking is not solely a fear
of the fragility of the social order and unconventional forms of intimacy
as referenced earlier, but also an attack on the very denitions held by
culture at large on what counts as alive and/or animate.
These cultural anxieties surrounding life and animacy are explicated
clearly in the work of theorist Mel Chen. Wondering how [we might]
think differently if nonhuman animals and even inanimate objects
were to inch into the biopolitical fold, Chen wants to displace life as the
center of biopolitics and introduce concepts that may offer new ways to
ponder how matter that is considered insensate, immobile, deathly, or

132

Zombies and Sexuality

otherwise wrong animates cultural life in important ways (6, 2).


For these purposes she deploys the concept of animacy, which she
denes as a quality of agency, awareness, mobility, and liveness
(2). She argues that animacy gets deployed culturally in hierarchies,
wherein the excess or lack of animacy makes subjects more or less meaningful or worthwhile. From an animal rights perspective, then, Chens
argument suggests that animals are perceived as less animate in the sense
that they seemingly lack agency or awareness, and therefore their needs
are not generally seen as worth much. When an animal is seen to be
more animate or inspires animacy in people, however, these priorities
can shift; we might think of how a seeing eye dog supports the animacy
of a blind person (through mobility and awareness) or how pets (that
inspire lively affective responses in people) easily gain more sympathy
and legal protection than most livestock. At the bottom of the hierarchy
we nd organisms or objects that seem to have no vibrancy or animacy
to them (such as dirt or mountains), and therefore warrant little protection that does not come from a place of economic or emotional
concern.
People, as well, t into these animacy hierarchies, as one must be
properly animated to be considered human. Many racial stereotypes are
rooted in these hierarchies; one might consider media portrayals of Latinos as hyperemotional, as being too animate, or portrayals of AsianAmericans as cold and unfeeling, lacking a proper level of animacy. Similarly, these hierarchies of animacy intersect with disability in a number
of ways. Major funding has historically gone to nd cures for disabilities
such as para/quadriplegia that limit normative mobility, and recently
research into curing autism (which has as some of its symptoms alternative forms of emotionality and nonnormative affective responses) has
become a major fundraising cause.2 Raced and disabled corporealities
and psychologies that lie outside of the normative constraints of animacy
must be condemned, curbed, or xed, rather than understood or taken
on their own terms.
Chens ideas surrounding animacy continue the theoretical work
attending to the concept of biopolitics, or an examination of the ways
in which the state and individuals make sense of the world through the
control, dissemination, or interaction with conceptions of life and their
intersection with human bodies. Her complication of biopolitics, moving
from Foucaults classic emphasis on life to one on animacy, leads us
towards a more nuanced way of examining the zombie and its place in
the social order. Where Chen sees the solution to biopolitics emphasis

Re-Animating the Social OrderGrizzell

133

on life as the intervention of animacy, however, Achille Mbembes work


instead presents the idea of necropolitics as a complication to biopolitics.
While biopolitics in its standard form holds the distribution and control
of life as the dening feature of sovereignty, Mbembe suggests that it is
not only the distribution of life, but death as well that denes sovereignty.
While biopolitics makes sense of government policies to allow life or
take it away, it does not properly represent the state of terror, or being
in pain as Mbembe puts it, deployed in the name of sovereignty in contemporary societies (39). In these situations, an economy of death comes
about where control over death becomes an integral political issue. As
Mbembe states, Under conditions of necropower, the lines between
resistance and suicide, sacrice and redemption, martyrdom and freedom are blurred (40). Looking at slavery as an example of how necropolitics has operated in the past, Mbembe points out how suicides
committed by slaves once they were caught by slave catchers were
instances of agency, for death is precisely that from and over which I
have power. But it is also that space where freedom and negation operate (39).
In this way, Mbembe presents death as something that is not simply the negation of life, but a productive act or event in and of
itself. This theme continues in his discussion of the work of Georges
Bataille:
Death is therefore the point at which destruction, suppression, and sacrice constitute so irreversible and radical an expenditurean expenditure
without reservethat they can no longer be determined as negativity.
Death is therefore the very principle of excessan anti-economy. Hence
the metaphor of luxury and of the luxurious character of death [15].

Mbembes remarks on necropolitics here provide us with a new lens


for understanding the zombie as not simply the removal of reason,
the destruction of order, the end of meaning, but instead as an overabundance of meaning, as a wealth of knowledge that cannot easily
be interpellated into the social order. The physicality of the zombie
reects this, as well; the zombie is never singular, but always operates
en masse. The hungry, desire-driven hordes of the undead overwhelm
the social order as-such, and social structures must be re-ordered to
deal with (if not accommodate) the non-normative behaviors and bodies
of zombies.
To not be interpellated is not, however, an inherently pleasant place
to beon the contrary, the visibility of difference frequently leads to
violence and attempts to force a subject to make sense (which we can

134

Zombies and Sexuality

see in the response of humans to zombies in most zombie literature),


and Mbembe recognizes this in his model of necropolitics. Underlying
Mbembes reading of necropolitics, both contemporary and historical,
is an inherent distrust of the Other:
The perception of the existence of the Other as an attempt on my life, as a
mortal threat or absolute danger whose biophysical elimination would
strengthen my potential to life and securitythis, I suggest, is one of the
many imaginaries of sovereignty characteristic of both early and late
modernity itself [18].

This model of necropolitics can be seen in the majority of zombie


literature, directed towards both human and nonhuman Others.
This perspective, fueled by paranoia, suggests an economy of life that
is incapable of being sustained for extended periods without crashing. Mbembe himself purports as much when he asks, What is the
relationship between politics and death in those systems that can
function only in a state of emergency? (16). Along the borders of
Mbembes model, then, we can see traces of a utopian vision of politics that can account for radically nonsensical knowledge, a politics
that may nd in excess new methods for being rather than Others
who become objects of paranoid suspicion and eventual destruction or
assimilation.
Chen and Mbembes models when read alongside one another give
an even more complex view of life, death, animacy, and the place of the
zombie in all of this. Read through Chens analysis of animacy, Mbembes
necropolitics lets us see animacy as not only something that living things
engage in, but as practices tied to things that may (soon) be dead or
non-living, as well. When models of life and death begin to bleed into
one another and when the choice to live and the choice to die are each
considered part of a spectrum of animacy, it becomes an even more useful model for examining the zombie, a gure that is neither dead nor
alive and acts with an unknown amount of agency. Through the zombie,
this failure of life and death to be stable or accurately dene what it
might mean to be animate or lively becomes even more apparent, requiring us to think more deeply on how we dene the subjectivity, usefulness,
and agency of people, things, and creatures around us. Rather than
objects devoid of meaning, Mbembe and Chens models allow us to see
zombies as critical gures in and of the social order in their excessive
meanings that defy social control and bring us to question the meanings
of life, death, and Otherness.

Re-Animating the Social OrderGrizzell

135

Failure III: Volatile Bodies


Going back as far as George A. Romeros infestation of a mall with
zombies in Dawn of the Dead and its politicization of the zombie as an
anti-capitalist gure (the consumer as mindless drone), the zombie has
served for multiple artists as an allegory for human excess in a variety
of forms, whether that be material, sexual, gastronomical, or emotional.
Even for the living in zombied landscapes, excess is commonly presented as wholly negative with no redeeming qualities. To be excessive
in the world of the zombie is in many ways to ask for death; overeating
leads to sluggishness and a lack of supplies, rampant sex brings about
complications in the form of children or difficult-to-treat disease, and
wanton tears and crying call attention to ones vulnerability and location
for dangerous Others, living and dead alike. To be a proper subject in
the world of the zombie, then, is to be always in control of ones body,
desires, and instabilities; to be human is to be in control, and to be zombie is to be embodied in excessive ways. Using theoretical work from
Stacy Alaimo, Mara Lugones, and Mel Chen, and sequences from The
Walking Dead as key texts, in this section I will discuss how the projection of excess onto the zombie both distracts from and accentuates the
excess of human existence in contemporary American culture at the
same time that it calls attention to ways of being that look beyond normative models of purity and control.
One of the key ways in which the zombie is excessive is in its toxicity
and inability to contain its (pro)creative potential. As presented earlier,
the zombies non-normative methods of (re)production, coupled with
its near-constant desire to feed, make it a model of toxicity that is dened
in many ways by excess. While the genitals are frequently privileged as
points of toxicity, leakage, or a general openness to other organisms, the
queer (re)productive potential of the zombie extends our understanding
of the body as a point of contact and intimacy with other bodies, creating
what seems to be an excessive openness. The zombie puts forth an image
of radical accessibility and openness, a body that permeates its surroundings as it is permeated by them. With its internal organs and uids open
to the world, entrails dragging along behind it as it shuffles along to
(re)produce more zombies through its vaguely-dened contagions transmitted by the simplest of bodily contact, the zombie is intimate with the
world and others in ways that living humans seem not to be.
While this bodily excess seems to be easily consolidated into the
gure of the zombie, contemporary ecocriticism and science studies

136

Zombies and Sexuality

inform us otherwise. Ecocritic Stacy Alaimo argues for a conception of


trans-corporeality, a theoretical site where corporeal theories, environmental theories, and science studies meet and mingle in productive
ways which she sees centered around the idea that the human is always
intermeshed with the more-than-human world (3). While mainstream
cultural understandings of intimacy, interpersonal connection, and
boundaries tend to assume that the body is a discrete object, Alaimo
argues instead, calling on contemporary biology and cultural theory,
that we must understand and examine how the human body is always
connected with environment and other human and non-human beings
and how these connections are articulated with systems of oppression.
New denitions and conceptions of intimacy can become visible as models that privilege touch as the main method for intimate interfacing cease
to be as meaningful, given that microscopic bits of others and the environment constantly enter our bodies through simple acts of living (eating, drinking, breathing, touching).
Through Alaimos model, the zombie becomes visible as an explicitly toxic literalization of the transcorporeality of the human body, a
being that suggests anxieties concerning purity and toxicity in its excessive contagious intimacy. In reading bodies not as discrete objects but
instead as permeable objects that have a reexive relationship with our
environment, Alaimos model encourages us to critically assess the ways
in which we inuence environments and how they might inuence us
in both material and ideological ways. In her model, the discrete categories of Subject and Object become blurred as we notice how intimately
connected humans are with each other, as well as the objects and spaces
around them, zombies included.
The viewer may nd it difficult to believe Rick (a white man) as he
tells Glenn (a Korean-American man) that race doesnt exist anymore
in an attempt to halt a conict between Glenn and a white supremacist
early in the rst season of The Walking Dead, as the show itself enacts
standard racist and sexist tropes that put white men in charge and others
in subordinate positions to either be protected (in the case of most
female characters) or utilized when necessary as bodies for work or sacrices for the plot (most characters of color). Beyond even the shows
inability to escape from racist logics in its depiction of a dystopia where
race no longer exists, is the fact that race does still matter to the survivors, in more ways than one. On a basic level, the survivors in The
Walking Dead, and most zombie literature, take on a perspective that
zombies are not like them in a process of counteridentication that labels

Re-Animating the Social OrderGrizzell

137

zombies as a class separate from humans. This very process reects a


certain form of racism (for lack of a better word), one that displaces the
Other of contemporary real society (racialized persons) for a new
Other (the undead). While not the same, both of these situations rely
on models of self/other that privilege one group over the other as
rational, stable, controlled, and intelligent, leaving the dis-privileged half
of the binary with qualities generally seen as negative: bestial, associated
with the body, irrational, out of control.
Underlying each of these situations is a need for purity, a necessity
to categorize and hierarchalize, privileging the purity of whatever side
of a binary may be acceptable (whiteness, straightness) and denouncing
the ability of the other side to ruin this sense of purity and rightness
with as little as a single non-normative sex act or a perceived racial
marker. This yearning for purity, for philosopher Mara Lugones, denies
the complexities of existence, identity, and community. Lugones presents
two models of attempting to understand identity differences, curdling,
or an exercise in impurity and splitting, or an exercise in purity (123).
While splitting (an atomistic view) attempts to create distinctions
between the various parts that create a whole (whether that be a community or a person), something curdled (an organistic view) recognizes
the interweaving, interrelated nature of the whole. In her model something in the middle of either/or, something impure, something or someone mestizo, [is] both separated, curdled, and resisting in its curdled
state; in this impure subjects curdled state, it refuses to be ordered in
a recognizable way (123).
The zombie, I would argue, encourages this model as well. As discussed above, the zombie fails to be dened by the social order. Rather,
it exists in a space between life and death, human and non-human, sentient and bestial, calling attention to the inadequacy of these binaries to
dene the zombie, and in the process encouraging us to look more
closely at the ways these binaries affect social subjects or communities.
While we can read the zombie as encouraging this level of complexity
in critical analysis, most zombie texts tend to engage in the same sorts
of simplistic calls to unity and purity that we nd in culture at large. To
read the zombie as not separate from the human, then, is to take a more
radical approach, one that might even go so far as to say that not only
are zombies like us, but we are like zombies.
Ricks statement also reveals how the desire for a pure, unied
humanity denies the cultural histories and effects of racism that go
beyond epithets and even human-on-human violence. Even if race were

138

Zombies and Sexuality

to no longer consciously matter to the survivors, this does not change


the fact that racism has already irradiated the soil, literally, through the
material effects of racist ideology. 3 A post-racial society is always
marked by its history of race, as is a post-class or post-gender system.
The end of homophobia will not bring back the wooded cruising areas
clearcut to try to keep communities free of perceived sexual perversion.
Even the destruction of the human race will not remove dioxin and other
toxic materials from the area once populated by workers at a PVC factory
(or from their buried bodies, for that matter) that were considered safe
enough to live in. To see the world from a trans-corporeal perspective,
as the zombie might encourage us to do, is to see the lasting material
effects of our cultural and ideological histories.

Conclusion
Through these texts and examples, Ive attempted to curate a heteroglossic view of the zombie as producing new ways of being at the
same time that it destroys or renders murky old ways of life (and death,
for that matter). In cultural tropes surrounding zombies and in these
examples specically, the failures of the zombie to live up to the social
order or reproduce it point to new, queerer ways of experiencing and
understanding the body, identity, environment, and society. In its seemingly nihilistic actions, the zombie manages to bring about new forms
of meaning and ways of looking at everyday phenomena, and so I continue to consider what it might mean to embody the zombies politics.
I align myself with Robert McRuer as he argue[s] for the desirability of
a loss of composure, since it is only in such a state that heteronormativity
might be questioned or resisted and that new (queer/disabled) identities
and communities might be imagined (149). I think we may already have
some models of this decomposing in zombie literature, instances where
characters may, for one reason or another, start to connect with the
undead in ways that refuse the dictates of the social order, in the process
destabilizing norms. I think of the ending scenes of Shaun of the Dead,
for example, in which we see humans coming to live with zombies as
citizens in their own right. While we dont get a sense of the complete
destruction of the social order here, as Edelman might desire, we see
the gentle pulling apart of society and questioning of norms as romances
and friendships form between the living and the undead, illuminating
the failures described in this piece and how society might try to make

Re-Animating the Social OrderGrizzell

139

sense of them. While zombies may not be an immediate threat to our


livelihood, maybe in considering their effect on our culture and politics
we might nd more understanding, complex, and livable or enjoyable
possibilities for those who operate outside of the norm and cannot, or
choose not to, assimilate.

Notes
1. A possible complication in this scenario is the fathers protecting and caring
for the child. At this point in the lm, I think his actions actually act as more of a
queering of the norm than a supporting of it, however, as weve previously seen that
he is so indebted to a normative family structure that he would watch his wife
become zombied and give birth to a zombied child rather than end her life and
her unnatural birth. In this situation, the presence of the zombie queers the nuclear
family, as it turns supposedly rational decisions (encouraging birth of child, protecting family) into irrational ones (proliferating the undead, protecting zombies).
2. For more on some of the issues surrounding autism and medical treatment,
see Rosin.
3. Here Im specically thinking of the history of uranium mines built on Native
land in the United States, and the subsequent worker exploitation and environmental
degradation taking place that continues to this day in the name of clean nuclear
energy.

Gay Zombies
Consuming Masculinity and
Community in Bruce
LaBruces Otto; or, Up with
Dead People and L.A. Zombie
Darren Elliott-Smith
Traditionally the vampire remains a clear top to the zombies bottom: within the undead cohort, the zombie is a marginalized upstart
and notably sits outside the literary tradition. Often depicted as an
uncharismatic and often comic creature, the zombie is often satirically
deployed as a representation of mindless conformity or consumption.
For James Twitchell the zombie is an utter cretin, a vampire with a
lobotomy (Twitchell 15), and Kyle Bishop underscores the gures limited emotional depth, [its] inability to express or act on human desires.
Being bound to physical action he suggests that the zombie must be
watched (Bishop Raising the Dead 196). This suggests both a compulsion to look at the gure of the zombie and a wariness of a monster
that must be kept at a remove, for fear of being turned or being
infected.
Such anxieties also bear comparison with the guardedness inherent
in homosexual panic. In recent queer-inuenced horror lm the zombie
gure is used both as a cipher for homosexuality and for a sub-cultural
critique within western gay male culture. This article focuses specically
on the shambling, semi-articulate, gay zombies from Bruce LaBruces
melancholic and pornographic zombie lms Otto; or, Up with Dead Peo140

Gay ZombiesElliott-Smith

141

ple (2008) and L.A. Zombie (2010). LaBruces appropriation of the gay
zombie gure is used as a means of exploring sub-cultural anxieties
within a white, bourgeois, homonormative community, but similarly the
emphasis on zombie performance reveals Otherness as celebratory.
LaBruces Otto; or, Up with Dead People uses the zombie to attack both
oppressive homophobia (in the lms poignant portrayal of zombie/queer
bashing) and to critique the bourgeois homonormativity of its middle
class Berlin clubbing milieu. His comic contemplation of the deadening
gay scene reveals the isolation and disillusionment within certain gay
communities. The lms depiction of the young gay zombie Otto as both
consumed and a reluctant consumer (a satirical riff on gay male
top/bottom sexual politics) locked within an inescapable capitalist ideology also points the nger at urban gay cultures role in the privileging
of property.
The messy physicality of the zombie also connects with the zombie
lms frequent utilization of pornographic tropes. The hard-core sexual
elements in Ottos gut-fucking imagery magnify the gay mans oral
eroticism in cannibalistic orgies that supplant anality with orality.
LaBruces follow up lm L.A. Zombie develops Ottos hard-core scenes
of necrophilic gay sex and, as such, forms its own critiques of gay mens
erotic valorization of masculine forms as meat and the emerging zombication of a capitalist gay porn industry. Yet despite the radical potential
of gay zombie sex as a method of alternative reproduction, it is often
alienating rather than empowering.

Zombie Bottom Feeders


In George A. Romeros denitive series of zombie lms (1978
2008), the zombie becomes identied with consumption rather than
production, it becomes counter-productive, developing into a compulsive esh eater. Romeros socio-political horror lms are the rst to conate the gure with cannibalism in its ravenous corporeality, a new
conguration that proved so effective that esh eating was quickly established as a core trait of the cinematic zombie. Peter Dendle asserts that
Romero liberat[ed the gure] from the shackles of a master, and invested
his zombies not with a function to serve, but rather a drive (Dendle
The Zombie Movie Encyclopedia 6). Though Romeros zombies lose their
individuality en masse, their capitalist cannibalism reveals a contradictory desire to regain individual subjectivity via consumption, but also,

142

Zombies and Sexuality

conversely, a desire to t in with the consumer community. Indeed, in


the individuals aspiration for difference from others, a certain element
of homogeneity is achieved resulting in a clonish sameness. This same
homogeneity is also integral to queer appropriations of the zombie.
White male homosexual culture also encourages a sameness dened by
materialism, being accepted into the scene and an adherence to a
hyper-muscular gym body image.1 This recognizable difference-butsameness is resonant with what Leo Bersani calls the homogeneity of
homo-ness in same sex, a desire for the same, from a perspective of a
self already identied as different from itself (Bersani Is the Rectum
a Grave? 6). This also takes the form of a valorization of an ideal masculinity (which inevitably takes the form of macho heterosexuality) that
the gay subject also dis-identies2 with.

So, Whats So Queer About the Zombie?


The zombie manifests a somnambulistic, perpetually threatening
and liminal sexuality that is bound to the corporeal and arguably has
been treated with repugnance. In spite of the obvious analogies, the
exposure of internal bodily spaces, bodily uids and primal urges, it has
remained largely an anti-erotic object. Gregory A. Waller concludes that
zombies are not sexual beings at all and that they rely on an even more
basic feeding instinct (esh rather than blood) than the vampire (280).
However in Contagious Allegories: George Romero, Steven Shaviro
considers Romeros postmodern zombie as a critique of the Western
capitalist system perpetuated on mindless consumption that can be also
read erotically. Shaviro writes that zombies mark the rebellion of death
against its capitalist appropriation our society endeavors to transform
death into value, but the zombies enact a radical refusal and destruction
of value (84). In terms of erotic pleasure, it is via the viewers identication with the victims on lm during the zombies attacks that they are
subjected to both a threat of penetration and of being devoured. This
can be paralleled with the subjects fear of his/her body being penetrated
or consumed by another (sexually or otherwise) or, worse still, a fear of
actually enjoying it. Shaviro concludes that the voyeuristic anticipation
of watching and waiting for the zombies to attack their victims provides
an erotic frisson of passive pleasure as a spectator which works to titillate
the viewer, encouraging enjoyment in the implied orgasmic intensity of
the climactic attack. This anticipation then gives rise to a jouissance3

Gay ZombiesElliott-Smith

143

symbolized via the frenetic externalization of the bodys insides spilling


outward.
The cycle of European zombie lms in the 70s and 80s foreground
the gures conation of sex with death. The soft-core nudity present in
Jesus Francos, Lucio Fulcis, and Jean Rollins zombie lms are heavily
inuenced by the increasing availability and popularity of pornography
and the aesthetic of what Russell calls the fantastique [ ] a sub-genre
with a predilection for the erotic (88). Yet in titles such as Zombie
Flesheaters (1979) and Zombie Holocaust (1980) it is the female body
that is eroticized. In such lms it is not the zombie gure per se that is
coded erotically, but rather it is the sexually charged methods in which
the zombie attacks, tears open victims and consumes esh that are
emphasized alongside the zombies own body as essentially penetrable
and penetrating, objectifying the corporeal in all its messy goriness. In
this sense the zombie lms visualization of the vulnerable body also
recongures it as a site of eroticized, penetrable sexual wounds. Such
lms often feature zombies thrusting sts and sinking teeth into the
fragile bodies of their victims, who in turn, writhe in the implied orgasmic intensity of being turned inside out and devoured. As Russell points
out,
[Such lms] create a disturbing link between physical pleasure and physical
pain. These lms frequently link sex with bodily trauma [at times] it
seems as if bloody wounds and sexual orices are on the verge of becoming
interchangeable [131].

Whereas the erotic pleasure of zombie attacks remain implicit in these


European titles (for the most part zombies do not have sex), in the
representation of the gay zombie the erotic potential of the body as a
penetrable/penetrating site of jouissance is explicitly realized. Gay zombie porn (and zombie porn per se) is rst visualized in Vidkid Timos
Night of the Living Dead pastiche At Twilight Come the Flesh-Eaters
(1998), which juxtaposes a low budget black and white porn parody of
Romeros socio-political horror with behind the scenes sex between the
porn lms crew and cast in color. While Flesh Eaters does not feature
the penetration of bodily wounds, the hard-core straight zombie porn
lm Porn of the Dead (2006) features explicit sex between male/female
non-zombie performers and grotesquely made-up zombies, who are sexually penetrated anally, vaginally and via wounds in their deteriorating
esh.4
LaBruces forays into gay zombie porn uses the zombie gure to

144

Zombies and Sexuality

celebrate ones difference from heteronormative standards, but it also


operates to satirize Western gay male sub-cultures that are presented as
homonormative, assimilative, bourgeois and dead. Homonormativity,
in Lisa Duggans formulation of the term, refers to
a politics that does not contest dominant heteronormative assumptions
and institutions, but upholds and sustains them, while promising the possibility of a demobilized gay constituency, and a gay culture anchored in
domesticity and consumption monogamy, devotion, maintaining privacy
and propriety [The Twilight of Equality? 179].

Within the male homosexual community, homonormativity tends to a


white, middle class, youth-oriented clonishness that aspires to a hypermasculine body ideal. Conversely gay zombie narratives often foreground differences within the amorphous horde, playing down the
symbolism of infection (and its obvious connection with AIDS signiers)
and instead focusing on sub-cultural tensions, critiquing stereotypes
and highlighting the psychic trauma of tting in.5
The infectiousness of the zombie also opens up the gure as a symbol of a quickly spreading epidemic of death, decay and queerness, which
is passed from individual to individual in a viral fashion via a bite. The
zombies bite brings death, emaciation, decay, and a desire to feed on
the esh of others. The concept of zombie-ism as sickness, with its signiers of bodily wasting, weeping sores and signs of rot clearly offers
the gure as an AIDS allegory, alongside the vampire (the chief icon of
queer infectiousness).6 As a reanimated corpse that continues to live,
the zombie establishes an undead community via viral communication.
It is via these alternative methods of unnatural reproduction (infectious
bites or scratchesand now sex) that the zombie gure threatens societys infrastructure. As such, the zombie offers an alternative to heterosexual reproductive futurism. In the very same body, the image of the
crumbling, decaying body of the (homosexual) zombie is both a signier
of ageing and mortalitythe eventual consequences of an antireproductivity that the gay man stereotypically representsthat continues uncannily to thrive.7
The zombie acts upon very primal instincts, eating to survive even
though it is already dead. Traditional zombies represent extreme lawlessness. They can be understood to be an embodiment of the id; they
are ruled entirely by appetite. Their insatiable drive to cannibalize their
victims can be read as a sublimation of an equivalent sexual drive. This
calls to mind Leo Bersanis discussion of the homophobia displayed by
the press in the 1980s, stimulated by the AIDS crisis in Is the Rectum

Gay ZombiesElliott-Smith

145

a Grave? which, for him, reinforce[d] the heterosexual association of


anal sex with a self-annihilation originally and primarily identied with
the fantasmatic mystery of an insatiable, unstoppable female sexuality
(Bersani Is the Rectum a Grave? 222). Furthermore, the gay zombie in
fact represents the return of a repressed feminine appetite in the already
annihilated gay man while, again, echoing cannibalistic terminology.
In Oral Incorporations: The Silence of the Lambs Diana Fuss discusses the slippage between homosexuality and cannibalism via Freuds
Totem and Taboo, which can also inform a useful reading of the esh
eating gay zombie in LaBruces lms. In Three Essays on the Theory of
Sexuality, Freud suggests that the remnant of aggression in the sexual
instinct is in reality a relic of cannibalistic desires (Three Essays 72).
In the cannibalistic oral stage of sexual development the infantile subjects sexual activity is not separated from the ingestion of food which
leads to a collapsing of desire and identication where the subjects sexual aim consists in the incorporation of the object (Freud Three Essays
11617). In Totem and Taboo Freud analyzes an event in which the powerful father of a primitive horde, who is surrounded by a harem of
females, casts out his sons from the tribe. Jealous of the fathers power
and access to the tribes females, the outcast brothers then conspire to
murder and consume him, assimilating his patriarchal power (Freud
Totem and Taboo 95). Yet Freud also infers a homosexual motivation
behind the siblings cannibal desire as an indicator of their homosexual
feelings and acts (Totem and Taboo 167).
Fuss goes further to suggest that gay sex has always been cannibal
murder [where] identication [is akin to] oral cannibalistic incorporation (84). The central drive of the identication process is an introjective impulse to assimilate the object, to consume and become
nourished by the very qualities that draw the cannibalistic subject to it
initially. The (gay) cannibalistic subject consumes the Other (the masculine ideal) whom he erotically desires and disidenties with. By considering oral incorporation as an extension of (and perhaps parallel to)
anal incorporation, Fuss reclaims the oral eroticism of homosexuality
alongside the scene of intercourse per anum between men, [the] spectacle of male homosexuality, [is] one based on oral rather than anal eroticism (84). For Fuss, both mouth and anus have castrating potential as
each comes to symbolize the gaping, grasping hole that cannibalistically
swallows the other (84). Oral incorporation as a simultaneous desire
to annihilate and homoerotically consume the other sheds light on the
esh eating zombies symbolic potential as a potentially queer monster.

146

Zombies and Sexuality

In LaBruces lms the forlorn, isolated, nihilistic gay zombie is often


caught in a tension between exclusion from the communal (and from
life itself ) and a desire for the communal, a carnivorously motivated
desire to identify with (and consume) other men. The zombie as sexualized Other represents a celebration of the corporeal erotic, rendering
the entire body as an erotogenic zone that is both penetrable and penetrating. LaBruces depiction of sympathetic gay zombie gures paradoxically represents a radical celebration of the conation of cannibalism
and homosexuality, a horric representation of the gay shame provoked
by such monstrous visualizations and, further still, a disenfranchisement
with the various gay sub-cultures that the individual/zombie is expected
to assimilate into.

Death is the new pornography!


Otto; or, Up with Dead Peoples eponymous zombie anti-hero represents a nihilistic, sexually indifferent and apolitical gay male subject
who is desperately seeking masculine company. LaBruce re-works the
zombie gure into themes of his oeuvre: the marginalized subject who
is fetishized by what LaBruce calls reactionary revolutionaries; the
eroticizing and consumption of hypermasculine iconography and the
conation of hard-core pornographic tropes with anti-capitalist proclamations. LaBruces generically hybrid lm fuses melodrama, music
video, existential drama, ctional documentary, pornography, goresaturated horror, and satire. The lm dramatizes the anxieties faced by
Otto (Jey Crisfar) when he fails to assimilate into the horde and, instead,
re-establishes his individuality and his marginalization. In Otto, the mob
not only represents violent zombie-phobic humans, but also the harsh
exclusivity of a zombie community (albeit a fake one) that also demands
conformity. The conventional formula of the zombie narrative is to pitch
an Us (humans) vs. Them (zombies) opposition, before revealing the
zombies as the return of the repressed, as undead versions of ourselves
in our human potential for monstrous violence. Otto transforms the
binary into an Us (the lms gay fake zombie actors) vs. Us (gay
authentic zombies) opposition, pitting homosexuality against itself in
a critique of gay subcultures. More importantly, LaBruces self-reexive
and parodic narrative offers a critique of the banal deadness of gay male
subcultures, particularly those of the very homogenous dead clubbing
scene in Berlin. LaBruces self-reexive presentation of the gay zombie

Gay ZombiesElliott-Smith

147

highlights the gure as an agent of parody and pastiche where zombie


drag becomes yet another example of gender performance that offers
the gay male subject hypermasculinity. Zombie drag becomes a method
of gender performance that highlights the gay male subjects humorous,
if anxious, negotiation with idealized masculine gender tropes. The performative,8 self-referential, and seemingly celebratory, pleasures of zombie drag via Ottos faux-zombies, Ottos own costume, and in L.A.
Zombies heavily made up alien drag, allows for a self-assertion that
draws attention to the constructedness of mainstream generic and heteronormative gender forms; it can also operate as a form of selfdivestiture. Here the jouissance implied in the loss of self is not only
afforded to the subject via masochistic identication in fatalistic sex,
but also via an immersion in the active pursuit of appropriation, performance, costume, and generic layering.
The eponymous central protagonist in Otto is unlike other horror
lm zombies in that he is not part of a consuming horde; instead La
Bruce sees him as the rebel, the outsidera solitary, marginalized
individual: with Otto I intended to make him into more of a mist, who
didnt relate to the other zombies.9. Otto is different even from the other
gay zombies depicted in the lmhe is a semi-articulate, mostly lucid
creature whose undead confusion is portrayed as amnesia. Unlike the
groaning, cannibalistic automata of the lms more stereotypically traditional zombies, he represents a newer generation that, according to
the lm, had become somewhat more rened: they had developed a limited ability to speak and more importantly to reason.
The lm questions the actual existence of real zombies by ambiguously presenting Otto as (possibly) the only authentic zombie among
ctional undead actors, while never offering or discounting either a
supernatural or rational explanation for his undead status. LaBruce also
borrows Romeros stylistic use of color and black and white from Martin
(1977) to swap between an apparent reality and the ctional lmwithin-a-lm world by literally including the conceit of not one, but
two lms being made within the overarching narrativehence the lms
undecided title. Throughout LaBruces lm we are unsure of which lm
we are watching, Up with Dead People, the political-porno-zombiemovie ctional art-lm on the rising up of a horde of gay zombie insurgents (with its pretentious, art-house black and white aesthetic), or Otto,
a documentary lm on a troubled adolescent who is convinced he is a
zombie (with its alternate color, digital video style). The two eventually
become interchangeable in LaBruces overarching narrative. To make

148

Zombies and Sexuality

matters more complex, scenes from each of the lms are often juxtaposed with one another, shown out of chronological order and both are
directed by the lms ctional radical feminist lmmaker Medea Yarn
(Katarina Klewinghaus). LaBruce interweaves Medeas lms in fragmented form, presenting behind the scenes sections of the making of
her lms alongside scenes from the lms themselves and including
scenes from Ottos journey to Berlin, which exists outside of the behind
the scenes conceit.
Otto is not the typical abject corpse zombie. He is a slight adolescent, with a grey complexion, dirty brown hair and milky blue eyes, a
decidedly blank face with bruises and congealed blood on his face and
lips. More coolly wasted than decomposing, his look strikes one as more
of a cultivated, deliberate style than that of archetypal rotting cadaver.
Indeed, his wasted emo-teen aesthetic10 (displayed via his disheveled
hoodie, striped sweater and shirt and tie combo) support the lms depiction of zombie-ism as modish and clearly conates various youth cultures (such as emo and punk). As such, he stands out as different from
the more masculine skinhead style of the lms faux-zombies. In an
online interview with Ernest Hardy LaBruce declares that his intentions
for the character of Otto were, from the outset, deliberately ambiguous:
I wanted to make a zombie who was a mist, a sissy and a plague-ridden
faggot. I deliberately leave it open to interpretation whether Otto is supposed to be a real zombie or merely a screwed up, homeless, mentally ill
kid with an eating disorder, who believes that hes dead [Hardy].

In Ottos rst direct-to-camera address from Medeas documentary, he


states:
Its not easy being the undeadthe living all seem like the same person to
me and I dont think I like that person very much I was a zombie with an
identity crisis and, until I gured it out, I was stuck eating whatever nonhuman esh was available.

The sameness to which Otto refers to can be read to symbolize that


of conformist homonormative culture from which both Otto and
LaBruce feel alienated. Alongside his identity crisis, Otto is an amnesiac,
with occasional ashbacks to what he refers to as the time before.
Throughout the narrative, he longs to rediscover his true self and to
reconnect with other people in order to determine what has brought
him to this point. In one sense, his journey as a neophyte zombie might
be understood as the (re)discovery of his sexuality, yet from early in the
narrative he seems drawn to other male zombies, thus his homosexuality

Gay ZombiesElliott-Smith

149

is a given. Together with his resolute declarations of his true zombieism, this would suggest that Otto is sure both of his sexuality and of
being undead. It is his sense of not belonging, and of his failure to t in
with the fake or dead subcultures offered to him in Berlin, that causes
him to question his identity.
In several interviews, other characters discuss Ottos function as a
tabula rasa (both for Medea and extra-diegetically for LaBruce). Fritz
Fritze (Marcel Schlutt), who plays the revolutionary leader of skinhead
gay zombies, discusses his rival zombie lead:
He [Otto] was the Hollow Man, the empty signier, upon which she could
project her political agenda. Otto is a blank slate, onto which LaBruce
can project anxieties about the alienating effects of both bourgeois homonormative and gym-body oriented gay clubbing cultures. Upon rst meeting Medea Yarn, Otto is cast as an actor in her zombie lm (as a
fake-zombie) and, at rst, he appears to t in seamlessly into her zombie
imitator-group. Medea comments on his appearance that, there was
something different about Otto, something more authentic.

Ottos authenticity can also be read in terms of his difference, not only
from humans but from the other zombie-actors too. Still, there remains
an ambiguity as to whether he is more procient at acting than Medeas
other zombies, really a zombie, or merely a psychotic who believes he
is a zombie. Medea and Fritz both identify his persona as a reaction
against an oppressive capitalist system, from which they believe he is
retreating into a narcoleptic state. The authenticity of the zombies
Otto meets on his journey through Berlin is questionable. The presence
of Medeas actor-zombies undermines the authenticity of all zombies
within the lm. The legitimacy of the homeless zombies that Otto
encounters also remains dubious, not to mention the pseudodocumentary and Ottos own claims of zombie-ism.
As with Romeros lms, the zombies in Up with Dead People represent the once-consumed masses returning to consume the living,
who LaBruce (via Medea Yarn) recasts as conformist bourgeois homonormativity. The zombie, like the homosexual, has arguably been so
thoroughly assimilated into the dominant culture that it has taken on
normative traits and become conventional, even banal. Like contemporary homosexuality in some Western cultures, these gay zombies are
simultaneously tolerated and intolerable. Though commonplace, Berlin
is hardly a utopia for the undead. As Medea states, the gay zombie is
considered even more abject to their oppressors, who then take to
zombie-bashing where the gay undead [are] hunted down and murdered

150

Zombies and Sexuality

even more ruthlessly than previous generations. Such zombie-bashing


includes Maximilians (the lms anti-hero Fritzs zombie lover) murder
at the hands of a right-wing gang of youths, Ottos stoning by infantile
youngsters, and later his zombie-phobic beating by a group of Middle
Eastern/Arabic young men in the lms nal sequence.
Ottos apolitical indifference masks his longing to follow the smell
of human density and to be accepted into a community of others like
himself, attracted by some overpowering smell the smell of esh
Berlin. Through his lms fake zombies and the concept of zombie drag,
LaBruce references a fashionable trend within popular culture, which
celebrat+*es the gure of the zombie in events, theatrical performance,
installation art and literary parodies.11 If the zombie is adopted to highlight difference and revel in the pride of marginalization, it also conversely evokes an assimilationist ethos that is essential to the gure. To
wear zombie-drag en masse paradoxically declares both difference and
conformity. Otto is considered by the lms non-zombies to be indistinguishable from other gay zombies, but within a gay subculture that has
largely adopted the zombie skinhead look, he is considered different.
Similarly, LaBruce parallels the conformity of gay cruising culture with
zombie-ism, saying, It really is pretty much like Night of the Living Dead.
People are in a kind of somnambulist, zombie-like state; people are in a
sexual trance almost. Its not really about the individual (Castillo).
If the homogenous gay club culture is depicted as dead, the truly
dead Otto seems the least zombie-like of the lms characters (in his
possession of speech, free will and autonomous thought). In several
sequences in LaBruces lm Otto comes across a succession of the counterfeit undead. In one scene he is picked up by a gay fake zombie outside
a club named Flesh (a reference to the gay cruising meat-market as
cannibalistic) which is hosting a themed fancy dress Zombie Night.
He is cruised by another male zombie presented as a classic skinhead
with close-cropped hair, a black bomber jacket, and a tight white t-shirt
with red braces and Doctor Martens. He persuades Otto not to enter the
club, declaring, Its so dead. Instead, he atters Otto on his assumed
costume: you put so much effort into your ensemble really, really
cool! before sniffing him and commenting, Wow! You even smell
authentic!
The comic misreadings of authentic and inauthentic zombie style
become more explicit as the two head back to make love in the skinheads
apartment. As they kiss, blood begins to trickle from their interlocked
mouths and the scene fades to black. A fade up reveals the apartment

Gay ZombiesElliott-Smith

151

as a scene of carnage with Otto having eviscerated the skinhead. The


white sheets, walls, and posters are splashed in arterial spray, bloodied
handprints, and gore. Slowly the corpse of Ottos trick then begins to
move. Propping himself up on the bed, his entrails lying on his stomach
he proclaims, That was amazing can I see you again some time? In
this biting satire on the deadness of gay clubbing culture in Berlin,
Otto turns the tables on the citys meat-market whereby the consumed
twink becomes the consumer. Initially, Otto seems as soulless and empty
as the other zombies, who symbolize the perpetually empty consumers
of capital, but, instead, he eventually becomes consumed and used by
the seemingly radical systems (Medea Yarns documentary) that also
seek to critique capitalism.
The original cuts of many of LaBruces works include hardcore gay
sex, later excised under various theatrical and home entertainment
release stipulations. The shaky performance of actual sex adds to
LaBruces low-budget, realist, and exploitation aesthetic in opposition
to sanitized, mass-produced gay pornography. For LaBruce such formulaic porn perpetuates an unrealistic representation of gay sex, whereby
the body becomes an eroticized object in a capitalist mode of industrial
production:
Gay porn [is] fascist in that it has the same iconography as the Third Reich:
the idea of the perfect body. Its body fascism. Theyre often fucking like
pistons, very mechanical [ ] with its slick monolithic aesthetics, its cold
production-line uniformity, and its easy propagandistic appropriation of
the gay agenda [qtd. in Hays 185].

In Otto Medea declares, Death is the new pornography! While it is


undeniable that part of the horror genres appeal lies in its symbolic conation of sex and death, in which fucking and killing are both coded as
masochistic, for LaBruces zombies, fucking and killing become literally
interchangeable. The previously symbolic coding of le petit morts is now
realized explicitly linking physical pleasure with physical trauma. The
director champions the sub-genres queer expediency that zombie porn
is practical: you can create your own orice and has long since upheld
the radical potential of zombie pornography, zombie porn is the wave
of the future get ready for a revolutionary zombie porn extravaganza!
(interview with LaBruce).
Peter Dendle suggests that sex between or with zombies symbolizes
an unapologetic revealing of humanity (The Zombie Movie Encyclopedia 6) in the exposure of ones physical innards. The opening up of
the body to externalize ones guts represents sharing ones inner feelings

152

Zombies and Sexuality

with others in an exchange of the self with another individual or within


a community. Indeed, LaBruces camera, like that of the European softcore zombie lm, opens up the body. It sexualizes the various orices
and inner piping (the rectum, the anus and the intestinal tract) but
simultaneously reveals the human subject as an empty shell that will,
nevertheless, do for sex. The gay zombie opens up the entire bodys
potential to both penetrate and be penetrated.
In one signicant scene, Fritz returns home to nd his lover
Maximilian (Christophe Chemin) dead, having shot himself in the
head. He is later reanimated as a zombie but, rather than being repulsed,
Fritz begins to passionately kiss him, and Max returns his kisses with
an infecting bite upon the neck. Having turned Fritz into a zombie
and then eating his intestines, Max is later shown sitting quietly awaiting his lovers return to consciousness. When Fritz is later reani mated, Max proceeds to penetrate the hole in his undead lovers stomach
with his penis, effectively fucking him into (and in his) immortality. Setting aside the male bodys dual oral and anal orices, an entirely new
erotic entry point is ripped in Fritzs stomachdirect to the site of digestion. Consumption, digestion, and assimilation seem to be the order of
the day in the symbolism of this sequence which itself becomes a satire
of gastric incorporation. If we understand the zombies drive to orally
consume living esh as a literalizing of desire for the love object, gutfucking is an extension of this desire while satirizing the (gay) zombies
penchant for unnatural procreation. Literally planting seed into his partners stomach, Maximilian bypasses the mouth and or anus. The frequent scenes of reanimation and recruitment in LaBruces lm
represent zombies as both incredibly potent and fertile. This symbolic
impregnation of Fritz, taking Max into his stomach, is a comic literalizing
of an unnatural reproduction only capable of replicating a dead subculture.

L.A. Zombie: Sex as Alienating


LaBruces L.A. Zombie (2010) develops the directors fascination
with the pornography genre and the monstrous icon of the zombie. It
builds on the concept of the homeless, vagabond zombie, featuring a
gay alien zombie (porn star Franois Sagat) who, in the opening titles
of the lm, is seen emerging from the ocean waters after apparently
crash landing off the coast of Los Angeles. The lm is episodic and

Gay ZombiesElliott-Smith

153

fragmented in style, following the unnamed zombie across the city


in his various sexual encounters via disconnected set pieces that invariably end in a male characters death and a necrophilic, climactic sex
scene between the zombie and corpse. In what could be fantasy
sequences, Sagats zombie proceeds to either penetrate their dead bodies
(via various bodily wounds or via anal sex) with an enlarged scorpion
stinger tipped penis or masturbates over them, ejaculating black alien
semen, which has life-giving qualities. Before long, the dead male
victims eventually reanimate and reciprocate Sagats sexual advances.
The zombie is once more presented ambiguously, deliberately leaving the viewer uncertain as to whether Sagats character is an actual
zombie, or whether the zombie incarnation of Sagat is seen as part
of his own schizoid self-image. LaBruce achieves this ambiguity via
juxtaposing hard-cuts between a human-looking Sagat (dressed in a
ripped hooded sweater) and the zombie-Sagat (who is overly madeup in lurid green, black and blue make-up and body paint). The exaggerated articial visualization of the alien zombies make-up and Sagats
oversized hyper-muscularity also augments the suggestion of both
zombie and masculinity-as-performance, while simultaneously working to feminize the monster (via the draggy make-up and his swollen
breasts). With each episode, Sagats zombie form becomes more
excessive, symbolizing the emergence of either the zombies true
form, or a further split of the characters more extreme fragmented
personality and the emerging dominance of the alien zombie. Sagat turns
a darker green and, in the metamorphosing into his alien alter-ego, his
protruding vampire-like incisors grow disproportionately large to the
point where they erupt from his face almost destroying all of his
humanoid features. The projection of Sagats excessively Othered zombie
(now also an alien) via these phallic, increasingly extruding teeth represents both an escalating narcissistic desire to consume and be nourished by the hypermasculine, but also symbolizes a excessive phallic
response to a masculinity in crisis: via a loss of property (homelessness),
a loss of self-worth (poverty) and a loss of subjectivity, sexuality and
community.
Unlike the zombies in Otto; or, Up with Dead People who are fucked
into immortality and continue to remain shambling, rotting zombies,
there is clearly a more redemptive element to the undead sex in L.A.
Zombie in that the dying and the dead are actually brought back to
life or restored in intact human form. The lms opening sequence
features the nameless zombie being mistaken for a hitchhiker and

154

Zombies and Sexuality

being picked up one evening by a young male passing driver. Via multiple cross-cuts LaBruce establishes the ambiguity of the zombie gure,
the lms spectator sees Sagats character as the greenish, alien
zombie and yet via the reverse point of view shot of the anonymous driver, he appears human. Startled, the driver crashes the car. A
fade up frames the overturned car with the driver having been thrown
on to the road, lying in a pool of his own blood and esh. His chest is
shown clearly ripped open and his heart eventually ceases beating.
Sagats alien zombie then crawls out of the wreckage seemingly
unharmed, and stumbles over to the drivers corpse. Straddling
the cadaver, the zombie pulls out his large black, erect stinger-tipped
penis and proceeds to penetrate the gash in the drivers chest, thrusting in and out underneath his still heart. With each thrust the heart
begins to pulse and pump once more, causing the driver to reani mate and writhe in ecstasy, his eyes uttering open. Eventually the
zombie withdraws and ejaculates oily black semen over the drivers
chest and face. Later the bloodied, but restored driver is framed sitting relieved near to the car wreckage, his chest having healed itself.
Soon the monster turns, looks unmoved and stumbles off into the night
alone.
These sex sequences between the undead in L.A. Zombie underline
the curative and recuperative qualities of alien zombie sex and, in particular, the healing power of his ejaculate. In the course of the lm the
zombie comes across (physically and sexually) a dead homeless man
whom he has sex with in his cardboard box shelter, a stabbed gangster
who has double-crossed his partner for money who is erotically resurrected in a storm drain, and several gunned down victims of a drug deal
gone awry (played by muscular gay porn stars including Erik Rhodes
and Francesco DMacho). In all instances, via corporeally penetrative
sex, the zombie is able to bring the dead back to life. Despite Sagats
zombies protruding teeth, which would seem to suggest his desire for
oral consumption and his castrating qualities, LaBruces L.A. zombie
does not eat esh or cannibalize his victims, instead he is seemingly
driven only to resurrect or restore others. This perhaps suggests that
unlike the cannibal zombies of Otto; or, Up with Dead People, who long
to orally assimilate and consume machismo, Sagats alreadyhypermasculine zombie seems sated and engorged with it. Instead of
desiring and consuming masculinity Sagat becomes the end product of
consumption: a grotesquely unsatised hypermasculine ideal in the
form of a zombie-phallus.

Gay ZombiesElliott-Smith

155

Conclusions: Gay Zombie Sex as Anti-Communal


Within narratives like Otto and L.A. Zombie, LaBruce underscores
that sex between zombies is shown ultimately to alienate. While the camera eroticizes the internal in a frenzy of the visible12 that provides an
initial jouissance, it eventually proves to be distancing. For LaBruce,
there seems to be little physical trauma or pain involved in the scenes
of evisceration or death. Rather than lingering on and highlighting the
sensational unpleasure caused by painful, seemingly traumatic sex,
LaBruces low rent aesthetic renders sex almost mundane, banal,
unerotic and hollow. In essence, LaBruces depictions of undead empty
sexual relations seems to echo Bersanis valorizing the potential of gay
mens promiscuity as anticommunal, antiegalitarian, antinurturing,
antiloving (Is the Rectum a Grave? 22). Yet in Otto; or, Up with Dead
Peoples denouement Ottos romantic love-making with Fritz in his crisp
clean bed sheets seems to yearn for redemption, a reconnection with
masculinity and the gay community. His pallor, scars and bruises seem
to disappear in the healing white light of Fritzs bedroom and, for a
moment, Otto appears normal. However, the morning after reveals the
promise of redemption to be false. Fritz wakes to nd a note on his pillow, on which is sketched a gravestone reading Otto: RIP.
Otto is later shown leaving Berlin to journey north seeking further
connections. In the lms nal shots he is shown hitchhiking on a country
highway, speaking directly to the camera and in voice over on his decision:
I really didnt know what my destination was.
But something told me to head north
Maybe Ill nd more of my kind up there and learn to enjoy the company.
Maybe I would discover a whole new way of death.

LaBruces lm suggests that sex and death provide neither an end nor
an answer. Instead, Otto continues in a limbo-like state, never knowing
others like him, never knowing where to go, unable to separate reality
from fantasy and never experiencing the suicidal ecstasy (Is the Rectum a Grave? 18) connoted in the conation of sex with death. In his
reading of Otto, Shaka McGlotten (182193) rightly states that there is
little evidence of Bersanis melodramatic shattering of the self he nds
in gay sex (Bersani The Freudian Body 38). Instead, McGlotten sees in
Otto a passive indifference to any polemics (such as Medeas radical
political posturing). But this apathy seems to achieve empowerment.

156

Zombies and Sexuality

McGlotten reads Ottos zombie Other as a site of queer identication


with apathy; Otto is able to enact a freedom from the responsibilities
and obligations that are the ordinary stuff of life (McGlotten 185), to
ape heterosexual coupledom, to seek out ones soul mate, or to indulge
in gay male promiscuity. He reads Otto as a powerful fantasy/model of
an agency that is empowered as it is automatized, seeing LaBruces treatment of the zombie gure as a more useful approach to zombie theory
that has in the past, for him, only operated as a metaphor for racial and
political difference, infection, consumerism, or the savage proletariat
drone.
Ottos nal journey is read by McGlotten as speculatively optimistic (182), in its refusal of self-immolation, living on as if in limbo;
his conclusion is that Ottos search for a whole new way of death can
be seen as a radicalized acceptance of ones own indifference towards
life yet being inspired to live it anyway. To me this seems somewhat accidly optimistic. McGlotten reads Ottos indifferent sociality as a radical
uncaring form of connecting with others, albeit driven by an automated
desire to do so. Yet if Ottos nal search is presented as utopian fantasy,
given LaBruces cynical tone in the lms overt nihilism and via the development of the zombie gure in L.A. Zombie, I would argue that LaBruces
zombies demonstrate that the idealistic pursuit of a shared communality
is futile. Ottos zombied status (whether the result of an actual or symbolic suicide) can be seen as an act of self-divestiture. However, the drive
to devalue the self becomes meaningless in the (hypocritically capitalist)
economic exchange of Otto by Medea who re-values him as her muse.
We can read Ottos journey in two ways: as a symbolic suicide or a journey of discovery into the unknown, both of which will eventually prove
unsatisfying. Otto ironically continues, [a]t one point I did consider
ending it all, like at the end of Medeas movie. But how do you kill yourself, if you are already dead? In this nal shot, by a rural roadside of
saturated yellow elds and blue skies, a rainbow appears behind Ottos
head. Framed in this way by the most venerable of queer symbols, Ottos
words take on a new resonance. LaBruces ironic rainbow, I would suggest, simply resets Otto on a seemingly indifferent drive, on Auto as
McGlotten puns (190), to connect with others like himself, a drive to
fulll societal demands for the communal that will ultimately be doomed
to fail. Like Otto, Sagats mute alien zombie chooses to withdraw from
the symbolically dead cruising communities of West Hollywood stumbling instead into a nearby cemetery. The nameless zombie is framed
crying abject tears of blood as he grieves over his previous attempts to

Gay ZombiesElliott-Smith

157

sexually reconnect with others (shown in ashback) while standing over


a grave. He then proceeds to dig himself into a grave with his bare hands,
seemingly wishing to return to the disconnection of the earth unsatised
by his earlier attempts to physically and emotionally connect with others
but, like Otto, even in undeath he is unable to escape the assimilationist, numb homonormativity that is offered as community.

Notes
1. Niall Richardson argues that the interpretation of the gym body or the hypermasculine body should not only be understood as an attempt to reinforce essentialist ideas of male power. Instead it is entirely dependent on the context or culture
in which it is construed. Hyperbolic muscularity may indeed be making an ironic
comment on masculine ideals, whereas gay scenes maintain a fetishistic interest
in hyper-muscular torsos (389). LaBruces valorization of the hyperbolic muscular
body of Franois Sagat in L.A. Zombie therefore may be interpreted as adoration
of muscularity, or as a camp comment, comparable to drag, which is attempting to
challenge or overthrow regimes of masculinity (39).
2. According to Jos Muoz: Disidentication is a performative mode of tactical
recognition that various minoritarian subjects employ in an effort to resist the
oppressive and normalizing discourse of dominant ideology (91). In terms of gay
male identication, the subject simultaneously recognizes himself in the image of
an unattainable phallic masculine ideal (symbolized in the heterosexual male) but
also acknowledges that it is different from his homosexual self.
3. Jouissance is dened as an increased enjoyment or pleasure that is connected
to Lacans concept of desire and has sexual aspects. Whereas Freud sees desire as a
drive where the subject seeks a reduction of tensions to a low level, Lacan, argues
that the two elements of pleasure are diametrically opposed. His jouissance can be
seen as connected to an increase in tension and the compounding of desire, a sexually
based concept with potentially self-immolating consequences: It starts with a tickle
and ends up bursting into ames (83). This inuences Bersanis own utilization of
the term throughout his works, sexuality would not be originally an exchange of
intensities between individuals a condition in which others merely set off the selfshattering mechanisms of masochistic jouissance (Bersani Is the Rectum a Grave?
41).
4. For a wider reading of Porn of the Dead see Steve Jones Porn of the Dead.
5. See Darren Elliott-Smith for a wider overview of gay zombie narratives in lm
and television, including titles such as Flaming Gay Zombies (2007), Gay Zombie
(2007), Creatures from the Pink Lagoon (2006), The Nature of Nicholas (2002), and
the BBCs recent television serial In The Flesh (2012).
6. Ellis Hanson considers the gure of the vampire to be the utmost in monstrous
metaphors for the spread of AIDS within the gay community (324326). The
metaphor of the AIDS patient as the dead or living corpse has been acerbically
rendered in zombie lms such as, I, Zombie: The Chronicles of Pain (1998), in which
the infection and decay of zombie-ism is directly paralleled with sexually transmitted
disease.
7. For example, Todd Haynes lm Poison (1991) features a section entitled Horror, a black and white 1950s mad- scientist parody which congures the 1950s
McCarthy-ist fear of the unseen threat of secret communism and veiled homosexuality.

158

Zombies and Sexuality

8. Judith Butlers concept of the performative questions the supposed biology


of binary gender as constructed via the repetition of acts and behaviors where social
performance creates gender, a performance which imitates culturally prescribed and
impossible ideals. In Gender Trouble, Butler argues: acts, gestures and desire produce the effect of an internal core or substance, but produce this on the surface of
the body such acts, gestures, enactments generally construed, are performative
(173).
9. From a personal interview with LaBruce and Darren Elliott-Smith, 24 April
2008.
10. The romanticized stylized zombie teen look can also be seen worn by R
(Nicolas Hoult) in the lm version of Warm Bodies and in the group of countercultural teen zombies in Night of the Living Dorks.
11. These include social website Crawl of the Dead which advertises zombie pub
crawls, festivals and marches across the world including, Iowas City Zombie March,
the Zombie Walk in London and Canada and the World Zombie Day held in London
in October 2008. In art exhibitions undead still-life and performance art is a regular
feature. LaBruce himself recently exhibited his Untitled Hardcore Zombie at the
Soho Theatre in London and at Peres Projects Los Angeles in 2009. Contemporary
zombie appropriation also extends to literature in Seth Grahame-Smiths Pride and
Prejudice and Zombies spawning a series of parodic sequels and prequels including
Sense and Sensibility and Sea Monsters.
12. In Hard Core: Power, Pleasure and the Frenzy of the Visible, Linda Williams
states that the frenzy of the visible further covers up the true articiality of pornography. The zombie lms externalizing of the bodys interior can be read as a similar
attempt to authenticate human subjectivity via corporeal exposure.

I Eat Brains or Dick


Sexual Subjectivity and
the Hierarchy of the
Undead in Hardcore Film
Laura Helen Marks
Explaining her role as zombie slut in the behind-the-scenes featurette for Tommy Pistols Beyond Fucked: A Zombie Odyssey (2013),
Annie Cruz remarks I eat brains. After a pause, she adds, or dick, as
if contemplating for a moment the incongruity of her position as a dicksucking brain eater. Cruzs remark is reminiscent of the blurb for the
2011 porn movie, I Cant Believe I Fucked a Zombie: Braaaaaaains. I
mean, Peniiiiiiiiiiiis! Such confusing motivations capture a key difficulty
in creating a cohesive zombie porn narrative. This incongruity between
zombie and pornographic narratives also points towards a particular
type of pornographic rolethe sexually active female subjectthat is
most desired in porn and that the zombie has difficulty performing.
Although abjectness in the form of walking death and rotten esh might
appear to be the biggest obstacle to sexual desire in zombie porn,
pornography has historically been quite comfortable with the abject.
Rather, I contend that pornographys reluctance to accommodate the
zombie in the same way as mainstream media has to do with a pornographic desire for a particular kind of active female sexuality that is both
predatory but contained, self-directed yet carefully constructed. By analyzing hardcore pornography that features the living dead, this essay
seeks to illuminate how some of these desires relate to abject matter,
disgust, and the ideal pornographic subject. Below, I will analyze three
159

160

Zombies and Sexuality

lms: vampire-zombie hybrid Dark Angels 2: Bloodline (2005), and two


recent zombie porn lms, Beyond Fucked: A Zombie Odyssey and The
Walking Dead: A Hardcore Parody (2013). While I compare zombies to
vampires, the focus here is squarely on zombie porn and the problematic
nature of presenting the zombie in a pornographic context. These porn
texts reveal not only what sexual cultural baggage vampires and zombies
bring along with them, but also what vampire and zombie porn can tell
us about porns preferred sexual subjects more broadly.

Porn of the Undead: Zombies and Vampires as Sexual Subjects


Over the past decade, zombies have become one of the most prolic monsters in popular culture. In academia, too, the zombie has
attracted attention as an indicator of changing times. For example, its
popularity has been attributed to shifts in technology and consumer culture, particularly to a postmodern anxiety around connectivity and subjectivity; as Stephanie Boluk and Wylie Lenz assert, the zombie is
simultaneously a vision of capitalisms fulllment in the form of a stasis
of perpetual desire, as well as a model of proletarian revolution, depicting the emergence of a new classless society (7). Furthermore, the zombie is highly adaptable, a gure of contagion (Boluk and Lenz 3) and
self-referentiality that can seemingly merge with (or infect) any other
genre. Pornography, itself a postmodern genre concerned with anxieties
over subjectivity and desire, as well as a highly self-referential genre that
plays with its own relationship to legitimate culture, is not impervious
to the zombie virus.
In spite of the zombies ubiquity in popular culture, zombies remain
relatively unpopular pornographic subjects. Jamie Russell notes that sex
and zombies have a curiously fertile history in exploitation cinema (135),
adding that after Joe DAmatos grimy hardcore zombie lms of the
1970s, zombie sex has fallen by the wayside (135). Russell adds that
[w]hile conventional hardcore pornography revels in [the bodys] object
status and nds pleasure in exposing the bodys traditionally hidden
zones (the genitals) to view, these zombie movies offer us something
more horric: a vision of the bodys essential emptiness (136). In contrast, when vampires are depicted in porn, they merely render that which
was sexually implicit, explicit (Bosky 217). Accordingly, the vampire has

I Eat Brains or DickMarks

161

enjoyed a more illustrious career in hardcore, softcore, gay, lesbian, and


even transgender porn than their undead zombie counterparts.1
While the zombies abject status might seem to be the primary cause
for its difficulty in sexually exciting an audience, disgust alone cannot
explain their relative unpopularity in porn. Pornography is and historically has been invested in disgust. Porn consumers are savvy to the
grotesque features of the various subgenres of hardcore, and select
accordingly. Spit swapping, snowballing, ass-to-mouth, gaping, prolapse,
and strings of bile from throat fucking are common in contemporary
hardcore pornography, and yet all of these acts would be included in
William Ian Millers framework of contaminating and disgust-evoking
(9697). Abject disgust alone does not account for the zombies unpopularity in hardcore porn.
It is my contention that in addition to the careful navigation of
desire and disgust, lack of sexual subjectivity plays an important role in
the relative unpopularity of zombie porn in ways that complicate simplistic assumptions about pornographic desire. The hierarchy of the
undead found in porn indicates a pornographic desire for, and ambivalence toward gender uidity, polymorphous sexuality, and an equivocating yet active female sexual subjectivity. 2 Moreover, this female
subject serves a more elusive function: soothing the inherent homoerotics of heterosexual pornography that, as in vampire mythology, are
instigated but also sublimated. The multi-gendered, queer, and sexually
active vampire paradoxically disclaims for male viewers the solitary
queerness of the scene of spectatorship by diffusing the homoerotics
of spectatorship (Shelton 132). The comedic zombie narrative may perform this function to a degree, as I discuss below, but ultimately the
zombies lack of consciousness signals a lack of identity, in contrast to
the fully conscious vampire. In this way, fully conscious, and therefore
more overtly gendered vampires diffuse the homoerotics of spectatorship more easily than the inarticulate, unconscious zombie can. The
zombie is not subject enough to adequately perform gender for the
pornographic spectator so invested in this performance.
Emily Sheltons point that the profoundly homosocial spectatorship
of pornography needs soothing can point us in the direction of what
exactly is occurring in zombie and vampire porn and what this might
tell us about pornography as a whole. Pornography has a far more complex relationship to displeasure than is commonly acknowledged, Shelton notes in her analysis of Ron Jeremys stardom, adding that its
investment in laughter, as a neutered redirection of anxiety, delivers rich

162

Zombies and Sexuality

spectatorial rewards for its most preferred consumer: not the male
viewer, but male viewers (122). The role that Jeremy and comedy play
in this mediation, Shelton argues, is similar to that of the female performer: she performs the function of a reassuring alibi for some of the
more unruly and disconcerting uid sexualities that arise from heterosexual pornography. Although Shelton is not concerned with the
undead, vampires and zombies amplify these issues. Zombies are too
abject, too genderless in their deadness to perform this mediatory function as satisfactorily as the vampire or the human. In other words, the
disgust elicited by zombies is not the primary problem with zombie
porn. Rather, the problem is that the zombies failure to adhere to customary pornographic roles exposes the careful constructions of gendered performance in hardcore. Zombie porn also exposes that gender
uidity and queerness are inherent to all heterosexual pornography.
Antiporn feminists commonly posit that hardcore pornography
objecties womens bodies in degrading and often violent ways for the
scopophilic pleasure of a sadistic, solitary, and anonymous male viewers
(see Dworkin; Dines).3 Furthermore, according to this framework, the
women of pornography are always ready for sex and are enthusiastic to
do whatever men want, irrespective of how painful, humiliating, or
harmful the act is (Dines xxiii). Yet, I contend, the popularity of the
female vampire and concomitant unpopularity of the female zombie in
porn disrupts this understanding of the female pornographic subjects
function. The women of pornography are neither perpetual victims of
the male objectifying gaze, nor independent whores liberated by unbridled sexuality. Furthermore, the spectator is not necessarily male or
sadistic (as presumed) and, whether solitary or not, the spectator is part
of an extended network of spectators that function in a similar fashion
to the porn theater audiences of the 1970s.4 Indeed, the pornographic
promise of liberated sexuality is not only deceptive, but also carefully
constructed as an integral part of the genre. The pleasures of transgression and sexual liberation involve a careful navigation of social norms,
rather than fully breaking free of social and sexual categorization or heteronormative boundary-drawing. In this sense, pornography is truly
carnivalesque in that it pleasurably ruptures social conventions while
leaving overarching systems intact (Bakhtin).
But pornography does do political work in its transgressions.
Indeed, I agree with Laura Kipniss contention that pornography enacts
a theatrics of transgression (164) designed to produce pleasure by violating social norms. Still, it is important to demystify and dispel the illu-

I Eat Brains or DickMarks

163

sion that pornography is either liberated or wholly damaging genre of


ction. Pornographic lms are carefully constructed textsconsisting
of mediated, performed act[s where] every revelation is also a concealment (Williams Screening Sex 2)that cater to, challenge, and placate
a diverse audience who have complex spectatorial desires.
Despite both being undead, the zombie and the vampire stand for
subtly but signicantly different things, thereby demonstrating the complexity of audience desire. Vampires are able to embody a perverse sexuality that renders gender uid and sexuality queer. Furthermore, they
reect immortality, beauty, and reproduction. As Judith Halberstam
remarks, [t]he vampire is not lesbian, homosexual, or heterosexual; the
vampire represents the productions of sexuality itself (Skin Shows 100).
In pornography, a genre that is as obsessed with sexual categorization
as it is with sexual perversity, the vampire inhabits just about every
pornographic category there is (Marks). Meanwhile, the hardcore zombie is scarce in any category, and while they too reproduce and are
immortal, the shape that this immortality and reproduction takes connotes death rather than life. As Jones notes, [r]eminders of physiological
fragility trigger disgust reactions because they disrupt a seductive fantasy: the active denial of mortality. Zombies are doubly disturbing
because they are corpses, and yet are immortal. That is, they are both
a reminder of human mortality, and simultaneously do not die themselves (XXXombies, 200). Moreover, Bernadette Lynn Bosky observes
that while vampires and zombies may both be undead creatures, in the
twentieth and twenty-rst centuries the vampire has almost entirely
shed its connotations of death and decay and instead taken on connotations of immortality. Bosky states, [i]n ction, the burden of being
dead meat has shifted primarily to the cannibalistic living dead. Sexual
stories of these undead do convey the mixture of eroticism and repulsion or fear that characterizes vampires in Stokers novel Dracula but
is often missing from vampire ction today (218). In this way, the vampire embodies the fear (and allure) of death and transformation, while
the zombie embodies the fear of deadness. In short, while death as
escape from consciousness is tempting dead meat is not (Bosky 219).
The presence of the zombie in pornography renders the text something else. Zombie porns overt appeal to disgust rather than lust marks
it as punk rock, avant-garde, or subversive of the assumed pornographic
function. Indeed, a large number of existing zombie porn lms are part
of a punk rock or alt-porn aesthetic. In this sense, it is no surprise that
Bruce LaBrucean troublesome lmmaker who rests uneasily (for con-

164

Zombies and Sexuality

sumers and critics) in a grey area between art and porn (Brinkema)
has made two hardcore zombie lms, Otto: Or Up with Dead People
(2008) and L.A. Zombie (2010), both of which were screened at lm festivals (and created some controversy as a result).5 In these lms, LaBruce
uses the zombie as a further marker of subversion; as an integral aspect
of his goal of offend[ing] everyone (LaBruce): Im often surprised that
there is an audience for my work at all. The art world often ignores me
because they think Im too pornographic, while the porn world resents
me for being too arty or intellectual and interfering with their precious,
pornographically pure project (LaBruce).
While LaBruces arty lmmaking style certainly interferes with
generic expectations, the zombie itself interferes with the pornographically pure project even when the pornographer attempts to integrate
it. Patricia MacCormacks description of DAmatos hardcore zombie
lms as being about breakdown and dysfunctions of narrative, body,
society and reality might equally apply to pornography and its eshy,
indulgent rupture of traditional narrative. Yet, the death, corroding,
rotting and disheveled esh (116) of the zombie occupies minimal space
in this same pornotopic world due to its failure to embody the ideal
pornographic subject. Pornographic desire revolves around delicate and
carefully managed points of breakdown and containment; of letting go
and holding on; of transgressing and maintaining order.6 The zombie is
too broken, too voiceless, too devoid of subjectivity to fulll the narrative
requirements of pornography.
Zombies are bodies, nothing more and nothing less, MacCormack
argues, asking, [w]hat gender are zombies? and concluding that they
are neuter (104). In a genre where [s]ex, in the sense of a natural, biological, and visible doing what comes naturally, is the supreme ction
and gender, the social construction of the relations between the sexes,
is what helps constitute that ction (Hard Core 267), genderless objects
are typically incompatible. Moreover, if gender contributes toward subjectivity (Weeks 212), paradoxically the zombie is not enough of a subject
to be a suitable pornographic object. The vampire, in contrast, is perfect:
beautiful and dependent, intelligent and conscious.

Horror, Porn, and the Victim-Hero


Horror and pornography have enjoyed a complimentary, sometimes
fraught, and perhaps paradoxical relationship in both theory and prac-

I Eat Brains or DickMarks

165

tice. Isabel Pinedo asserts that horror trades in the wet death while
pornography trades in the wet dream (61), going on to characterize
both types of lm as genres that dar[e] not only to violate taboos but
to expose the secrets of the esh, to spill the contents of the body (61);
both genres are obsessed with the transgression of bodily boundaries
(61). Linda Williams also made such connections in her inuential 1991
essay, Film Bodies, in which she collectively refers to horror, pornography, and melodrama as body genres, looked down on as low due
to the perception that the body of the spectator is caught up in an
almost involuntary mimicry of the emotion or sensation of the body on
screen along with the fact that the body displayed is female (270). Signicantly, Williams claims that of these three genres, pornography is
the lowest in cultural esteem, gross-out horror is the next lowest (269).
Williams evaluation reects broader concerns over the dangers of such
gratuitous genres: the more excessive, prurient, and low the genre,
the greater the threat it poses to its audience, and society at large.
While there are similarities and overlaps in horror and pornography,
there are also distinct differences in each genres appeal. Pinedo notes,
[t]he decisive difference between pornography and horror lies in their
disparate claims to facticity (62). Another crucial difference is that the
viewer of pornography is encouraged, indeed expected, to bring his wet
dream to fruition whereas the viewer of horror is neither encouraged
nor expected to participate in murder, mutilation, or bloodletting (64).
Even this distinction has been blurred in the discourse surrounding torture porn lms (see Jones, Torture Porn). When horror and porn meet,
then, which is surprisingly often, something of a pleasurable undermining of each genre occurs, exposing the generic frameworks of each.
Horror, pornography, and melodrama, Williams asserts, can be
explored as genres of gender fantasy (Film Bodies 277), but these
genres are also sites of genderand genreplay. Indeed, traditional psychoanalytic approaches to horror and pornography have become
increasingly untenable over the intervening years thanks to shifts in the
notion of who exactly is watching and how exactly they might be
responding. A combination of radical developments in technology and
concomitant changes in the gender, race, and sexual orientation of those
in front of and behind the camera has meant a revision of theories surrounding body genres, particularly pornography. In her analysis of Internet porn, Susanna Paasonen argues that theories of the sadistic male
gaze are rooted in a cinema studies approach no longer relevant to the
complex click and grab practices of Internet porn consumption (175

166

Zombies and Sexuality

182). Meanwhile, Pinedo has argued that rather than oppressing and
marginalizing female viewers or representing women in sadistic scenarios for the pleasures of a male audience (as is commonly purported),
contemporary horrors onscreen violence offers pleasures to female audiences. In porn studies, too, women have spoken about their relationship
to pornography with a frankness necessary to rupture the traditionally
homosocial networks of porn spectators, lmmakers, and fan communities. Most recently, Jane Ward wrote of the seeming contradiction of
her, a feminist dyke (130), enjoying and getting off watching college
reality porn, concluding, even within this less-than-liberating genre we
can nd ideas, gestures, and scenes that unintentionally provide fodder
for queer orgasms, and opportunities for queer reection (137). With
this in mind, I do not make claims for a unied, static viewership
indeed, the very notion of a unied, unisexual spectator is unrealistic.
Rather, I ask what pornography presents to its viewers and theorize what
this might reveal about spectatorial desirewhat pornographic lmmakers deem sexy and suitable for mainstream pornographic representationin an effort to explore how pornography functions as a genre in
Western discourse.
A signicant connection between horror and pornography is the
female victim-hero, a term coined by Carol J. Clover to describe the
female protagonist of the slasher lm; a woman who possesses both masculine and feminine traits, who is victim to the violent onslaught of an
attacker, but who is resilient, persistent, and resourceful and typically
ghts back in a heroic nale. More recently, David Greven has argued
against such binary reductions, conceptualizing victim-heroes as transformative in nature, closer to the protagonists of the womans picture,
and ghting for a stake in gendered power. Similar work has been done
by the female protagonists (and lmmakers) of pornography. Contrary
to assumptions of inherent misogyny and backlash, pornography has
provided a space for women to contest their sexually oppressed status.
Yet, while Linda Williams asserts that non-sadomasochistic pornography has historically been one of the few types of popular lm that has
not punished women for actively pursuing their sexual pleasure (Film
Bodies 274), the reality is more complex. First, distinguishing any genre
of lm from that which elicits sadomasochistic pleasure is difficult, and
second, heterosexual pornographic genres utilize the female object/subject in ways that resemble the victim-hero of horror rather than the
unpunished and liberated heroine.7 In this way the horror-porn lm renders explicit what some regard as implicit in all hardcore pornography:

I Eat Brains or DickMarks

167

the sadomasochistic use of womens bodies as the primary embodiments


of pleasure, fear, and pain, as both the moved and the moving (Williams
Film Bodies 270).
The nineteenth- century vampire exemplies Williamss point
because she is both desirous and threatening in her active sexuality. Representative of a matrix of feminine Othersthe New Woman, the colonized Other, the Jew, to name but a few8this seductive and terrifying
monster elicits the pleasure and the fear generated by a sexually active
and penetrating woman. Phyllis A. Roth remarks, [p]erhaps nowhere
is the dichotomy of sensual and sexless woman more dramatic than it
is in [Bram Stokers] Dracula and nowhere is the suddenly sexual woman
more violently and self-righteously persecuted than in Stokers thriller
(412). Yet Jonathan Harkers encounter with the three vampiric sisters
provokes arousal as well as fear: [t]here was something about them that
made me uneasy, some longing and at the same time deadly fear. I felt
in my heart a wicked, burning desire that they would kiss me with those
red lips. There was a deliberate voluptuousness which was both
thrilling and repulsive (Stoker 42). Roth remarks that the appeal of
these vampire women is described almost pornographically (412), a
characterization that goes undened and yet points toward excess desire
and disgust, fear and temptation, as core aspects of pornographic appeal.
The vampire, in its nineteenth-century and present day manifestations, embodies a complex navigation of gender and subjectivity. As
Sarah Sceats observes, the vampire is in fact in mutual bondage with
his or her victim: [t]he vampire is entirely dependent: s/he can only
exist in relation to the victim/host; the overwhelming desire is for oneness, gured in the eeting act of incorporation of the other (108). In
this sense, the vampire is not only desirous, but desires to be desired
themselves. In pornography, there could not be a more tting subject
for the actively desiring yet representationally contained subject-object.
The ideal woman of pornography, like the vampire, is simultaneously
active and passive, masculine and feminine, subject and object, protagonist and antagonist. The zombie, on the other hand, struggles to
embody these oscillating positions. Both monsters, however, inhabit the
spaces between these simplistic binaries that are obsessively reproduced
in culture.
Comparatively ungendered, rotting, and exceptionally malleable,
the zombie is not as assertive, not as sexual, not as demanding or aggressive as the vampire. One might ask, where is the fun in a pornographic
monster that does not give as good as she or he gets? In short, the zombie

168

Zombies and Sexuality

does not facilitate the same kind of uid and oscillating pornographic
fantasy that the vampire does; the zombie does not move enough, while
the vampire is moved and moving. In Joness analysis of Porn of the Dead,
the issues of necrophilia, consent, and female sexual agency are foremost
concerns, prompting him to ask, [c]an a zombie be sexually violated,
and can we utilize terms such as misogyny when dealing with the partially formed zombie-subject? (40). The answer seems to be yes and
no. While Jones is less than convinced that [Porn of the Dead ] should
be read simply as a misogynistic statement that purely takes pleasure in
this hatred [of women] (55), and even suggests that the lm is a critique
of pornography and male sexual aggression, he also allows that its
fantasy (whether intended as radical or not) hinges on sexual difference,
and we should not overlook that while the zombie may offer a potential liberation for women (in becoming free to explore and perform aspects of
aggression and sexual freedom typically denied from femininity, via the
fantasy space of the monster), the males (alive and dead) continually reinscribe a traditional gendered system via overt sexual aggression [55].

Vampire porn offers a more palatable, less overtly aggressive manner of


indulging in similar fantasies of sexual difference.
In the following analysis, I explore how pornography navigates
undeadness in sexually explicit ways. While zombies are indeed unpopular subject matter in hardcore pornography, some lms do depict the
living dead. Interrogating these lms reveals why the zombie is not as
pornographically sexy as the vampire. Furthermore, an understanding
of pornographic treatments of zombies, and the living who navigate
them, reveals broader implications about the genre as a whole. The following analysis underlines that despite its reputed misogyny, pornography prefers active, thinking, sexual female agents who can serve as focal
point for a fantasizing spectator.

Conicted Asexual Servants: Zombie Hybrids in


Dark Angels 2: Bloodline
Dark Angels 2: Bloodline, an ambitious sequel to Dark Angels
(2000), illustrates the pornographic hierarchy of the undead through
the creation of a vampire-zombie hybrid called a slag. In Dark Angels
2, the vampire bloodline has become tainted: when they bite a human,
the victim turns into a slag. The slag is a corrupted, abject creature that,

I Eat Brains or DickMarks

169

unlike the vampire, is mindless and mortal (they die after seven days of
gradual decomposition). The slags never fully transition into vampires
themselves, and so are treated as lower-order life-forms; they are disposable soldiers who serve the vampires. Moreover, the vampires underline their assumed superiority by seeking to eradicate the infection in
their bloodline. The vampires, led by Draken (Barrett Blade), must seek
out The One: a human descended from vampires who is pure (uninfected) and can re-fortify the vampire clans infected bloodline. One key
difference between vampire and zombie slag here is that the latter never
engage in any sexual activity. In this way, the distinction between zombies (unsexy) and vampires (sexy) is central to the lms plot.
As the lms vampire hunter Jack Cross (Dillon Day) explains, the
slags are not people. Theyre dead. Or should I say undead. Theyre
usually vagrants or bums or street people without any family to really
miss em. But now theyve been changed. Now theyre the property of a
man called Draken. He uses them as soldiers in his own private army.
In this way, the regressive slags perform a role similar to that of Count
Draculas wolveshis children of the night whom he controls and uses
to physically intimidate antagonistsalthough Draken is more disgusted
by his progeny than the Count was by his wolves.9
The slags represent the corroding of Drakens aristocratic and beautiful vampire bloodline; not only are the slags visibly decomposing, they
are also not immortal. Cross explains:
Theyre not real vampires, theyre like half breeds. Theyve been infected;
they dont turn into vampires like you might think. Theyre more like the
walking dead. Theyve got some of the same characteristics as vampires,
like superhuman strength, speed, but theyve only got a life span of about
nine days. Theyre decaying like real dead bodies; when the body gets too
decomposed, they drop. We can kill em just like anyone else.

Cross fails to add that these slags also differ from vampires in that they
are mindless, passive beings who are ready to follow orders and lack the
ability to speak or assert agency. Thus, Dark Angels 2 literalizes the hierarchy of the undead only suggested by the respective popularity and
unpopularity of vampire and zombie porn. The slags are asexual servants.
Furthermore, the slags are not gendered; they are repeatedly referred to
as things and those. In this sense, even though the slags bear the markings of gender through clothing and hairstyles, their gender is not emphasized either through sexual intercourse or discourse. Therefore, the
zombie queers notions of gender performance, exposing gender as performance, emptying gendered signiers of their supposed signicance.

170

Zombies and Sexuality

The slags invert vampire mythology in other troubling ways. Most


notably, they vomit blood rather than drinking it. The abjectness of this
feature reects William Ian Millers notion that disgust derives from
[t]he magical transformation that happens once any [dangerous bodily
excreta] leaves its natural domain (97). In porn, vampires typically ejaculate semen and drink blood, rendering the vomiting slags particularly
repulsive. Yet pornography is rife with bodily uids leaving their natural
domain. Indeed, the emergent popularity of spitting, cum-swapping,
ass-to-mouth, and cum swallowing indicate that pornography routinely
trades in the abject displacement of bodily uids. But these bodily uids
are often gendered, particularly in mainstream heterosexual pornography. Hetero-males are not customarily depicted consuming even their
own semen,10 and women are rarely fetishized as expelling or ejaculating
unless it is part of a pre-labeled lm that indulges in such representation.
In this way, oral consumption is gendered feminine, while genital ejaculation is gendered masculine. To ejaculate orallyto vomitis arguably
more complex yet is an act typically prompted by oral consumption in
porn and therefore coded feminine. The slags lack of sexual interaction
is suggestive of their inability to embody conventional pornographic
sexual subject positions, but also the degree to which vampires and
humans are preferable as subjects of pornographic action, both in terms
of sexual activity and plot development. The status of the slags suggests
that zombies are servants rather than agents of the transgressive pornographic discourse.
In many cases, such as in Erotic Nights of the Living Dead (1980)
and Dark Angels 2: Bloodline, zombies merely function as background
players, never participating in the sexual activity at all. In lms where
the zombies do engage sexually, they are rarely in more than one or two
scenes, and if they are they customarily engage with a human who is
able to direct the zombies sexual activity, creating a scenario that is by
necessity tinged with non-consent. The vampire, on the other hand,
requires no such direction. As a result, regardless of its dependent
nature, the vampire does not connote non-consent. On the contrary,
they connote sexual predation.
Pornography demands an active agent of sexuality that the zombie
struggles to perform. In zombie porn, this agent is embodied in the
pornographic assist. An assist is a role undertaken in sports, videogames, pornography, and myriad social situations, and involves the assist
guiding and enabling the successful completion of a task by a fellow participant. In pornography, this most often occurs in a threesome where

I Eat Brains or DickMarks

171

one participant is the star of the scene (the woman, in heterosexual


porn), and the third party (the other woman in a boy/girl/girl scene)
assists by offering physical and verbal encouragement. These roles may
uctuate throughout the course of the scene. In vampire porn, no human
or other entity is generally required to direct the vampires sexual activity; the vampire has agency and so directs herself or actively engages in
proceedings. The zombie, however, is passive, and therefore requires
direction either from a vampire or a human assist. The zombies failure
as a sexual agent is inextricable from their undesirability in this context,
demonstrating the degree to which pornography customarily associates
active sexual agency with desirability.

Conicted Sexual Subjects: Female Zombies in The


Walking Dead: A Hardcore Parody and Beyond
Fucked: A Zombie Odyssey
The Walking Dead: A Hardcore Parody riffs on the popular AMC
television series, The Walking Dead, itself based on a comic book series
by Robert Kirkman. The lm covers three seasons of the television show,
but with the twist that the walkers can be killed with semen. The walkers engage in sex with humans, but also want to destroy those humans.
The walkers crave entrails and brains as a traditional zombie does, but
simultaneously crave semen, even though it will kill them. These tensions remain unresolved in the narrative, and are in fact played upon as
absurd.
In the rst scene Rick (Tommy Pistol) awakens from his coma and
is promptly attacked by a gory female zombie. After panicking, Rick
inquires, [w]hat are you doing? asserting, Im married! He evidently
understands that the zombies attackaimed in the direction of his
crotchis sexual, yet initially the attack is presented as one of violence
and brainlust, not sexual desire. A noticeable shift occurs after Rick
makes his verbal ejaculations. The zombie no longer scrabbles at Ricks
body in directionless fashion; she instead begins assertively unzipping
Ricks y, and promptly sucks on his penis. Ricks warnings and panicked
questions also change into moans of pleasure, assurances (okay), and
apologies to his wife. The distinctive break between (a) zombie aggression with the goal of consuming esh and (b) zombie aggression in the
direction of sexual intercourse are evidence of the pornographic zombies

172

Zombies and Sexuality

incoherence. The pornographic zombie must be both mindless and an


active sexual agent.
Later, Daryl (Owen Gray) is out on patrol stabbing zombies in the
head. Blood-spattered and decomposing, the zombies seek to consume
human esh, including Daryls. Daryl gets into a van and nds two female
zombies pawing at a male zombie. The male zombie stands with his back
to the camera, jeans around his ankles, while the female zombies are on
their knees gazing up expectantly but not actually performing any sexual
acts. Perceiving their position as an opportunity for sexual pleasure,
Daryl breaks the male zombies neck, declaring that he [m]ight as well
have some fun. He then walks toward the two female zombies who are
kneeling on the oor, and initiates sex with them.
The lack of sexual action between the three zombies when Daryl
discovers them indicates a sort of zombie autopilot. The female zombies
are in the position of performing fellatio on their knees, and the male
zombie stands in a conventionally appropriate position, but no sexaction ensues. The zombies are in limbo, merely inhabiting (gendered)
sexual positions but with no agency or direction. It is only when the
human male replaces the inactive male zombie that sexual activity
occurs. Notably, Daryls intervention ignites their sexual aggression. This
indicates the female zombies desire for sexual agency, but also implicitly
demonstrates the degree to which pornographic representation attempts
to reconcile female desire with that of the male. The female zombies
replicate and mirror the level of sexual aggression exhibited by the male.
Even so, there is a limit to what level of sexual agency and subjectivity
the zombie can embody, and even in this scene the lack of verbal ability
(the zombies growl and moan in a guttural fashion but no more) and
adherence to a certain lumbering zombie physicality render the human
dominant and the zombies mindless recipients.
In order to maintain a coherent narrative, verbal cues are used
unconvincingly in an attempt to rationalize the zombies behaviors. No
biting, Daryl says while throat fucking one zombie. Cock! growls the
other zombie. Cum! they snarl prior to the money shot. Their lack of
agency manifests as a lack of sexual focus or aim; these zombies arbitrarily choose between brains or dick. Before long, the sex scene falls
into a standard routine, including a variety of sexual positions expected
from a boy/girl/girl threesome (cowgirl, missionary, doggie). The only
point of distinction is that the women growl and grunt in deep tones
rather than squealing and moaning in higher pitched tones. The zombie
women even masturbate during the sex, and assist each other. The per-

I Eat Brains or DickMarks

173

formers must necessarily break characteract less like a zombiein


order to adequately perform their gendered porn personas.
Furthermore, the zombies cries for dick and cum underlines the
impossible position they are caught in. Verbally, they articulate a desire
for the conventional objects of heterosexual pornographic desire. Yet,
their lack of rational agency results in their inability to reect on the
danger they face: as Daryl reminds us post-cum shot, [c]um kills you,
zombie whores. This narrative conceit seeks to reconcile the tension
raised by placing zombies in a pornographic context. In order to depict
humans and zombies having sex, The Walking Dead: A Hardcore Parody
suggests humans have sex with zombies in order to kill them, while zombies crave sex in return. In attempting such a reconciliation of two incongruous concepts, the lmmakers merely reemphasize the incompatibility
of the passive, inarticulate zombie and the active, vocal pornographic
woman.
Later, too, in the third scene involving a human and a zombie, Carl
(Wolf Hudson) is instructed by his father to have sex with the zombie
Soa. The scene is initiated and directed by Carls parents, Lori and
Rick, and the incongruity of the scenario is navigated using humor. At
rst, Glen thinks its just another walker, and starts to unbutton his y,
muttering, [d]ont worry, Ive got this one. Rick halts him with a hand:
No Glen, put your dick away. That ones for my boy. As with the earlier
scene, the zombies lack of consciousness and subjectivity requires action
and assistance on the part of the human participants, and codes the
scene as irretrievably nonconsensual. The humans organize the zombies
sexual activity without the zombies interjection (which it is by its nature
unable to provide).
Its been a crazy day, hasnt it, son? Rick counsels Carl on bended
knee, [t]hats just how life is gonna be from now on. And you gotta be
strong. Now Carl, I gotta know, do you have it in you to go over there
and fuck that girl? And kill her with your cum? Carl nods gravely. Well
you go on, boy, and you do what you gotta do. Rick stands with Lori
and the others and they proudly watch their son have sex with Soa,
and ejaculate in her mouth to kill her. Throughout the scene, the lm
cuts to Lori and Rick giving hand signals and thumbs up signs, encouraging and instructing their son. The zombie herself is unable to direct
or instruct, despite appearing to take on an active role by participating
in the cowgirl position, for example.
As if serving as a reminder of the various inconsistencies, contradictions, and outright absurdities that Joseph Slade has argued are

174

Zombies and Sexuality

among the primary pleasures of pornographic texts (41), a car horn, the
beeping of a reversing delivery truck, and other traffic sounds can be
heard during this sex scene, rupturing the notion that the characters
occupy a desolate apocalyptic landscape. Yet, subversive, text-rupturing
pleasures aside, zombidom is incompatible with active sexual agency.
Thus, the female performer resorts to more conventional modes of performance as the sex scene progresses. Soas initial passive acceptance,
and eventual recourse to a standard, active sexual performance (albeit
with zombie make-up and grunting), demonstrates that the zombie is
incompatible with conventional pornographic desire. She must eventually break character, ride Carl cowgirl, nger her clit, and enthusiastically
perform oral sex, all while staring blankly and grunting repetitively.
The Walking Dead: A Hardcore Parody employs comedy as one way
of evading the pitfalls of a nonsensical plot and the abject grotesqueries
of growling, decomposing bodies. When Carl realizes Soa has been left
behind at the mercy of the undead, he is upset, asking, [w]hat if she
turned already? and demanding they go back for her. Rick gives the
sobbing Carl a talk, set to amusingly melodramatic music: Now listen
up, big man. All right? Theres still a chance she may have turned. Okay?
Which means youre gonna have to fuck her mouth and cum in her. To
kill her. The performers pull bemused faces during their absurd and
melodramatic dialogue, reecting what Jones regards as horror-porns
particular self-consciousness, which commonly manifests via self-deprecating jokes about the lms status as porn (Torture Porn 161).
Unlike The Walking Dead, Beyond Fucked: A Zombie Odyssey is not
an outright comedy. Rather, it is a post-apocalyptic thriller with satirical
elements. The lm does not depict any human-zombie sexual interaction, and so does not require comedy to defuse the incongruity of the
passive and abject zombie. The lm takes place during the zombie apocalypse, brought about by a drug created by the government to control
the obesity epidemic. When people take the new wonder drug, they lose
weight. Protagonist Bonnie explains in the introductory voice over, how
it worked basically was your body would feed off the fat from the inside.
Great right? But once youve had no more fat to take off, thats when
the hunger would take over. Bonnie is a professional zombie killer hired
by Dr. Life (Mark Wood) to search for pure semen that can be used to
inseminate a new mother Mary and restart a pure human civilization.
The majority of the lm takes place in an exclusive bar that hosts
human/zombie ghts, and where Bonnie has a female lover whom she
visits during her downtime. The refusal to depict human-zombie sexual

I Eat Brains or DickMarks

175

interaction, combined with human use of zombies for entertainment


and (as we shall see) sexual resolution of emotional wounds, indicates
the degree to which zombie sex requires an active human assist in order
to be pornographically pleasing.
Beyond Fucked depicts several scenes of gore and abject horror, yet
the sex scenes (all between humans but one) are narratively framed as
clean. Indeed, a key aspect of the narrative is the need to stay clean
and avoid contracting disease from sexual intercourse. On arriving at
the club, Bonnie is tested with a device that detects zombie infection.
Looks like youre clean, the owner says after pressing the device to
Bonnies neck. Later, Bonnie and her lover, Lucky Lucy (Nikki Hearts),
test each other prior to sex. This plot detail creates a strict separation
between human and zombie, narratively refusing any sexual interaction
between human and zombie. The lm does not hold back on the abject;
indeed, it is one of the more consistently grimy and gore-lled porn features, creating a convincingly dark and dirty apocalyptic world. However,
the abject and the clean are kept separate.
Later in the lm, Bonnie participates in the zombie ghts and wins.
During this ght, she recognizes one of the zombies as Tommy, and
requests that he and another zombie (Annie Cruz) be brought to her
room along with two shots of adrenaline Im gonna say the goodbye
I never had the chance to say. One might expect the following scene to
involve sexual intercourse between Bonnie and zombied Tommy; certainly that is what Bonnies verbal transition indicates. Yet, Bonnie does
not participate fully. Rather, she orchestrates sex between the two zombies in some sort of vicarious sexual goodbye. Furthermore, she must
shoot both zombies up with adrenaline in order to prompt them to
engage sexually. After injecting the zombies, Bonnie grabs the female
zombies hand and places it on Tommys crotch, pushes their mouths
together to instigate a kiss, and then steps back weeping as the two zombies autonomously engage in sex. Bonnie sits and watches, crying. Just
as in The Walking Dead: A Hardcore Parody, zombie sex requires a
human assist, ideally a female human assist, indicating that zombies lack
sexual desire.
Also like The Walking Dead: A Hardcore Parody, the zombie sex
performance soon begins to deteriorate into active and articulate pornographic performance. The female zombie, even when shot up with adrenaline, is incapable of the sexual passion expected of the pornographic
subject, thus the female performer injects pornographic sexual agency
into her zombie performance. As the scene draws closer to the conclud-

176

Zombies and Sexuality

ing cum shot, the female zombie begins to verbalize stock phrases such
as, [o]h give me that load right now, and give me that cum. Meanwhile,
Tommy maintains zombie-like composure, reecting Joness contention
that heterosexual male performance in porn is quite zombielike (Jones
Porn of the Dead 52).11

Conclusion: Queer Implications


These lms demonstrate the degree to which pornography prefers
an active female agent of sexuality, as well as a highly ritualistic performance of femininity. Yet, these performances are juxtaposed with
moments of queer sexuality and gender uidity; slippages that belie the
function of the sexually mobile woman in homosocial visual spaces such
as pornography. It is my contention that the zombie is not gendered or
active enough to provide an alibi for or bypass the homoerotic desire
inherent to heterosexual hardcore. Accordingly, when the zombie does
appear in hardcore some form of human assistance in the scene is
required to diffuse this homoeroticism. With these assists in place,
homoeroticism abounds as it does in the notoriously queer vampire narrative.
Much of the humor in the hardcore The Walking Dead parody
derives from an intimate knowledge of the television show and the
various melodramatic relationships. Most notably, the series establishes
a love triangle between Lori, Rick (Loris husband), and Shane (Ricks
best friend). The porn lm queers their conict by presenting it as a
threesomea truce as Lori calls itthat highlights the television
shows homosocial and homoerotic components, particularly when the
threesome are united in a double penetration scene. The homoerotic
component is made especially clear when, after killing Shane, Lori
notices Shane starting to turn into a zombie. Rick responds by unbuckling his belt, and tugging on his penis, seeking to kill Shane by ejaculating on him. Lori begins to protest, but Rick stops her, asserting, I have
to Shane would want it like that. He continues masturbating, but
Lori dispatches Shane the old-fashioned way (shooting him) before
Rick can reach climax and ejaculate on him. Clearly, comedy displaces
the homoerotics created by the homosocial sharing of Lori, yet without
the female presence even comedy could not dispel the threat to discourses of heterosexual desire generated within the majority of straight
porn. While it might be tempting to say that moments such as this sub-

I Eat Brains or DickMarks

177

vert the monosexual fantasy customarily offered within heterosexual


hardcore, homoerotic jokes are rife in pornography and constitute an
important aspect of a genre that spends much of its time focused on the
naked, erect bodies of men.
The lm also literalizes the implicit homoeroticism of Andrea and
Michonnes relationship on the television show. Both Andrea (Kleio)
and Michonne (Skin Diamond) hate zombie dick and are thrilled to
have another lesbian woman to fuck. Of course, in heterosexual porn,
which in its most conventional forms has a strict homosexual taboo
(Waugh 319),12 lesbian homoeroticism is more acceptable than male
homoeroticism. In keeping with those conventions, the homoerotics of
Shane and Rick are merely verbalized and rendered comedic in the porn
parody, while Andrea and Michonne are featured in their own sex
scene.13
Despite these normative restrictions, the recent turn towards
zombie-porn may signal several key changes in heterosexual porns articulations of desire, as well as its consumers desires. For example, the
combinations of porn and horror found in these hardcore zombie lms
may signal that in some respects pornographic formulae are being
relaxed, with the result that accompanying anxieties surrounding gender
and sexuality are also less rigid than they once were. Alternatively, zombie porn may reect a reaction to a cultural interest in zombies that,
while unsuitable for pornography, nevertheless offers an opportunity to
play with the gender and narrative constructs of pornographic genre.
Certainly, the involvement of punk rock alt-porn star Joanna Angel in
so many of these zombie-porn endeavors should prompt conversations
about the role of women and counterculture in these marginal pornographic trends.
These recent examples of zombie porn prompt such questioning
because they are founded on a tension. On the one hand zombies rupture
conventional pornographic formulae. On the other, female zombies are
necessarily passive, voiceless objects; as such they embody the conventions that many anti-porn feminists have evoked when vilifying porns
depiction of sexuality. However, passive female zombies highlight that
women in porn are not conventionally passive as they are typically presumed to be. Perhaps unintentionally, the female zombie and her human
female assists provide a refreshing counterpoint to the pornographic
woman who is desired for her predatory assertiveness; an assertiveness
that belies her dependency and narrative containment, but opens contested fantasy space for myriad spectatorial fantasies that bridge gender

178

Zombies and Sexuality

and sexuality. How this subject position might change (and is changing)
in light of new and newly-revealed audiences and desires is a critical
point of discourse for ongoing genre studies.

Notes
1. See for example, Gayracula (1983), Dragula (1973), The Night Boys (1991),
and the many softcore lesbian vampire lms produced in the 1970s by Jess Franco
and in the twenty-rst century by Seduction Cinema. Hustlers decision to simultaneously release the straight Dracula XXX and gay His Dracula in 2012 indicates
the ease with which the vampire adheres to multiple sexualities.
2. While my focus in this essay is on the female subject, my argument can be
extended to male performers also, particularly in gay porn and pre80s porn. Indeed,
in a telling coincidence, Steve Jones compares the voiceless and objectied male
performers of gonzo porn to zombies (Porn of the Dead 50) while male performer
Kurt Lockwood compares male performers to vampires. These comparisons would
make for a fascinating extension of my argument here; an extension that is beyond
the scope of the current project.
3. For a thorough analysis of antiporn radical feminism in the 1970s and 1980s,
see Strub 213255.
4. For an analysis of cross-gender identication in pornographic lm, see Wilcox.
Loftus Watching Sex demonstrates the variety of motivations, preferences, and
responses when it comes to male consumption of pornography. See Schaefer for a
discussion of the diverse audiences who attended adult lms. See Berenstein for a
similar discussion regarding the mixed gender address of classic horror advertising.
See Delaney for a description of the ways in which heterosexual lm exhibition
mobilized queer sexual interactions in the audience.
5. LaBruces L.A. Zombie was banned from the 2010 Melbourne Film Festival.
The festival organizers did not seem to feel the need to justify this decision beyond
their ruling that the lm was porn.
6. In this way, the prolapse and anal gape are instructive. Gaping, the forerunner
of the prolapse, offers a vision of the interior of a mans or womans body sealed in
by a membrane. The prolapse takes it a step further, offering a rosy red bud that
is as close to the bloody intestines of a zombie victim as one might get while still
technically remaining sealed and integrated.
7. See Paasonen for a complication of the notion of objectication and a discussion of pornographys construction of people as both sexual subjects and objects
(175).
8. For an analysis of vampire ction as representing a fear of reverse colonization
(gendered feminine), see Marilyn Brock; see Christopher Craft for an analysis of
gender uidity and homoerotic displacement in Dracula; for the argument that
Count Dracula represents a fear of the Jewish Other, see Judith Halberstams Skin
Shows (specically chapter four); nally, for an analysis of Dracula as a reaction to
the increasingly liberated woman see Carol A. Senf.
9. Towards the end of the lm, as their vampire lair comes under attack by Jesse
(Sunny Lane) and Cross, Quinn cries, Ill release the hounds! in reference to the slags.
10. An important exception to this rule is the femdom pegging subgenre. In the
Strap Attack series (200412), for example, the male performer customarily consumes his own cum shot at the scenes conclusion. In addition, in cuckold lms such
as Shane Diesels Cuckold Stories (2009present), the cuckolded husband typically
consumes the other mans semen at the end of the scene.

I Eat Brains or DickMarks

179

11. It is worth noting that Tommy Pistol is typically one of the more vocal, animated male performers in porn. It is unusual to see him embody a passive character
in this way, then, but this merely serves to emphasize the ease with which male performers might embody the zombie role in heteroporn.
12. When looked at from a broad vantage point, however, straight porn is
incredibly queer. In order to assert that heteroporn has a homosexual taboo, one
must lter out the many subgenres that complicate the notion of coherent heterosexuality, hence my reference to conventional pornographies. Even mainstream
heteroporn, as discussed in this chapter, contains instances of homoeroticism if not
outright homosexual acts, though there are even exceptions to this such as The Story
of Joanna (1975) and The Erotic Adventures of Candy (1978), both of which depict
homosexual acts between men. While such homosexual transgressions were a more
common occurrence in 1970s porn, a minimal amount of recent straight hardcore
lms depict simulated male homosexual acts as part of the narrative, such as in
Southern Hospitality (2013).
13. In contrast, vampire porn boasts an entire subgenre devoted to lesbian interactions that requires no such staging; rather, vampires are to a degree always-already
queer.

Pretty, Dead
Sociosexuality, Rationality and
the Transition into Zom-Being
Steve Jones
Unlike other horror archetypes, zombies have an established presence in philosophical discussion. Following David Chalmers in particular,1
many philosophers have evoked the undead when hypothesizing about
consciousness. In recent years, zombies have been utilized to examine
phenomenology and mental knowledge (see Furst; Malatesti; Macpherson), visual processing and intentional action (see Mole; Wayne Wu), and
the relationship between consciousness and cognition (Smithies). These
are all variations on the explanatory gap problem, which refers to a rift
between psycho-physiological explanations of mental function (deriving
from neuroscience, for instance) and the intuitive sense that selfhood,
agency, and introspective knowledge are metaphysically signicant.
Such discussion frequently feels nebulous. Neuroscience is fascinating, but its empirical ndings can be difficult to relate to everyday,
experiential reality. Indeed, neuroscience habitually seeks to uncover
how the mind operates in spite of our intuitions. Abstract philosophical
discussions about consciousness are just as intangible. Debates over
philosophical zombies (hereafter, p-zombies) are commonly rooted in
notions about hypothetical twin worlds, ruminations on the impossibility of imagining what it would be like to lack phenomenal experiences,
and semantic discussions regarding whether conceivability equates to
possibility. Again, it is often hard to comprehend how such discussion
relates to personal experiences.
180

Pretty, DeadJones

181

Although p-zombies and movie zombies are regarded as entirely


separate entities by key thinkers in the eld (for reasons that will become
apparent in due course), I propose that movie zombies illuminate these
somewhat opaque philosophical debates by offering an accessible route
into the issues. Fundamentally, both the p-zombie debates and zombie
movies are underpinned by the same focal point: zombies are nonconscious humans. Yet the lmic version of that problem is grounded
in an experiential world rather than conceptual theorization. Cinematic
storytelling devicesnarrative, characterization, dialogue and so forth
allow lmmakers to present characters experiences in an instinctively
accessible manner. Protagonists interact in social worlds that are comparable to our own, and narrative drama is typically driven by social
interaction. The characters interactions are thereby rendered concrete
and familiar, regardless of their ctionality. Whereas conjectural debates
regarding p-zombies begin with theoretical models of self (seeking to
test their legitimacy), zombie movies are rooted in and prioritize an
experiential vision of selfhood.
This essay focuses on a particular strand of the subgenre: transition
narratives, in which human protagonists gradually turn into zombies.
In transition narratives, protagonists are able to articulate their experiences as they undergo their transformation. 2 As such, they directly
reect on changes in their mental states, linking those shifts to the physical and social realms they occupy. The specic case study examined in
this essay is Pretty Dead (2013). The lm is partially constructed from
footage shot by lead protagonist Regina, a 24-year-old MD, as she charts
her metamorphosis into a zombie. After killing a pizza delivery driver
and eventually turning on her anc Ryan, Regina is institutionalized.
In tandem with Reginas autobiographical footage, Pretty Dead is comprised of videotaped interviews with a clinician (Dr. Romera)3 who is
convinced that Regina is suffering from Cotards syndrome: a delusion
in which the patient believes they are dead. The narrative is ambiguous
about the legitimacy of Reginas claims throughout, intercutting between
her own assertions and Romeras rationalist explanations. The clash
between Reginas experiences as a transitional being and Romera scientic diagnosis is centralized in Pretty Dead. That is, the narrative
brings two views on the selfintuitive and empiricalinto direct conict. Pretty Dead thereby encourages the viewer to question the validity
of both, and their compatibility.
As is common among transition narratives, sociality is emphasized
as a dening aspect of Reginas life in Pretty Dead. Transitional protag-

182

Zombies and Sexuality

onists metamorphoses are conventionally punctuated by turning points


at which they attack living counterparts; usually their closest companions. For example, in Harolds Going Stiff (2011) and Return of the Living
Dead Part 3 (1993), full-blown zombies are depicted as inarticulate
beasts who violently attack the living. Knowing that the same fate awaits
them, the transitional protagonists live in fear that they will eventually
turn on their loved ones. Both Harolds Going Stiff and Return of the Living Dead Part 3 are stories driven by romantic couplings, meaning that
the transitional protagonists loss of rational controltheir inability to
halt their transguration into zombidom (or zom-being) and the ruination of their bonds with other humansis accentuated. This theme is
ubiquitous in transition narratives, which typically situate metamorphosing protagonists within intimate relationships with living partners.
Other examples of this trend include Zombie Honeymoon (2004), Zombie Love (2008), Zombie Love Story (2008), and True Love Zombie
(2012).4
Following this convention, when Regina lms her transformation
in Pretty Dead, she also captures a parallel change in her love life. In
particular, the footage charts the detrimental impact her transformation
has on her relationship with her anc Ryan. As such, Reginas identity
and rationalitywhat she is, how she behaves, even how she experiences
the worldare inextricable from her sociality; affiliations and interactions with other beings that give her (human) life meaning. Eventually,
Regina loses control. Her romantic attachment to Ryan is replaced by
her desire for his esh. Although both types of desire reach their fullest
expression carnallyhuman love-making or zombie esh-eatingthe
former signies Reginas recognizably human sociality, while the latter
denotes Reginas movement into zom-being.
From Reginas anthropocentric view, the latter is monstrous. She
understands love, in contrast, as a sign of her humanity. In Pretty Dead,
Reginas humanity is measured by the self-control she exerts in resisting
her urge to harm Ryan. As such, Reginas love for Ryan is characterized
as rational agency. Yet that conception of sexual love is counter-intuitive:
that kind of passion does not emanate from conscious, rational choice
in the rst instance. That is not to say that sexual passion is synonymous
with complete irrationality. On this point I concur with Nikolay Milkov,
although Milkovs subsequent assertion that sexual experience proceeds
in acts of reasoning (159, emphasis added) does not adequately resolve
the problem either. Rather, it should be noted that phenomena such as love
and sexual passion can be explained or reected on via rationality, but

Pretty, DeadJones

183

the emotional experience of social kinship cannot be captured via such


language. Experiencing and rationalizing are ontologically different. Sex
thus illustrates that (a) there is a troubling disjuncture between
rationalist-theoretical conceptions of selfhood and selfhood as it is experienced in the real, social realm, and (b) there is a natural bridge between
personal, introspective self-knowledge and external social selfhood.
Throughout this essay, I use the term sociosexual to denote ways in
which sexuality epitomizes the relationship between sociality and selfhood as it is experienced in the real, interdependent world.
By emphasizing sociosexualitys role in self-experience, Pretty Dead
illuminates aspects of consciousness that are neglected in philosophical
debates regarding p-zombies. Consciousness sets apart humans from
zombies. Ergo, so too does sociosexuality. Insofar as sociosexuality is
measurable via behavior, it can be pinned down in a way that consciousness and qualia cannot. The p-zombie argument is undercut by the
notion that p-zombies might have conscious experiences, but might not
be able to articulate them. Similarly, an articulate zombie may lack
qualia, but may lay verbal claims to consciousness that could not be
proven false. Consciousness is invisible and intangible because it is introspective and metaphysical. This is not to suggest that all mental states
are manifested in behavior.5 Rather, when Regina turns on Ryan, that
behavior evinces a signicant change in her consciousness. The action
violates Reginas conscious will to maintain the sociosexual relationship
she shares with Ryan, and manifests an ontological shift away from her
identity as a human. Although she does not become a full-blown nonconscious zombie before the end credits roll, Regina overtly becomes
less human and more akin to a zombie as the text progresses. Killing
Ryan is a key indicator that Regina is pretty dead, but only inasmuch
as Regina believes she is a rational being, able to know and control her
behaviors via cognition and reection.

Conscious State[ment]s: A Primer in Zom-Being


Contributors to the p-zombie debates principally seek to test the
legitimacy of physicalism (see Lehrer; Garrett; Horowitz) and/or to
understand whether qualiathe essential properties of experiences
can be explained by functionalist accounts of selfhood. These debates
hinge on the idea that p- zombies are physically identical to living
humans, but have no conscious experiences. Consequently, there is

184

Zombies and Sexuality

nothing it is like to be a [p-]zombie (Chalmers Consciousness and Its


Place in Nature 249). To put it in concrete terms, although p-zombies
are physically identical to any conscious person, they do not have qualia.6
So, a p-zombie can walk hand-in-hand on a beach with another pzombie, look into their partners eyes and kiss as the sun sets, but during
this interaction neither p-zombie will experience anything. The possibility of p-zombies poses a threat to functionalism since it amounts to
saying that it is conceivable (and therefore possible)7 that consciousness
is separable from our physical capacity for conscious experience.
As Chalmers notes in his inuential argument, p-zombies are not
the same as the lmic undead (The Conscious Mind 95). Rebecca Roman
Hanrahan succinctly summates the reason why: it would be very difficult to make a movie about [p-]zombies, since they behave just as their
qualia-ridden human counterparts do. Therefore, [t]here would be no
way for the lmmakers to depict any difference between [p-zombies]
and ordinary humans (303). However, the p-zombie arguments premisethat zombies are identical to living humans but lack phenomenal
experiencehas become ever more pertinent to zombie ction over the
last thirty years. The lumbering, somnambulistic movie zombies Hanrahan has in mind are relatively uncommon in contemporary zombie
narratives. Contemporary movie zombies are beings whose vital organs
have ceased to function, and so they externally appear to be different to
living humans. To answer Hanrahan, this is how lmmakers distinguish
between living and undead individuals. Zombies also engage in behaviors such as esh-eating, which are frowned upon by their living counterparts. In many contemporary zombie movies, zombies are akin to
pale, cannibalistic humans who suffer from a severe skin condition. That
is, their conventional behaviors and appearance do not necessarily evince
a lack of cerebral acuity or any essential quality of their mental processes.
Transition narratives such as Pretty Dead ag this kinship between
living and undead by focusing on protagonists who transform from the
former into the latter, thereby linking those states. Transitional protagonists have consciousness at the narrative outset: they do not simply
exist in the qualia-less twin-worlds of p-zombie argumentation. Because
they begin as conscious entities, transitional protagonists can articulate
changes they undergo as they experience them, so long as they remain
partially human and conscious. In what follows, I am not concerned
with casting doubt over physicalism, so for the sake of clarity let us take
for granted that full-blown zombies mental states are different to their
living counterparts.8 This is certainly implied by Pretty Deads evocation

Pretty, DeadJones

185

of cordyceps, the fungus Regina cites as the cause of her metamorphosis.


Cordyceps is said to infect its hosts mind, win[ning] control compel[ling] the hosts behavior.9 Reginas experiential accounts indicate that
her zombied mindset is unlike her conscious experiences. When she
kills, she proclaims that the fungus must have taken over I dont even
remember biting him I black out or something. Her defensive assertion
[i]ts not me, its whats inside me overtly distinguishes between her
conscious awareness and the zombie-state the fungus instills.
Despite this clear delimitation of human consciousness and zombeing, the transition happens gradually, and the boundary between the
two states is fuzzy. Regina does not become a full-blown zombie when
she rst eats human esh since she exhibits leanings towards such behavior beforehand. She rejects fresh foods (claiming they smell rotten)
and instead eats raw bacon; she bites Ryan; she sucks the blood from a
used tampon. None of these transition behaviors is enough to denote
that Regina has stopped living and has become undead. It is also unclear
precisely when her body dies. Reginas face starts to rot and she craves
human esh while she still has a pulse. Her heart has stopped by the
time she is institutionalized, but she remains lucid. Reginas physiological
change is on-going, so there is no denitive break between life and death.
These gradual slippages mean that even if we agree that full-blown
zombies are non- conscious, it is difficult to measure the difference
between human and zombie by referring solely to physical modications,
reported mental experiences, or behavioral changes. Notably, these three
elements are indicative of opposing schools within philosophy of self:
physicalism/functionalism, phenomenology/consciousness studies, and
behaviorism. Reginas transformation reveals that the self cannot be
apprehended by just one of these divisive theories, because selfhood is
a compound of these elements. For instance, phenomenal experiences
are shaped by physical, sensory faculties (see Schechtman). Ergo, without
a body, our consciousness would differ in a way that we (as embodied
beings) cannot imagine. The reverse is also true: one cannot envision
what it would be like to be a conscious-less body, since such imagination
a priori requires sentient, self-reective experience. The p-zombie conceivability debate is founded on that impossibility. However, proponents
of the p-zombie argument seldom explain embodiments impact on consciousness in this way. Neither do they typically account for the connections between selfhood and identity. Reginas mutation into zombeing is a shift away from humanity, but her humanity has meaning as
an aspect of Reginas social identity.

186

Zombies and Sexuality

Zom-Body to Love: Sociosexuality of the Living Dead


Reginas struggle is grounded in concrete social relationships and
structures. Contra to Fiona Macphersons assurance that introspection
is enough to validate phenomenal experience, because introspective
knowledge that I have of my own consciousness does not depend for its
existence on conditions external to me (2312), in Pretty Dead it is recognized that human self-experience is always-already dependent on
external factors. Identity does not tally with solipsistic asociality. Indeed,
practical, social circumstances facilitate the individuals ability to form
identity (see Werth 339; Epright 801; Winter 235).
Entirely asocial selfhood is just as unconceivable as disembodied
consciousness, because humans are interdependent from birth. The relationalist proposal that the well-being of each member [of the populace]
is interwoven with the well-being of all other members (Killmister 256)
may leave little room for independence, but it underlines how signicant
social relations are in forging the self. In addition, many pragmatic social
tenets stem from essential interconnection, including theories of dignity
and moral responsibility (see Ober 832). Thus, sociality impacts directly
on how we position ourselves in the world, how we relate to others, how
we assess ourselves, and so forth. This cultural-relational account does
not supplant physicalism. Indeed, Amy Banks draws on neuroimaging
to make an essentialist case that humans are interconnected by default.
The cultural-relational paradigm implies that any one exclusory philosophical model (physicalism, behaviorism, functionalism) fails to paint
a complete enough picture of selfhood, because these theoretical conceptions of selfhood do not do enough to account for how we actually
experience selfhood in the social realm.
Although Regina prizes her social bonds, zombieswho routinely
kill and devourdo not (or at least zombies do not express sociality in
the way humans do). As she undergoes her transition into zom-being,
Regina is torn between two incompatible modes of existence. Her autobiographical accounts are thus conicted. Even though she does not
recall doing any of the shit she is accused of, Regina expresses regret
over her actions. For example, she admits liability for those actions as
if she were conscious of her behaviors: I know I did it I didnt mean
to do it. Reginas question what kind of cure is there for the things Ive
done? I dont want to be a monster is particularly telling in this light.
First, she takes ownership over the killings committed (things Ive
done). Second, she assesses those acts according to human values, sug-

Pretty, DeadJones

187

gesting that they are incurably monstrous actions. Third, she writes
those actions into her identity, dubbing herself a monster. Regina
thereby anchors her liability for the killings in her selfhood. However,
this means that she both judges her actions from a human perspective
distancing herself from the perpetrators monstrosityand also recognizes that she is the inhuman creature she vilies. Her discordant
assessment is only deepened by her outright denials elsewhere in the
lm: I swear I didnt do this that wasnt me.
Reginas conicting statements reveal not a tug of conscience, but
a disjuncture in her being. The onset of zom- being impels Regina
towards forsaking the values and social bonds that dene her humanity.
Zom-being necessitates anti-social activity10esh-eatingand so relinquishing social bonds is a necessary part of zom-becoming. Reginas
efforts to resist turning into a zombie are expressed as attempts to maintain her established notion of human sociality. For example, Regina
declares, I dont want to hurt people anymore so I stay away from
them. Although stay[ing] away means negating sociality, her intent is
social in orientation since it recognizes her duty to defend others.
Reginas conict is most notable in her key social relationship: her
love for Ryan. Regina wishes to maintain their affiliation, imploring, I
need your help, and angrily accusing Ryan of ditching [her] when [she]
needed [him] most. Simultaneously, by keeping Ryan close, Regina poses
a threat to his safety. Although Regina longs to maintain her social links
in order to evince her humanity then, in doing so she risks eradicating
those bonds. Moreover, Reginas transition into zom-being can be
charted via her changing relationship with Ryan, because Ryans presence
underscores her loss of humanity-qua-sociality. The earliest point in the
plot is Reginas rst date with Ryan, and the bulk of Pretty Dead maps
their relationship until Ryans death. Ryans changing attitudes towards
Regina also illuminates her gradual transformation. Ryan initially accepts
Reginas behavior. He laughs it off when Regina bites him (I appreciate
your enthusiasm, but Jesus Christ youve got to watch those chompers),
and proclaims that he loves her despite the fact that [she is] eating raw
bacon. Ryan jokingly adapts Kelis 2003 song Milkshake, singing you
like to drink human lard, Im going to blow my chunks as Regina consumes a glass of liquidized fat. Ryan admits that such jokes help him
cope. As the lm progresses however, Ryans gags articulate his escalating trepidation. Although light-hearted in tone, Ryans request dont
eat me if I die expresses a valid fear. As Regina changes and his doubts
intensify, Ryans jokes are replaced by serious requests[l]et me take

188

Zombies and Sexuality

you to the hospital its not funnyand eventually outright terror:


you asked me to shoot you Im scared fucking shitless. These shifts
chronicle the decline of their relationship.
Ryan provides a constant human presence that throws Reginas
changes into relief. The disjuncture between Reginas self-as-experienced
and the social world that situates her increases as she transforms. Regina
attempts to resolve that tension by embracing death: that is, consciously
turning her back on her previous life. After a bleach cocktail (kill juice)
fails to cure her, Regina decides to shoot herself. This suicide attempt
is shown twice: once at the outset, and again towards the end of the lm.
This repeated incident bookends Reginas transition into zom-being and
the decline of her union with Ryan. The suicide attempt fails, only scarring her face. Regina then immediately kills Ryan. Although her ontological status remains unclear in the remainder of the lm, killing Ryan
is a signicant marker in Reginas movement towards the end of her
life as a sociosexual being.
The second most signicant turning point in her transformation is
presented at the lms conclusion, and again appears to connote the end
of Reginas life. In the nal frames before the closing credits, Reginas
rotting body is carried away on a gurney. A pulsing double-beat redolent
of a heartbeat occupies the soundscape, and is eventually replaced by a
high-pitched tone reminiscent of a heart-monitor at-lining. To think
of this as a straight-forward physical death is to misread Reginas transformation and the sequences sociosexual signicance. The sound does
not indicate that Regina completely turns or physiologically dies. Nurse
Boyle is unable to nd Reginas pulse some time before these closing
frames, and so the nal soundscape does not denote asystole. Furthermore, Regina already survived at-lining at a much earlier point in the
plot. Before Regina and Ryan are engaged, she overdoses on drugs. In a
retrospective voice-over, Regina theorizes that when Ryan resuscitated
her, she was brought back as one of the undead: I died that night, Ive
been dead ever since. Reginas statement is denitive, as if there was a
single moment in which she became a zombie. This distinction is not
corroborated by the gradual transition she undergoes. More precisely,
when Ryan resuscitated Regina, he started her on the path from humanity to zom-being. The at-line tone recurs throughout the lm. It is
heard regularly during Reginas interviews with Dr. Romera, and also
sounds in the wake of Ryans death.
The lms closing sequence underscores that Reginas relationship
with Ryan is inextricable from her sociosexual identity. The lms nal

Pretty, DeadJones

189

at-line tone is another phase in her on-going transition rather than a


distinct physiological tipping-point. Indeed, visual cues suggest that the
at-line is metaphysical rather than literal. CCTV shots of Reginas
decomposing body being carried from a padded cell are intercut with
ashes of Regina and Ryan together before the onset of her transformation. The insert shots are edited to the soundscapes pulsing heartbeat.
Intercutting between Reginas lost relationship and images of her putrid
body (the state in which she caused Ryans death) suggests that Reginas
metaphorical hearther capacity for lovedies in these climactic
moments. Her memories of Ryan pulse like a heartbeat, indicating that
Reginas brain functionality (her consciousness) ceases simultaneously.
The at-line tone indicates the death of Reginas humanity-qua-sociality.
The cessation of Reginas sociosexuality punctuates the lms closure.
Cumulatively, Reginas overdose, suicide attempts, and gradual
putrefaction are inseparable from the metaphoric demise of her sociosexuality, her consciousness, and thus her humanity. However, Reginas
subsequent state is not fully realized in the lm. Her continuing transition into zom-being does not evoke death as an ending. After all, even
full-blown zombies continue to exist. The narrative shape corroborates
this theme. The lm features two post-credit sequences, further underlining that ostensible endings are instead points of continuation. Pretty
Dead also opens with Reginas apparent suicide which a) only appears
to be an ending, and b) happens more than once: it is repeated later in
the lm. It is beyond the lms capacity to nally elucidate Reginas experience of full-blown zom-being. Instead, Pretty Dead de-naturalizes
Reginas assumptions about the difference between humanity- quarationality and irrational zom-being. Despite her desire to control (hinder) her transformation, Regina cannot impede the inexorable change.
Reginas behavior is thus at odds with her ability to control or rationalize
her conduct, leaving Regina torn between two states of being. Pretty
Dead thereby ags that rationalizing discourses are unable to capture
or wholly explain self-experience.

Zom-Beauty/Zom-Beast: Rationality and the


Experiential Hierarchy
Rationality is premised on the idea that humans ought to be able
control their behaviors and desires. In this view, the capacity for ration-

190

Zombies and Sexuality

ality separates humans from animals, and animal consciousness is


implied to be decient in comparison to human consciousness. An
archetypal version of this argument is John Stuart Mills valorization of
human satisfactions (14). Although he has no insight into what it is to
be like a pig, Mill presumes that because a pig lacks the human capacity
for understanding, a pigs experiences of the world are inferior to a
humans. Mills partiality towards human consciousness is commonplace.
Indeed, it is replicated in and legitimated by the authoritative structures
of medical science, psychology, law, economics, and so forth. These vast
institutions contribute to the existential grand narrative that human
consciousness is the standard against which all other experiential viewpoints are tested and found wanting. Experiences of selfhood that contradict that overwhelming grand narrative are consistently invalidated.
Indeed, the specter of mental illness underlines that there are incorrect
ways of experiencing the world. Those who fail to adhere to established
correct visions of reality and self-experience are routinely institutionalized, for example. Life-forms that lack full human consciousness
sentience and/or the capacity for rational reectionare typically
treated with disdain (or even destroyed).
On Mills scale, the zombie would be a lower-life form because the
undead lack consciousness. It is clear why zombies are ostensibly incomplete beings: from the living humans perspective, death is the ultimate
loss, and so zombies embody deprivation. Yet, undeath does not strictly
equate to lifelessness, since zombies continue to exist and remain animate. The zombies state is incomparable to the humans. As the pzombie argument elucidates, it is inadequate to think of zombies as subhumans. Zombies do not have phenomenological consciousness, and
therefore occupy the world in a way that is unintelligible to the living
because human psychology is rooted in experiential awareness.
Although zom-being is a ctional state, as a thought-experiment zombies
ag how inadequate Mills hierarchical stance is. The world may be experienced in numerous ways. Since we have no access to alternative modes
of experience, the argument that human sentience supplies the best
experiences is groundless.
Transitional zombie narratives highlight this inadequacy. Regina
offers no direct access to what being a zombie is nally like, since fullblown zombies (following the p-zombie paradigm) can no longer verbalize or reect on their state, since they have no qualia to refer to. However, this does not mean her slippage into zom-being is an experiential
decline. To Regina-qua-human, her relationship with Ryan deteriorates.

Pretty, DeadJones

191

However, it does not follow that Reginas transition into zom-being is


itself degenerative. To Regina-qua-zombie, the relationship is meaningless; sociality is not relevant to the zombies state. Human inability to
conceive of what zom-being would be like denotes that our conceptual
capacity is insufficient for understanding other entities states, and even
the world itself. Regina ags that inadequacy. Reginas autobiographical
statements are themed around her social bonds, her identity, her capacity for consciousness, and her physicality. These reections underline
how she conceives of herself, what she values about her existence, and
what (as a human) Regina fears she will lose as a result of her metamorphosis.
Her anxieties stem from the degree of control she has over those
changes, and her in/ability to comprehend those changes via an anthropocentric understanding of self-experience. Regina reacts by gripping
onto the kind of rationalist view Mill venerates. Yet the scientically
credible actions Regina implements to hinder the process only expedite
her transformation: [e]verything I do to x myself, Regina observes,
just makes things worse. Eventually, Reginas quest to retain control
spirals towards irrationality. For example, she announces that she wishes
she could turn her body inside out and scrub [the fungus] off. Reginas
grotesque yearning emphasizes her internal, experiential viewpoint at
the point when her rational actions and language fail her.
The sovereignty of rational consciousness is bolstered by institutional structures, and Pretty Dead undercuts that ostensibly integral
position. The second viewpoint offered on Reginas transition is external:
having been institutionalized for murdering Ryan and a pizza delivery
driver, Regina is observed by Dr. Romera. Here too she reects upon
her experiences, but her report is contested by Romeras diagnoses.
Romera is the mouthpiece for a version of rationalist thought that carries
disquieting connotations. Pretty Deads portrayal of a woman (a) whose
rationality is called into question, (b) whose carnality is deemed monstrous, and (c) whose liberty is infringed upon by medico-legal apparatuses, is reminiscent of hysteria: diagnostic rhetoric that carries deeply
misogynistic overtones. As Julie Lokis-Adkins observes, by the end of
the [19th century], half of all women were thought to be hysterics
because they resisted the societal limitations imposed on them; there
were two options for young, unmarried women: enter a convent or marry
(40; see also Greer 55). That is, gender-biased socio-sexual norms were
implemented via two types of institutionmedical and matrimonial
legitimating the broad fear that any woman who did not adhere to their

192

Zombies and Sexuality

proper social place would become a sexual predator: a monster even


(Lokis-Adkins 40; see also Mesch 107). Ironically, such terror itself
smacks of hysteria. This over-wrought reaction implies that female sexuality is enormously potent, even capable of disturbing the entire patriarchal structure. Neither historically rooted gendered oppression nor
contemporary gender politics will be dwelt upon in what follows.11 Of
greater pertinence to the discussion in hand are the ways in which a
particular view of existence is validated. The legal-medical structure not
only conrms but also enforces a vision of reality that stems from scientic rationality. In Pretty Dead, that ethos is embodied by Romera,
who seeks to cure Regina and return her to normal. That is, Romera
imposes his established rationalist view, ignoring Reginas objections to
his diagnosis. Romera talks over Reginas protests rather than considering her purported self-experiences, thereby indicating his belief that his
explication is incontestable.
Although Reginas and Romeras diagnoses clash, it is not that their
appraisals of Reginas situation are entirely dichotomous. Reginas autodiagnosis shares Romeras judgment that zom-being is unacceptable.
Before Regina is arrested, she proclaims obviously Im out of control.
Im a monster. Her assessment is directly echoed in Romeras concern
that Regina is out of control. Reginas self-evaluation denotes her devotion to a rational anthropocentric view of existence despite its incongruity with her self- experience. Although Regina apprehends her
position via scientic models (Im not schizophrenic [or] delusional),
she documents her experiences during her transition by referring to how
she feels (I can feel it in me, I feel pretty dead already). Pretty Dead
thereby validates her sensations as a mode of understanding her transition rather than rejecting those expressions of self- experience (as
Romera does).
The same balance is achieved via Pretty Deads form. Pretty Dead
is characterized as a true story; on-screen captions posit that the lm
is a collection of recovered footage.12 Yet Pretty Deads viewer is not
encouraged to side with Romeras rational, external view and reject
Reginas internal-experiential claim that she is undead. Romeras and
Reginas clashing diagnoses are reected in Pretty Deads dual formal
perspectives. In the asylum, Regina is perceived via a sterile observatory
stance. These sequences are shot via three cameras that are aligned with
Romeras perspective, thereby implying that his diagnosis is accurate.
The rst camera is situated alongside Romera, and lms Regina fronton. No reverse angle is available (no camera captures Romera front-on).

Pretty, DeadJones

193

Regina is clearly inspected in a way that Romera is not, implying that


her version of events requires justication, whereas his is unquestioned.
The second is a CCTV camera situated behind Romera. Although much
of the room is covered in these shots, the camera faces only Regina:
Romera remains anonymous. Additionally, this camera captures other
gures (orderlies and nurses) who concur with Romeras diagnosis. Their
presence corroborates that his clinical opinion is a majority stance. The
third camera is less denitive. Placed side on to Romera and Regina, this
camera frames their conversation in a more balanced fashion: Regina
on screen-right, Romera on screen-left. Romera is scrutinized on the
same level as Regina in these shots. This third camera is more broadly
indicative of Pretty Deads methodology. Approximately 60 percent of
the movie is captured by Regina and Ryans camcorder. In much of that
footage, Regina expounds her experiences. Even where the content is
highly personal in nature, depicting Regina and Ryans relationship for
example, the found-footage mode paints these incidents as empirical
fact, equal to Romeras observations. Indeed, the camcorder tapes status
as evidence is veried rstly by an on-screen caption stating that the
video is all that remains to tell [Reginas] story, and secondly by
Romeras declaration that the camcorder footage would authenticate
Reginas self-diagnosis.
Since Pretty Dead includes Reginas auto-documentation, her seemingly irrational diagnosis is legitimated for the viewer. In contrast,
Romera fails to cure Regina, despite his plausible explanation for her
condition. Scientic rationality is incapable of capturing what is happening to Regina. For instance, although Romera states that it would
be easy to prove what you say is true if we do a physical, even the most
rudimentary medical methods fail. Nurse Boyle deems that her equipment is broken when she cannot nd Reginas blood pressure. The
sedatives Romera prescribes are ineffective. Reginas own reliance on
scientic rationalization is just as awed. Although she perceives her
transition as a big medical breakthrough, her documentation quickly
spirals into an autobiographical mode, focusing on her crumbling sociosexual relationship. There are no discoveries, just personal effects. Her
self-shot video is not available to evince her case to Romera. Instead,
the tapes serve an intimate social function: they are an extended suicide
note to Reginas companions. In Reginas nal moments of autodocumentation, she apologizes to her loved ones (Sorry, Dad, this isnt
your fault) and expresses her self-destructive intentions (Im already
dead already [sic], I just need a little help lying down).

194

Zombies and Sexuality

Despite their powerful supporting structures, rationalist medicoscientic understandings of Reginas condition are ultimately subordinate to her personal experiences and social identity in Pretty Dead. So,
contrary to the commonplace notion that rationality is a pre-condition
for forming meaningful social bonds (Anderson 1278), Pretty Dead
indicates that (a) phenomenological experience is the foundation of selfhood, and (b) social bonds provide an index for the formation of identity.
These are the elements Regina loses during her transition into zombeing. Rationality provides one mode of apprehending self, but here it
pales in comparison with experiential understanding of selfhood in the
socio-sexual realm.

Zom-Bequeathed: Sociosexual P-Zombies


Although Pretty Dead does not answer the question of what it is
like to be a zombie, Reginas transition highlights crucial differences
between human experience and zom-being. Most notably, Pretty Dead
probes the role socialityhere, epitomized as sociosexualityplays in
self-conception. The narrative thereby also undercuts the anthropocentric experiential hierarchy on which rationalist notions of human consciousness are founded. Thus, transitional zombie narratives such as
Pretty Dead highlight areas in selfhood philosophy that would benet
from greater critical attention. First, intuitive self-experience should not
be neglected. Self-reports are typically viewed as problematic because
they are prone to bias and error (see Doucet; Hohwy; Whiting). However,
dismissing autobiographical accounts entirely risks privileging rationalism and misses what is useful about such accounts: that they reect
how selfhood is experienced in the social realm. Second, we should not
be blind to the impact institutional arrangements of power have both
on self-experience and on conceptions of selfhood. In Pretty Dead, these
structures are embodied by the rationalist medico-legal institution in
which Regina is detained. The conict between Regina and Romeras
viewpoints evinces the need for a new discourse that is attuned to
Reginas self-experiences rather than one that quashes incompatible
reports.
To neglect the social worldin which experiences happen, in which
behaviors manifest, in which identity of formedis to hark back to a
Cartesian model of selfhood, which separates interior and exterior. As
Andrea Nye observes, Ren Descartes dualistic paradigm is awed

Pretty, DeadJones

195

because he envisages consciousness as solipsistic removed from passion


and imagination, and ultimately drives a wedge between feeling and
knowing (26). Although dualism is largely rejected in contemporary philosophy, we should take care not to replicate his conceptual aw: privileging
self-experience to the extent that self is divorced from social reality. A
coherent theory of selfhood must bridge between the personal, internal
world of desires, motives, and intentions on one hand and the external
social world on the other. Many proponents of the p-zombie debates fail
to achieve this balance because they focus on rationalizing paradigms such
as physicalism, and are not attuned to our experiences of self.
It is surprising that interdependent sociality has featured so little
in discussions regarding zombies and consciousness to date. Sociality is
fundamental to self-conception, and so it impacts on self-experience.
Transitional zombie narratives offer an avenue into examining consciousness that is sensitive to an intuitive version of selfhood, one that
develops the p-zombie debates by thinking about selfhood in a pragmatic
way. In contrast, p-zombie debates are typically hypothetical in nature, and
lead to some outlandish assertions about self-experience. For instance,
Philip Goff proposes that he cannot imagine what it is to be a zombie, but
can readily conceive of being an equally hypothetical lonely ghost. It
is little wonder that some philosophers have rejected p-zombies altogether. Daniel Dennett, for example, has labeled the p-zombie argument
preposterous, elaborating that it is a strangely attractive but unsupportable hypothesis that ought to be dropped like a hot potato (171).
Those zombies we can apprehendthose represented in popular
cultureare of philosophical value in ways that their p-zombie brethren
are not. Contemporary movie zombies are becoming ever more akin to
humans, and commonly occupy human social situations. Rather than
being denizens of apocalyptic wastelands, the undead are now frequently
placed in unexceptional human scenarios, as titles such as Zombie
Cheerleading Camp (2007), Zombie Beach Party (2003) and Brunch of
the Living Dead (2006) evince. As they come to inhabit a broader range
of everyday social spheres and become increasingly alive to human experiences, movie zombies are becoming progressively valuable conduits
for philosophical reection on the self and ourselves.
As I have argued throughout this essay, Pretty Dead is a prototypical
example of how zombie movies can be utilized for philosophical enquiry
into sociosexual existence. Pretty Dead is rooted in reality, both formally
(employing found- footage realism), and thematically (focusing on
Reginas medico-legal and social conditions). Crucially, Pretty Dead

196

Zombies and Sexuality

underlines Reginas experience of transition, and this is what viewers


engage with. Rationally, we know Reginas story is ctional, that Regina
is performed by an actor (Carly Oates), and that zombies do not genuinely exist. Viewers who engage with Pretty Dead as a narrative do so
at an intuitive, experiential level. Compared with the cold, dead analysis
of p-zombie argumentation, zombie movies are animate and vital. Interaction with Reginas story is closer to a social, emotive experience than
it is an intellectual process. That experience is not adequately captured
by the rationalist conceptual tools currently at our disposal. Films such
as Pretty Dead do not just engage its viewers in an intuitive kind of philosophical thinking. By depicting a form of selfhood that dees rationalist
logic (zom-being), these lms also challenge their viewers into developing new conceptual (theoretical and imaginative) vocabularies via which
to describe and engage with both selfhood and sociosexuality.

Notes
1. The philosophical zombie was evoked earlier by Kripke and Block for example,
although Chalmers contentions (The Conscious Mind ) have inspired much recent
debate.
2. A terminological point requires clarication. The term transition carries
established meanings in the context of sociosexual identity discourse. Individuals
experience sociosexual transformations of all kinds, ranging from pubescence to
coming out to transsexual transition. My use of transition does not seek to draw
a comparison between any of these particular shifts and becoming undead.
3. This play on Romero evinces that the narrative is clearly staked as a zombie
lm, despite the ambiguity over Reginas undeadness.
4. There are two notable variations on this theme. First, lms such as Zombie
Love (2007) and A Zombie Love Song (2013) depict zombies falling in love with living
persons. Zombies are limned as having autonomy in these cases, and so they will
not be considered here. Second, Dating a Zombie (2012) presents a living protagonist
who eschews relationships with the living in favour of partnerships with the undead.
In this case, socialitys value is called into question. Anyone interested in the practicalities of sociosexuality in the wake of outbreak may wish to consult Chip and
Bernies Dating Guide for the Zombie Apocalypse (2011), which outlines problems
associated with zomance and offers advice on handling the opposite (undead)
sex.
5. Indeed, zombies exhibit behaviors, but (presumably) have no underlying mental
states.
6. Qualia, in this view, are indicators of consciousness.
7. On the conceivability of p-zombies and epistemic limitations, see Hanrahan;
Goff; Diaz-Leon; Majeed.
8. As an aside, some full-blown zombies claim to have experiences and display
awareness of their state. One prototypical example is the female zombie torso in
Return of the Living Dead (1985) who is able to articulate that being undead hurts;
she explains that zombies eat brains because it temporarily assuages the agony of
being dead. This zombie purports to have at least one kind of phenomenal experience

Pretty, DeadJones

197

(pain), which signies self-knowledge: the zombie describes herself as an entity that
has undergone an experience. One could argue that the zombie is mistaken and does
not really have phenomenal experiences. There is a difference between stating that
one has had an experience and actually having an experience. However, the same
line of thought would give us reason to doubt the veracity of qualia in general. We
have no means of knowing whether other living humans reports of experiencing
are as false as the zombies are. Moreover, if the zombie believes that they are experiencing, there is every chance that ones own claims to experiencing are also false.
Incredulity over the zombies claim to consciousness leaves the living sceptic with
no grounds for demonstrating their own claim to consciousness (on this quandary,
see Macpherson 2312).
9. Cordyceps fungus also causes the zombie plague in the recent videogame The
Last of Us (2013).
10. Flesh eating is anti-social according to Reginas norms. In some cultures cannibalism is a social practice rooted in compassion and interpersonal obligation. For
example, see Conklin.
11. For discussion of zombies and gender politics, see Jones Gender Monstrosity.
12. Moreover, the lm-makers have declared that they intended to make a realistic, scientically plausible zombie lm. See Wilkins.

This page intentionally left blank

Bibliography
Aggrawal, Anil. Necrophilia: Forensic
and Medico-Legal Aspects. Boca
Raton: Taylor and Francis, 2011.
Ahmed, Sara. Queer Phenomenology:
Orientations,
Objects,
Others.
Durham: Duke University Press, 2006.
Alaimo, Stacy. Bodily Natures: Science,
Environment, and the Material Self.
Bloomington: Indiana University
Press, 2010.
Althaus-Reid, Marcella. Indecent Theology: Theological Perversions in Sex,
Gender and Politics. London: Routledge, 2000.
Anatole, Emily. Generation Z: Rebels
with a Cause. Forbes. 28 May 2013.
Anderson, Scott. On Sexual Obligation
and Sexual Autonomy. Hypatia 28.1
(2013): 12241.
Aquilina, Carmelo, and Julian C. Hughes.
The Return of the Living Dead:
Agency Lost and Found. In Dementia:
Mind, Meaning, and the Person. Eds.
Julian C. Hughes, Stephen J. Louw, and
Steven R. Sabat. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2006. 14361.
Attwood, Feona. Sexed Up: Theorizing
the Sexualization of Culture. Sexualities 8.5 (2006): 7794.
_____, and Clarissa Smith. Extreme
Concern: Regulating Dangerous Pictures in the United Kingdom. Journal
of Law and Society 37.1 (2010): 171
88.
Auerbach, Nina. Our Vampires, Ourselves. Chicago: University of Chicago
Press, 1995.

Augustine. City of God. Trans. Henry


Bettenson. London: Penguin, 1972.
Austen, Jane, and Seth Grahame-Smith.
Pride, Prejudice and Zombies.
Philadelphia: Quirk, 2009.
_____, and Ben H. Winters. Sense and
Sensibility and Sea Monsters. Philadelphia: Quirk, 2009.
Bakhtin, Mikhael. Rabelais and His
World. Bloomington: Indiana University Press, 1984.
Banks, Amy. Developing the Capacity
to Connect. Zygon 46.1 (2011): 168
82.
Barrett, C.K. A Commentary on the Epistle to the Romans. London: Adam and
Charles Black, 1957.
Barrett Gross, Matthew. The Last Myth.
New York: Prometheus, 2012.
Barth, Karl. The Epistle to the Romans.
Trans. Edwyn C. Hoskyns. London:
Oxford University Press, 1933.
Bayer, Ronald, and Eric A. Feldman, eds.
Understanding the Blood Feuds. In
Blood Feuds: AIDS, Blood, and the Politics of Medical Disaster. Eds. Eric A.
Feldman and Ronald Bayer. New York:
Oxford University Press, 1999. 116.
Beaudoin, Tom. Virtual Faith: The Irreverent Spiritual Quest of Generation X.
San Francisco: Jossey-Bass, 1998.
Behlmer, George K. Grave Doubts: Victorian Medicine, Moral Panic and the
Signs of Death. Journal of British
Studies 42.2 (2003): 20635.
Behuniak, Susan. M. The Living Dead?
The Construction of People with

199

200

Bibliography

Alzheimers Disease as Zombies. Ageing and Society 31.1 (2011): 7092.


Benshoff, Harry M. Monsters in the
Closet: Homosexuality and the Horror
Film. Manchester: Manchester University Press, 1997.
Berenstein, Rhona J. It Will Thrill You,
It May Shock You, It Might Even Horrify You: Gender, Reception, and Classic Horror Cinema. In The Dread of
Difference: Gender and the Horror
Film. Ed. Barry Keith Grant. Austin:
University of Texas Press, 1996. 117
142.
Berlant, Lauren. Intimacy: A Special
Issue. In Intimacy. Ed. Lauren Berlant.
Chicago: University of Chicago Press,
2000. 120.
Bersani, Leo. Is the Rectum a Grave?
October 43.1 (1987): 197222.
Bersani, Leo. The Freudian Body: Psychoanalysis and Art. New York: Columbia University Press, 1986.
Bertellini,
Giorgio.
Profundo
Rosso/Deep Red: Dario Argento, Italy,
1975. In The Cinema of Italy. Ed.
Giorgio Bertellini. London: Wallower
Press, 2004. 21322.
Bishop, Kyle William. American Zombie
Gothic: The Rise and Fall (and Rise) of
the Walking Dead in Popular Culture.
Jefferson: McFarland, 2010.
_____. Raising the Dead: Unearthing the
Non-Literary Origins of Zombie Cinema. Journal of Popular Film and Television 33.4 (2006): 196205.
Block, Ned. Are Absent Qualia Impossible? The Philosophical Review 89.2
(1980): 25774.
Bosky, Bernadette Lynn. Making the
Implicit, Explicit: Vampire Erotica and
Pornography. In The Blood is the Life:
Vampires in Literature. Eds. Leonard
G. Heldreth and Mary Pharr. Bowling
Green: Bowling Green State
University Press, 1999. 21733.
Briggs, Laura. Reproducing Empire: Race,
Sex, Science, and U.S. Imperialism in
Puerto Rico. Berkeley: University of
California Press, 2002.
Brinkley, Alan. The Conquest of the Far
West. In The Unnished Nation: A

Concise History of the American People. Eds. Alan Brinkley, Harvey Jackson, and Bradley Rice. New York: McGraw Hill, 2004. 176186.
Brock, Marilyn. The Vamp and the
Good English Mother: Female Roles
in Le Fanus Carmilla and Stokers
Dracula. In From Wollstonecraft to
Stoker: Essays on Gothic and Victorian
Sensation Fiction. Ed. Marilyn Brock.
Jefferson: McFarland, 2009. 12031.
Brooks, Max. The Zombie Survival
Guide. New York: Random House,
2003.
Brooks, Max. World War Z. London:
Gerald Duckworth, 2006.
Brown, Kate E. Beloved Objects:
Mourning, Materiality, and Charlotte
Bronts Never-Ending Story. English
Literary History 65.2 (1998): 395422.
Brown, Norman O. Loves Body.
Berkeley: University of California
Press, 1966.
Brown, Wendy. Edgework: Critical Essays
on Knowledge and Politics. Princeton:
Princeton University Press, 2005.
Browne, Scott G. Zombie Gigolo. In
The Living Dead 2. Ed. John Joseph
Adams. San Francisco: Night Shade
Books, 2010. 26568.
Bryan, T. J. It Takes Ballz: Reections of
a Black Attitudinal Femme Vixen in
tha Makin. In Brazen Femme: Queering Femininity. Eds. Chlo Brushwood
Rose and Anna Camilleri. Vancouver:
Arsenal Press, 2002. 14759.
Butler, Judith. Gender Trouble. New
York: Routledge, 1999.
Butler, Judith. Precarious Life: The
Powers of Mourning and Violence.
London: Verso, 2004.
Cacho, Lisa Marie. Social Death: Racialized Rightlessness and the Criminalization of the Unprotected. New York:
New York University Press, 2012.
Camporesi, Piero. The Consecrated
Host: A Wondrous Excess. In Fragments for a History of the Human
Body. Ed. Michel Felier. New York:
Zone, 1989. 22037.
Canter, David V., and Natalia Wentink.
An Empirical Test of Holmes and

Bibliography
Holmess Serial Murder Typology.
Criminal Justice and Behavior 31.4
(2004): 489515.
Castillo, Michelle. Rotten to the Core.
New York Press. 26 May 2010.
Castronovo, Russ. Political Necrophilia.
boundary2 27.2 (2000): 113148.
Chalmers, David. The Conscious Mind:
In Search of a Fundamental Theory.
Oxford: Oxford University Press,
1996.
_____. Consciousness and Its Place in
Nature. In Philosophy of Mind: Classical and Contemporary Readings. Ed.
David Chalmers. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2002. 24772.
Chen, Mel Y. Animacies: Biopolitics,
Racial Mattering, and Queer Affect.
Durham: Duke University Press, 2012.
Christie, Deborah, and Sarah Juliet
Lauro, eds. Better Off Dead: The Evolution of the Zombie as Post-Human.
New York: Fordham University Press,
2011.
Ciampa, Roy E., and Brian S. Rosner. The
First Letter to the Corinthians. Grand
Rapids: Wm. B. Eerdmans, 2010.
Clark, Danae. Commodity Lesbianism.
In The Lesbian and Gay Studies
Reader. Eds. Henry Abelove, Michle
Aina Barale, and David M. Halperin.
New York: Routledge, 1993. 186201.
Clarke, Amy M., and Marijane Osborn.
The Twilight Mystique: Critical Essays
on the Novels and Films. Jefferson: McFarland, 2010.
Click, Melissa A., Jennifer Stevens
Aubrey, and Elizabeth BehmMorawitz, eds. Bitten by Twilight:
Youth Culture, Media, and the Vampire Franchise. New York: Peter Lang,
2010.
Clover, Carol J. Men, Women, and Chain
Saws: Gender in the Modern Horror
Film. Princeton: Princeton University
Press, 1992.
Cohen, Jeffrey Jerome. Monster Theory.
Minneapolis: Minnesota University
Press, 1996.
Comaroff, Jean, and John L. Comaroff.
Alien-Nation: Zombies, Immigrants,
and Millennial Capitalism. The South

201

Atlantic Quarterly 101.4 (2002): 779


805.
Combs, Mary Beth. A Measure of Legal
Independence: The 1870 Married
Womens Property Act and the Portfolio Allocations of British Wives. The
Journal of Economic History 65.4
(2005): 102857.
Comeau, J. L. Seminar Z. In Dead Set:
A Zombie Anthology. Eds. Michelle
McCrarym and Joe McKinney. Jefferson, TX: 23 House, 2010. 17192.
Conklin, Beth. Consuming Grief: Compassionate Cannibalism in an Amazonian Society. Austin: University of
Texas Press, 2001.
Cornwall, Susannah. Controversies in
Queer Theology. London: SCM Press,
2011.
Craft, Christopher. Kiss Me with Those
Red Lips: Gender and Inversion in
Bram Stokers Dracula. Representations 8.3 (1984): 10733.
Creed, Barbara. The Monstrous-Feminine: Film, Feminism, Psychoanalysis.
London: Routledge, 1993.
Davis, Wade. The Serpent and the Rainbow. New York: Simon & Schuster,
1985.
Delaney, Samuel R. Times Square Red,
Times Square Blue. New York: New
York University Press, 1999.
Dendle, Peter. The Zombie as Barometer of Cultural Anxiety. In Monsters
and the Monstrous: Myths and
Metaphors of Enduring Evil. Ed. Niall
Scott. New York: Rodopi, 2007. 45
57.
Dendle, Peter. The Zombie Movie Encyclopedia. Jefferson: McFarland, 2000.
Dennett, Daniel C. The Unimagined
Preposterousness of Zombies: Commentary on Moody, Flanagan and Polger. Brainchildren: Essays on
Designing Minds. Ed. Daniel C. Dennett. London: Penguin, 1998. 17177.
Dennison, Michael J. Vampirism:
Literary Tropes of Decadence and Entropy. New York: Peter Lang, 2001.
Diaz-Leon, E. Are Ghosts Scarier Than
Zombies? Consciousness and Cognition 21.2 (2012): 74748.

202

Bibliography

Dines, Gail. Pornland: How Porn Has Hijacked Our Sexuality. Boston: Beacon,
2010.
Doucet, Mathieu. Can We Be SelfDeceived About What We Believe?
Self-Knowledge, Self-Deception, and
Rational Agency. European Journal of
Philosophy 20.1 (2012): 125.
Downing, Lisa. Death and the Maidens:
A Century of Necrophilia in FemaleAuthored Textual Production. French
Cultural Studies 14.2 (2003): 15768.
Drezner, Daniel W. Theories of International Politics and Zombies. Princeton:
Princeton University Press, 2011.
Dudley, Scott. Conferring with the
Dead: Necrophilia and Nostalgia in
the Seventeenth Century. ELH: English Literary History 66.2 (1999):
27794.
Duggan, Lisa. The New Homonormativity: The Sexual Politics of Neoliberalism. In Materializing Democracy:
Toward a Revitalized Cultural Politics.
Eds. Russ Castronovo and Dana D.
Nelson. Durham: Duke University
Press, 2002. 17594.
Duggan, Lisa. The Twilight of Equality?
Neoliberalism, Cultural Politics, and
the Attack On Democracy. Boston:
Beacon Press, 2003.
Dworkin, Andrea. Pornography: Men
Possessing Women. New York: Plume,
1989.
Dyer, Richard. Stereotyping. In The Columbia Reader on Lesbians and Gay
Men in Media, Society, and Politics.
Eds. Larry Gross and James Woods.
New York: Columbia University Press,
1999. 297301.
Edelman, Lee. No Future: Queer Theory
and the Death Drive. Durham: Duke
University Press, 2004.
Elliott-Smith, Darren. Death is the New
Pornography! Gay Zombies, Homonormativity and Consuming Masculinity in Queer Horror. In Screening
the Undead: Vampires and Zombies in
Film and Television. Eds. Leon Hunt,
Milly Williamson, and Sharon
Lockyer. London: I.B. Tauris, 2013.
148171.

Episcopal Church. The Book of Common


Prayer. New York: Church Hymnal
Corporation, 1979.
Epright, M. Carmela. Coercing Future
Freedom: Consent and Capacities for
Autonomous Choice. Journal of Law,
Medicine & Ethics 38.4 (2010): 799
806.
Faetopia Crew. Zombie Christ Haunted
House. Zombiechristwww. 29 March
2013.
Farnell, Gary. Theorizing the Gothic for
the Twenty-First Century. In TwentyFirst-Century Gothic. Eds. Brigid
Cherry, Peter Howell, and Caroline
Ruddell. Newcastle upon Tyne: Cambridge Scholars, 2010. 718.
Foucault, Michel. The Government of Self
and Others: Lectures at the Collge de
France 19821983. Ed. Arnold I.
Davidson. Trans. Graham Burchell.
New York: Palgrave Macmillan, 2010.
Foucault, Michel. The History of Sexuality Vol. 1. Trans. Robert Hurley. Harmondsworth: Penguin, 1990.
Freud, Sigmund. Introductory Lectures
on Psychoanalysis. Trans. James Strachey. Harmondsworth: Penguin, 1975.
_____. Three Essays on Sexuality. In On
Sexuality. Trans. James Strachey. London: Penguin, 1991. 45170.
_____. Totem and Taboo. London: Routledge Classics. 2001.
Furst, Martina. Exemplarization: A Solution to the Problem of Consciousness? Philosophical Studies 161.1
(2012): 14151.
Fuss, Diana. Oral Incorporations: The
Silence of the Lambs. In Identication
Papers. New York: Routledge, 1995.
Garland-Thomson, Rosemarie. Integrating Disability, Transforming Feminist Theory. In Feminist Disability
Studies. Ed. Kim Q. Hall. Bloomington: Indiana University Press, 2011.
1347.
Garrett, Brian Jonathan. Causal Essentialism Versus the Zombie Worlds.
Canadian Journal of Philosophy 39.1
(2009): 93112.
Gates, Henry Louis, Jr. The Signifying
Monkey: A Theory of African Ameri-

Bibliography
can Literary Criticism. New York: Oxford University Press, 1988.
Gaudiosi, John. Skybound Entertainment Founder Robert Kirkman Talks
Comics, videogames And The Walking
Dead. Forbes. 26 November 2012.
Giddens, Anthony. The Transformation
of Intimacy: Sexuality, Love and Eroticism in Modern Societies. Stanford:
Stanford University Press, 1992.
Gilbert, Sandra M., and Susan Gubar.
The Madwoman in the Attic: The
Woman Writer and the NineteenthCentury Literary Imagination. New
Haven: Yale University Press, 2000.
Giroux, Henry A. Zombie Politics and
Culture in the Age of Casino Capitalism. New York: Peter Lang, 2011.
Glassner, Barry. The Culture of Fear:
Why Americans Are Afraid of the
Wrong Things. New York: Basic Books.
1999.
Goff, Philip. A Priori Physicalism,
Lonely Ghosts and Cartesian Doubt.
Consciousness and Cognition 21.2
(2012): 74246.
Gordon, Henry Laing. Sir James Young
Simpson and Chloroform 18111870.
Honolulu: University Press of the Pacic, 2002.
Gordon, Joan, and Veronica Hollinger.
Blood Read: The Vampire as Metaphor
in Contemporary Culture. Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press,
1995.
Grant, Barry Keith. Taking Back the
Night of the Living Dead: George
Romero, Feminism, and the Horror
Film. In The Dread of Difference. Ed.
Barry Keith Grant. Austin: University
of Texas Press, 1996. 20012.
Grau, Marion. Of Divine Economy: Renancing Redemption. New York: T&T
Clark, 2004.
Gray, Kurt, and Daniel M. Wegner. Torture and Judgments of Guilt. Journal
of Experimental Social Psychology 46.1
(2010): 23335.
Green, Amber. Dead Kitties Dont Purr.
Atlanta: Noble Romance, 2012.
Greenberg, Harvey. Reimagining the
Gargoyle. In Close Encounters: Film,

203

Feminism and Science Fiction. Eds.


Constance Penley, Elisabeth Lyon,
Lynn Spigel, and Janet Bergstrom.
Minneapolis: University of Minnesota
Press, 1993. 83106.
Greer, Germaine. The Female Eunuch.
London: HarperCollins, 2008.
Greven, David. Representations of Femininity in American Genre Cinema: The
Womans Film, Film Noir, and Modern
Horror. New York: Palgrave, 2011.
Gross, Neil, and Solon Simmons. Intimacy as a Double-Edged Phenomenon? An Empirical Test of Giddens.
Social Forces 81.2 (2002): 53155.
Grosz, Elizabeth. Space, Time, and Perversion: Essays on the Politics of Bodies.
New York: Routledge, 1995.
Gutierrez, Roberto, and Roger GinerSorolla. Anger, Disgust, and Presumption of Harm as Reactions to Taboo
Breaking Behaviors. Emotion 7.4
(2007): 85368.
Guy, Jean-Sebastien. Rethinking Sexuality with Luhmann and Giddens.
Paper presented at the Canadian Sociological Association Annual Meeting, Waterloo. 26 May 2012.
Halberstam, Judith. Female Masculinity.
Durham: Duke University Press, 1998.
_____. The Queer Art of Failure. Durham:
Duke University Press, 2011.
_____. Skin Shows: Gothic Horror and the
Technology of Monsters. Durham:
Duke University Press, 1995.
Hall, Kim Q. Introduction. In Feminist
Disability Studies. Ed. Kim Q. Hall.
Bloomington: Indiana University
Press, 2011. 110.
Hancock, Philip, Bill Hughes, Elizabeth
Jagger, Kevin Paterson, Rachel Russell,
Emmanuelle Tulle-Winton, and
Melissa Tyler. The Body, Culture and
Society. Buckingham: Open University
Press, 2000.
Hannabach, Cathy. Technologies of
Blood: Asylum, Medicine, and Biopolitics. Cultural Politics 9.1 (2013): 22
41.
Hanrahan, Rebecca Roman. Consciousness and Modal Empiricism. Philosophia 37.2 (2009): 281306.

204

Bibliography

Hanson, Ellis. Undead. In Inside/Out:


Lesbian Theories, Gay Theories. Ed.
Diana Fuss. London: Routledge, 1991.
32426.
Hardy, Ernest. Zombie Deep Throat.
Blood Beats. 7 January 2010.
Harman, Chris. Zombie Capitalism:
Global Crisis and the Relevance of
Marx. Chicago: Haymarket Books,
2012.
Harmes, Barbara. Fin de Sicle: Sexual
Crisis and Social Disorder. University
of Southern Queensland PhD, 1999.
_____, and Marcus Harmes. My Secret
Life and the Sexual Economy of Finde-Sicle England. Australasian Journal of Victorian Studies 17.1 (2012):
1526.
Harvey, David. Neoliberalism as Creative Destruction. The Annals of the
American Academy of Political and
Social Science, 610.1 (2007): 2144.
Harvey, David. A Brief History of Neoliberalism. New York: Oxford University
Press, 2005.
Hawkes, Gail. ed. The Blackwell Encyclopedia of Sociology. Malden, MA:
Blackwell, 2007.
Hays, Matthew. The View from Here: Interviews with Gay and Lesbian Directors. Vancouver: Arsenal Pulp Press,
2007.
Heil, John. From an Ontological Point of
View. New York: Clarendon Press,
2003.
Hodgson, Peter C. Hegel and Christian
Theology: A Reading of the Lectures on
the Philosophy of Religion. London:
Oxford University Press, 2005.
Hoffman, Nina Kiriki. Third Dead
Body. In The Living Dead. Ed. John
Joseph Adams. San Francisco: Night
Shade Books, 2008. 8397.
Hohwy, Jakob. Phenomenal Variability
and Introspective Reliability Mind &
Language 20.3 (2011): 26186.
Horowitz, Amir. Turning the Zombie
on its Head. Synthese 170.1 (2009):
191210.
Howard, John. Men like That: A
Southern Queer History. Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 1999.

Jameson, Fredric. Progress versus Utopia;


or Can We Imagine the Future? Science
Fiction Studies 9.2 (1982): 14758.
Johnson, E. Patrick. Sweet Tea: Black Gay
Men of the South, an Oral History.
Chapel Hill: University of North Carolina Press, 2008.
Johnson, Paul. Haunting Heterosexuality: The Homo/Het Binary and Intimate Love. Sexualities 7.2 (2004):
183200.
Jones, Steve. Gender Monstrosity:
Deadgirl and the Sexual Politics of
Zombie-Rape. Feminist Media
Studies 13.4 (2013): 52539.
_____. Porn of the Dead: Necrophilia,
Feminism, and Gendering the Undead. In Zombies Are Us: Essays on
the Humanity of the Walking Dead.
Eds. Christopher Moreman and Cory
Rushton. Jefferson: McFarland, 2011.
4061.
_____. Torture Porn: Popular Horror after
Saw. London: Palgrave, 2013.
_____. XXXombies: Economies of
Desire and Disgust. In Thinking Dead:
What the Zombie Apocalypse Means.
Ed. Murali Balaji. New York: Lexington, 2013. 197214.
Julian of Norwich. Revelations of Divine
Love. Trans. Elizabeth Spearing. London: Penguin, 1998.
Keesey, Douglas. Intertwinings of Death
and Desire in Michele Soavis Dellamorte Dellamore. Horror Studies 2.1
(2011): 10514.
Killmister, Suzy. Why Group Membership Matters: A Critical Typology.
Ethnicities 12.3 (2012): 25169.
Kinnard, Meg. Zombie Fads Peak When
People Are Unhappy. Huffington Post.
11 March 2013.
Kipnis, Laura. Bound and Gagged:
Pornography and the Politics of Fantasy in America. Durham: Duke University Press, 1999.
Kirk, Robert. Zombies and Consciousness. Oxford: Oxford University Press,
2005.
Kirkman, Robert, and Charlie Adlard.
The Walking Dead: Compendium Two.
Berkeley: Image Comics, 2012.

Bibliography
Kirkman, Robert, Tony Moore, and
Charlie Adlard. The Walking Dead:
Compendium One. Berkeley: Image
Comics, 2011.
Kirtley, David Barr. Skull Faced City. In
The Living Dead 2. Ed. John Joseph
Adams. San Francisco: Night Shade
Books, 2010. 17590.
Koplowitz, Howard. Miami Zombie
Victim Ronald Poppo Details
Recovery One Year After Gruesome
Attack. International Business Times.
21 May 2013.
Kozlowski, Jan. First Love Never Dies.
In Hungry for Your Love. Ed. Lori
Perkins. New York: St. Martins
Griffin, 2009. 89103.
Kripke, Saul. Naming and Necessity.
Cambridge: Harvard University Press,
1972.
LaBruce, Bruce. Interview with Bruce
LaBruce. Baader-Meinhoff. 11 October 2011.
LaCugna, Catherine Mowry. God for Us:
The Trinity and Christian Life. New
York: HarperSanFrancisco, 1992.
Langdridge, Darren, and Trevor Butt.
The Erotic Construction of Power
Exchange. Journal of Constructivist
Psychology 18.1 (2006): 6573.
Larsen, Kari. Search for Security. Infosecurity 7.1 (2010): 3235.
Larsen, Lars Bang. Zombies of Immaterial Labor: The Modern Monster
and the Death of Death. e-ux 15.1
(2010).
Lauro, Sarah, and Karen Embry. The
Zombie Manifesto: The Nonhuman
Condition in the Era of Advanced
Capitalism. boundary2 35.1 (2008):
85108.
Lehrer, Keith. Consciousness, Representation and Knowledge. In Self-Representational Approaches to Consciousness. Eds. U. Kriegel and K. Williford.
Cambridge: MIT Press, 2006. 409
20.
Liss, David. What Maisie Knew. In The
New Dead. Ed. Christopher Golden.
New York: St. Martins Griffin 2010.
941
Locke, Don. Zombies, Schizophrenics,

205

and Purely Physical Objects. Mind


85.337 (1976): 9799.
Lockwood, Kurt. Vampire Porn: The
Top 10 Reasons Why Male Porn Stars
Are Like Anne Rice Vampires. Baltimore City Paper. 17 July 2013.
Loftus, David. Watching Sex: How Men
Really Respond to Pornography. New
York: Thunders Mouth, 2002.
Lokis-Adkins, Julie. Deadly Desires: A
Psychoanalytic Study of Female Sexual
Perversion and Widowhood in Fin-DeSiecle Womens Writing. London:
Karnac Books, 2013.
Lugones, Mara. Pilgrimages=Peregrinajes: Theorizing Coalition Against Multiple Oppressions. Lanham, MD: Rowman & Littleeld, 2003.
MacCormack, Patricia. Cinesexuality.
Hampshire: Ashgate, 2008.
MacCulloch, Diarmaid. A History of
Christianity. London: Penguin, 2009.
Macpherson, Fiona. A Disjunctive Theory
of Introspection: A Reection on Zombies and Antons Syndrome. Philosophical Issues 20.1 (2010): 22665.
Majeed, Raamy. Pleading Ignorance in
Response to Experiential Primitivism.
Philosophical Studies 163.1 (2013):
25169.
Malatesti, Luca. Thinking About Phenomenal Concepts. Synthesis Philosophica 52.2 (2011): 391402.
Marion, Isaac. Warm Bodies. London:
Vintage, 2010.
Marks, Laura Helen. I Want to Suck
Your : Dracula in Pornographic
Film. In Dracula in Visual Media:
Film, Television, Comic Book and Electronic Game Appearances, 19212010.
Eds. John Edgar Browning and Caroline Joan Picart. Jefferson: McFarland,
2011. 19399.
Martin, George R. R. Meathouse Man.
In The Living Dead. Ed. John Joseph
Adams. San Francisco: Night Shade
Books, 2008. 27798.
Massumi, Brian, ed. The Politics of Everyday Fear. Minneapolis: University of
Minnesota Press, 1993.
Matheson, Richard. I Am Legend. Greenwich: Gold Medal, 1954.

206

Bibliography

Mbembe, Achille. Necropolitics. Public


Culture 15.1 (2003): 1140.
McAlister, Elizabeth. Slaves, Cannibals,
and Infected Hyper-Whites: The Race
and Religion of Zombies. Anthropological Quarterly 85.2 (2012): 45786.
McElroy, Wendy. XXX: A Womans Right
to Pornography. New York: St. Martins, 1995.
McGlotten, Shaka. Dead and Live Life:
Zombies, Queers, and Online Sociality. In Generation Zombie: Essays on
the Living Dead in Modern Culture.
Eds. Stephanie Boluk, and Wylie Lenz.
Jefferson: McFarland, 2011. 18293.
_____, and Sarah VanGundy. Zombie
Porn 1.0: Or, Some Queer Things
Zombie Sex Can Teach Us. Qui Parle
21.2 (2013): 10125.
McIntosh, Shawn. The Evolution of the
Zombie: The Monster that Keeps
Coming Back. In Zombie Culture: Autopsies of the Living Dead. Eds. Shawn
McIntosh and Marc Leverette. Lanham, MD: Scarecrow Press, 2008. 1
17.
McKim, Donald K. Westminster Dictionary of Theological Terms. Louisville:
Westminster John Knox Press, 1996.
McMillan, Graeme. Walking Dead
Smashed Cable Ratings Records, Beats
Broadcast Networks. Wired. 12 February 2013.
McNally, David. Monsters of the Market:
Zombies, Vampires and Global Capitalism. Leiden: Brill, 2011.
McRuer, Robert. Crip Theory: Cultural
Signs of Queerness and Disability. New
York: New York University Press,
2006.
_____, and Abby Wilkerson. Introduction to Desiring Disability: Queer Theory Meets Disability Studies. GLQ: A
Journal of Lesbian and Gay Studies
9.12 (2003): 123.
_____, and Anna Mollow, eds. Sex and
Disability. Durham: Duke University
Press, 2012.
Menninghaus, Winfried. Disgust: Theory
and History of a Strong Sensation. Albany: State University of New York,
2003.

Merleau-Ponty, Maurice. Phenomenology


of Perception. Trans. Colin Smith.
London: Routledge, 2002.
Mesch, Rachel. The Hysterics Revenge:
French Women Writers at the Fin De
Sicle. Nashville: Vanderbilt University
Press, 2006.
Milkov, Nikolay. Sexual Experience. In
Sex, Love, and Friendship. Ed. Adrianne Leigh McEvoy. New York:
Rodopi, 2011. 15566.
Mill, John Stuart. Utilitarianism. London: Parker, Son and Bourn, 1863.
Miller, David A. Anal Rope. Representations 32.1 (1990): 11433.
Miller, William Ian. The Anatomy of Disgust. Cambridge: Harvard University
Press, 2009.
Mogul, Joey L., Andrea J. Ritchie, and
Kay Whitlock. Queer (In)Justice: The
Criminalization of LGBT People in the
United States. Boston: Beacon Press,
2011.
Mole, Christopher. Illusions, Demonstratives, and the Zombie Action Hypothesis. Mind 118.472 (2009): 995
1011.
Moreman, Christopher M., and Cory
James Rushton, eds. Race, Oppression
and the Zombie: Essays on the CrossCultural Appropriations of the
Caribbean Tradition. Jefferson: McFarland, 2011.
Muoz, Jos. Disidentications: Queers
of Color and the Performance of Politics. Minneapolis: Minnesota University Press, 1999.
Newmahr, Staci. Playing on the Edge:
Sadomasochism, Risk, and Intimacy.
Bloomington: Indiana University
Press, 2011.
Nye, Andrea. Feminism and Modern Philosophy. London: Routledge, 2013.
Ober, Josiah. Democracys Dignity.
American Political Science Review
106.4 (2012): 82746.
Ordover, Nancy. American Eugenics:
Race, Queer Anatomy, and the Science
of Nationalism. Minneapolis: University of Minnesota Press, 2003.
Ostherr, Kirsten. Cinematic Prophylaxis:
Globalization and Contagion in the

Bibliography
Discourse of World Health. Durham:
Duke University Press, 2005.
Overstreet, Deborah Wilson. Not Your
Mothers Vampire: Vampires in Young
Adult Fiction. Lanham, MD: Scarecrow Press, 2006.
Paasonen, Susanna. Carnal Resonance:
Affect and Online Pornography. Cambridge: MIT Press, 2011.
Paffenroth, Kim. Gospel of the Living
Dead: George Romeros Visions of Hell
on Earth. Waco: Baylor University
Press, 2006.
Patterson, Natasha. Cannibalizing Gender and Genre: A Feminist Re-Vision
of George Romeros Zombie Films. In
Zombie Culture: Autopsies of the
Living Dead. Eds. Shawn McIntosh
and Marc Leverette. Lanham: Scarecrow Press, 2008. 10318.
Perkins, Lori. Hungry for Your Love: An
Anthology of Zombie Romance.
Boston: Ravenous Romance, 2009.
Phillip, Adam. On Kissing, Tickling, and
Being Bored: Psychoanalytic Essays on
the Unexamined Life. Cambridge:
Harvard University Press, 1993.
Pinedo, Isabel Cristina. Recreational Terror: Women and the Pleasures of Horror Film Viewing. Albany: State University of New York Press, 1997.
Platt, Carrie Anne. Cullen Family Values: Gender and Sexual Politics in the
Twilight Series. In Bitten by Twilight:
Youth Culture, Media, and the Vampire Franchise. Eds. Melissa A. Click,
Jennifer Stevens Aubrey, and Elizabeth
Behm-Morawitz. New York: Peter
Lang, 2010. 7186.
Ponder, Justin. Dawn of the Different:
The Mulatto Zombie in Zack Snyders
Dawn of the Dead. The Journal of
Popular Culture 45.3 (2012): 55171.
Poole, Daniel. What Jane Austen Ate and
Charles Dickens Knew: From Foxhunting to Whist: The Facts of Daily Life in
Nineteenth-Century England. New
York: Touchstone, 1993.
Prothero, Stephen. American Jesus: How
the Son of God Became a National
Icon. New York: Farrar, Straus and
Giroux, 2003.

207

Puar, Jasbir. Terrorist Assemblages:


Homonationalism in Queer Times.
Durham: Duke University Press, 2007.
Read, Benedict. Victorian Sculpture.
New Haven: Yale University Press,
1982.
Reed, John R. Victorian Conventions.
Athens: Ohio University Press, 1975.
Richardson, Niall. Transgressive Bodies:
Representations in Film and Popular
Culture. London: Ashgate, 2010.
Ricoeur, Paul. Interpretation Theory:
Discourse and the Surplus of Meaning.
Fort Worth: Texas Christian
University Press, 1976.
Robinson, Bruce A. The Passion of the
Christ: Assessment by Conservative
Christians. ReligiousTolerance.Org. 13
March 2005.
Rosch, D. Chronic Diseases, especially
the Nervous Diseases of Women.
Trans. Charles Dummig. New York:
Samuel R. Wells, 1870.
Rosin, Hanna. Can We Really Cure
Autism? Slate. 17 January 2013.
Ross, Michael W. Typing, Doing, and
Being: Sexuality and the Internet. The
Journal of Sex Research 42.4 (2005):
34252.
Rossetti, Yves, and Antti Revonsuo, eds.
Beyond Dissociation: Interaction between Dissociated Implicit and
Explicit Processing. Philadelphia: John
Benjamins, 2000.
Roth, Phyllis A. Suddenly Sexual
Women in Bram Stokers Dracula. In
Dracula. Eds. Nina Auerbach and
David J. Skal. New York: Norton, 1997.
41121.
Rubin, Edward L. Sex, Politics and
Morality. William and Mary Law Review 47.1 (2005): 248.
Russell, Jamie. Book of the Dead: The
Complete History of Zombie Cinema.
Surrey: FAB Press, 2005.
Russo, Mary. The Female Grotesque:
Risk, Excess and Modernity. New York:
Routledge, 1994.
Samuels, Ellen. Critical Divides: Judith
Butlers Body Theory and the
Question of Disability. In Feminist
Disability Studies. Ed. Kim Q. Hall.

208

Bibliography

Bloomington: Indiana University


Press, 2011. 4866.
Sandahl, Carrie. Queering the Crip or
Cripping the Queer? Intersections of
Queer and Crip Identities in Solo Autobiographical Performance. GLQ: A
Journal of Lesbian and Gay Studies
9.12 (2003): 2556.
Sanders, Teela. Male Sexual Scripts: Intimacy, Sexuality and Pleasure in the
Purchase of Commercial Sex. Sociology 42.3 (2008): 40017.
Saunders, Robert A. Undead Spaces:
Fear, Globalization, and the Popular
Geopolitics of Zombiism. Geopolitics
17.1 (2012): 80104.
Sceats, Sarah. Oral Sex: Vampiric Transgression and the Writing of Angela
Carter. Tulsa Studies in Womens Literature 20.1 (2001): 10721.
Schaefer, Eric. Gauging a Revolution: 16
mm Film and the Rise of the Pornographic Feature. In Porn Studies. Ed.
Linda Williams. Durham: Duke University Press, 2004. 370400.
Schechtman, Marya. The Brain/Body
Problem. Philosophical Psychology
10.2 (1997): 14964.
Schwartz, Barry. Mourning and the
Making of a Sacred Symbol: Durkheim
and the Lincoln Assassination. Social
Forces 70.2 (1991): 34364.
Schweik, Susan. The Ugly Laws: Disability in Public. New York: New York
University Press, 2010.
Sender, Katherine. Business Not Politics:
The Making of the Gay Market. New
York: Columbia University Press,
2004.
Senf, Carol A. Dracula: Stokers Response to the New Woman. Victorian
Studies 26.1 (1982): 3349.
Serlin, David. Replaceable You: Engineering the Body in Postwar America.
Chicago: University of Chicago Press,
2004.
Shaviro, Steven. The Cinematic Body.
Minneapolis: University of Minnesota
Press. 1993.
Sheets-Johnstone, Maxine. The Corporeal Turn: Reections on Awareness
and Gnostic Tactility and Kinaesthe-

sia. Journal of Consciousness Studies


18.7 (2011): 14568.
Slade, Joseph W. Eroticism and Technological Regression: The Stag Film. History and Technology 22.1 (2006): 27
52.
Smith, Angela M. Hideous Progeny: Disability, Eugenics, and Classic Horror
Cinema. New York: Columbia University Press, 2011.
Smithies, Declan. The Mental Lives of
Zombies. Philosophical Perspectives
26.1 (2012): 34372.
Somerville, Siobhan. Queering the Color
Line: Race and the Invention of Homosexuality in American Culture.
Durham: Duke University Press, 2000.
Spade, Dean. Normal Life: Administrative Violence, Critical Trans Politics, and the Limits of Law. Brooklyn:
South End Press, 2011.
Staskiewicz, Keith. Grab the shotgun
and cover your cranium: We talk to
Max Brooks about selling 1 million
copies of The Zombie Survival Guide.
Entertainment Weekly. 6 July 2010.
Stoker, Bram. Dracula. New York: Norton, 1997.
Strub, Whitney. Perversion for Prot: The
Politics of Pornography and the Rise of
the New Right. New York: Columbia
University Press, 2011.
Swanwick, Michael. The Dead. In The
Living Dead. Ed. John Joseph Adams.
San Francisco: Night Shade Books,
2008. 99107.
Thomas, Kette. Haitian Zombie, Myth,
and Modern Identity. Comparative Literature and Culture 12.2 (2010): 19.
Thompson, Kirsten Thompson. Apocalyptic Dread. Albany: New York University Press, 2007.
Treichler, Paula A. How to Have Theory
in an Epidemic: Cultural Chronicles of
AIDS. Durham: Duke University
Press, 1999.
Trumble, Angus. Love and Death: Art
in the Age of Queen Victoria. In Love
and Death: Art in the Age of Queen
Victoria. Ed. Angus Trumble. Adelaide: Art Gallery of South Australia,
2001. 1754.

Bibliography
Twitchell, James. Dreadful Pleasures: An
Anatomy of Modern Horror. New
York: Oxford University Press, 1987.
van der Zee, James. The Harlem Book of
the Dead. New York: Morgan and
Morgan, 1978.
Wagner, Brooke. Becoming a Sexual
Being: Overcoming Constraints of Female Sexuality. Sexualities 12.3
(2009): 289311.
Wald, Priscilla. Contagious: Cultures,
Carriers, and the Outbreak Narrative.
Durham: Duke University Press, 2008.
Walker, Tim. Lena Dunham: Could she
be the Voice of a Generation? The Independent. 6 October 2012.
Waller, Gregory A. The Living and the
Undead: From Stokers Dracula to
Romeros Dawn of the Dead. Urbana:
University of Illinois Press, 1986.
Ward, Graham. Cities of God. London:
Routledge, 2000.
Ward, Jane. Queer Feminist Pigs: A
Spectators Manifesta. In The
Feminist Porn Book. Eds. Tristan
Taormino, Celine Parrenas Shimizu,
Constance Penley, Mireille MillerYoung. New York: Feminist Press,
2013. 13039.
Warr, Deborah J. The Importance of
Love and Understanding: Speculation
of Romance in Safe Sex Health Promotion. Womens Studies International
Forum 24.2 (2001): 24152.
Waugh, Thomas. Mens Pornography:
Gay vs. Straight. In Out in Culture:
Gay, Lesbian, and Queer Essays on
Popular Culture. Eds. Corey K. Creekmur and Alexander Doty. Durham:
Duke University Press, 1995. 30727.
Webb, Jen, and Sam Byrnand. Some
Kind of Virus: The Zombie as Body
and as Trope. Body and Society 14.2
(2008): 8398.
Webster, Jane S. Ingesting Jesus: Eating
and Drinking in the Gospel of John. Atlanta: Society of Biblical Literature,
2003.
Weeks, Jeffrey. The Languages of Sexuality. London: Routledge, 2011.
Werth, Robert. I Do What Im Told, Sort
Of: Reformed Subjects, Unruly Citi-

209

zens, and Parole. Theoretical Criminology 16.3 (2012): 32946.


Whiting, Demian. Are Emotions Perceptual Experiences of Value? Ratio
25.1 (2012): 93107.
Wilcox, Russell. Cross-Gender Identication in Commercial Pornographic
Films. In Porn 101: Eroticism, Pornography, and the First Amendment. Eds.
James Elias, Vern L. Bullough, Gwen
Brewer, Jeffrey J. Douglas, Veronica
Diehl Elias, and Will Jarvis. New York:
Prometheus, 1999. 47991.
Wilkerson, Abby. Disability, Sex Radicalism, and Political Agency. In Feminist Disability Studies. Ed. Kim Q.
Hall. Bloomington: Indiana University
Press, 2011. 193217.
Wilkins, Ben. Directors Statement.
Prettydeadwww. N.d.
Williams, Linda. Film Bodies: Gender,
Genre and Excess. In Feminist Film
Theory: A Reader. Ed. Sue Thornham.
New York: New York University Press,
1999. 26781.
Williams, Linda. Hard Core: Power,
Pleasure, and the Frenzy of the Visible. Berkeley: University of California
Press, 1989.
Williams, Linda. Screening Sex. Durham:
Duke University Press, 2008.
Williams, Tony. The Cinema of George A.
Romero: Knight of the Living Dead.
London: Wallower Press, 2003.
Winter, Steven. Reimagining Democratic Theory for Social Individuals.
Zygon 46.1 (2011): 22445.
Wood, Robin. An Introduction to the
American Horror Film. In Movies and
Methods Vol.2. Ed. Bill Nichols. Los
Angeles: University of California
Press, 1985. 195220.
Wu, Huei-Hsia. Gender, Romance Novels and Plastic Sexuality in the United
States: a Focus on Female College Students. Journal of International
Womens Studies 8.1 (2006): 12534.
Wu, Wayne. The Case for Zombie
Agency. Mind 122.485 (2013): 21730.
York, Rael, and Chris York, eds. Comic
Books and the Cold War. Jefferson:
McFarland, 2012.

210

Bibliography

Films, Television Shows


and Videogames
At Twilight Come the Flesh Eaters (1998,
dir. Vidkid Timo, USA)
Beyond Fucked: A Zombie Odyssey (2013,
dir. Tommy Pistol, USA)
Bloodlust Zombies (2011, dir. Len
Kabasinski, USA)
Braindead (Dead-Alive) (1992, dir. Peter
Jackson, New Zealand)
Bride of Frankenstein (1935, dir. James
Whale, USA)
Brunch of the Living Dead (2006, dir.
Dan Dujnic, USA)
Call of Duty: Modern Warfare 2 (2009,
dir. Jason West, USA)
Chip and Bernies Dating Guide for the
Zombie Apocalypse (2011, dir.
Pasquale Murena, USA)
Cockneys vs Zombies (2012, dir. Matthias
Hoene, UK)
Corpus Delecti (The Passion of Zombie
Jesus) (2009, dir. Ira Hunter, Canada)
Creatures from the Pink Lagoon (2006,
dir. Chris Diana, USA)
Cupcake: A Zombie Lesbian Musical
(2012, dir. Rebecca Thomson, Australia)
Dance of the Dead (2008, dir. Greg
Bishop, USA)
Dark Angels (2000, dir. Nic Andrews,
USA)
Dark Angels 2: Bloodline (2005, dir. Nic
Andrews, USA)
Dating a Zombie (2012, dir. Jack Abele,
USA)
Dawn of the Dead (1978, dir. George
Romero, Italy/USA)
Dawn of the Dead (2004, dir. Zack Snyder, USA/Canada/Japan/France)
Dawna of the Dead (2008, dir. Laume
Conroy, USA)
Day of the Dead (1985, dir. George
Romero, USA)
Dead Island (2011, dir. Pawei Marchewka, Poland)
Deadgirl (2008, dirs. Marcel Sarmiento
and Gadi Harel, USA)
Dellamorte Dellamore (1994, dir.
Michele Soavi, Italy/Frace/Germany)
Doghouse (2009, dir. Jake West, UK)
Dracula (1931, dir. Tod Browning, USA)

Dracula XXX (2011, dir. Axel Braun,


USA)
Dragula (1973, dir. Jim Moss, USA)
The Erotic Adventures of Candy (1978,
dir. Gail Palmer, USA)
Erotic Nights of the Living Dead (Le Notti
Erotiche dei Morti Viventi) (1980, dir.
Joe DAmato, Italy)
The Fall of the House of Usher (1960, dir.
Roger Corman, USA)
Fido (2006, dir. Andrew Currie, USA/
Canada)
Flaming Gay Zombies (2007, dirs. Sadya
Lashua and Aaron Mace, USA)
Frankenstein (1931, dir. James Whale,
USA)
Fury of the Wolfman (La Furia del Hombre
Lobo) (1972, dir. J.M. Zabalza, Spain)
Gay Zombie (2007, dir. Michael Simon,
USA)
Gayracula (1983, dir. Roger Earl, USA)
Generation Jobless (2013, dirs. Sharon
Bartlett and Maria LeRose, Canada)
Girls, Vagina Panic (2012, dir. Lena
Dunham, USA)
GrubGirl (2005, dir. Craven Moorehead,
USA)
Harolds Going Stiff (2011, dir. Keith
Wright, UK)
His Dracula (2012, dir. Bobby Drake, USA)
Horno (2009, dir. Terence Williams, USA)
House of the Dead (2003, dir. Uwe Boll,
Germany/Canada/USA)
The House of the Dead (1997, dir. Takashi
Oda, Japan/Canada)
I Am Legend (2007, dir. Francis Lawrence, USA)
I Cant Believe I Fucked a Zombie (2011,
dir. Rodney Moore, USA)
I Walked with a Zombie (1943, dir.
Jacques Tourneur, USA)
I, Zombie: The Chronicles of Pain (1998,
dir. Andrew Parkinson, UK)
In the Flesh (2012, dir. Jonny Campbell,
UK)
Jesus H. Zombie (2006, dir. Daniel Heisel,
USA)
Juan of the Dead ( Juan de los Muertos,
2011, dir. Alejandro Brugus, Spain/
Cuba)
L.A. Zombie (2010, dir. Bruce LaBruce,
USA/Germany)

Bibliography
Last Man on Earth (1964, dir. Ubaldo B.
Ragona, Italy/USA)
The Last of Us (2013, dirs. Bruce Straley
and Neil Druckmann, USA)
Left 4 Dead (2008, dir. Mike Booth,
USA)
Lesbian Zombies from Outer Space
(2013, dir. Jave Galt-Miller, USA)
Martin (1976, dir. George A. Romero,
USA)
The Masque of the Red Death (1964, dir.
Roger Corman, USA/UK)
The Mummy (1932, dir. Karl Freund, USA)
The Nature of Nicholas (2002, dir. Jeff
Erbbach, Canada)
The Necro Files (1997, dir. Matt Jaissle,
USA)
The Necro Files 2 (2003, dir. Ron Carlo,
USA)
The Nerdist Zombies! (2013, Dir. Alan
Wu, USA)
The Night Boys (1991, dir. Gino Colbert,
USA)
Night of the Giving Head (2008, dir. Rodney Moore, USA)
Night of the Howling Beast (La Maldicion
de la Bestia) (1974, dir. M.I. Bonns,
Spain)
Night of the Living Dead (1968, dir.
George A. Romero, USA)
Night of the Living Dead: Reanimated
(2009, dir. Mike Schneider, USA)
Night of the Living Dorks (Die Nacht der
Lebenden Loser) (2004, dir. Mathias
Dinter, Germany)
The Omega Man (1971, dir. Boris Sagal,
USA)
The Orgy of the Dead (La Orgia de los
Muerto) (1973, dir. Jos Luis Merino,
Spain/Italy)
Osombie (2012, dir. John Lyde, USA)
Otto; or, Up with Dead People (2008, dir.
Bruce LaBruce, Germany/Canada)
ParaNorman (2012, dirs. Chris Butler
and Sam Fell, USA)
The Passion of the Christ (2004, dir. Mel
Gibson, USA)
The Pit and the Pendulum (1961, dir.
Roger Corman, USA)
The Plague of the Zombies (1966, dir.
John Gilling, UK)
Poison (1991, dir. Todd Haynes, USA)

211

Porn of the Dead (2006, dir. Rob Rotten,


USA)
Porn Star Zombies (2009, dir. Keith
Emerson, USA)
Pretty Dead (2013, dir. Benjamin
Wilkins, USA)
Rape Zombie: Lust of the Dead (Reipu
zonbi) (2012, dir. Naoyuki Tomomatsu, Japan)
Resident Evil (Bio Hazard ) (1996, dirs.
Mikami Shinji and Hosoki Mtsuhisa,
Japan)
Resident Evil (2002, dir. Paul W. S. Anderson, USA)
Return of the Living Dead (1985, dir. Dan
OBannon, USA)
Return of the Living Dead Part 3 (1993,
dir. Brian Yuzna, USA/Japan)
Seven Murders for Scotland Yard ( Jack
el Destripador de Londres) (1971, dir.
Jos Luis Madrid, Italy/Spain)
Shane Diesels Cuckold Stories (2009present, dir. Paul Woodcrest, USA)
Shaun of the Dead (2004, dir. Edgar
Wright, UK)
Southern Hospitality (2013, dir. B. Skow,
USA)
Story of Joanna, The (1975, dir. Gerard
Damiano, USA)
Strap Attack (200412, dir. Joey Silvera,
USA)
Stripperland (2011, dir. Sean Skelding,
USA)
Survival of the Dead (2009, dir. George
A. Romero, USA/Canada)
Swamp Zombies (2005, dir. Dan Lantz,
USA)
The Terrible Secret of Dr Hichcock (Lorrible Segreto del Dr Hichcock) (1962,
dir. Riccardo Freda, Italy)
Tomb of Ligeia, The (1964, dir. Roger
Corman, UK).
True Blood (2008-Present, dirs. Alan Ball
et al., USA)
True Love Zombie (2012, dir. Paul
Blevins, USA)
28 Days Later (2002, dir. Danny Boyle,
UK)
28 Weeks Later (2007, dir. Juan Carlos
Fresnadillo, UK/Spain)
Twilight (2008, dir. Catherine Hardwicke, USA)

212

Bibliography

The Vampire Diaries (2009-Present,


dirs. Marcos Siega et al., USA)
The Walking Dead (2010-Present, dirs.
Frank Darabont et al., USA)
Walking Dead: A Hardcore Parody, The
(2013, dirs. Tommy Pistol and Joanna
Angel, USA)
Walking Dead: The Videogame (2012,
dirs. Sean Vanaman et al. USA)
Warm Bodies (2013, dir. Jonathan Levine,
USA)
White Zombie (1932, dir. Victor
Halperin, USA)
Wild Zero (1999, dir. Tetsuro Takeuchi,
Japan)
World War Z (2013, dir. Mark Forster,
USA/Malta)
Zombie Beach Party (2003, dir. Stacey
Case, Canada)
Zombie Cheerleading Camp (2007, dir.
Jon Fabris, USA)
The Zombie Christ (2012, dir. Christopher Bryan, USA)
Zombie Creeping Flesh (Virus) (1980, dir.
Bruno Mattei, Italy/Spain)
Zombie Flesheaters (Zombi 2 ) (1979, dir.
Lucio Fulci, Italy)

Zombie Holocaust (1980, dir. Marino


Girolami, Italy)
Zombie Honeymoon (2004, dir. David
Gebroe, USA)
Zombie Love (2007, dir. Yfke Van Berckelaer, USA/Netherlands)
Zombie Love (2008, dir. Ken Morris,
USA)
A Zombie Love Song (2013, dir. William
Morrison, Canada)
Zombie Love Story (2008, dir. Marcus
Slabine, USA)
Zombie Marriage Counselling: Im a Lesbian (2009, dir. Alex Ferrari, USA)
Zombie Strippers! (2008, dir. Jay Lee,
USA)
Zombiechrist (2010, dir. Bill Zebub, USA)
Zombieland (2009, dir. Ruben Fleischer,
USA)
Zombies vs Strippers (2012, dir. Alex
Nicolaou, USA)
Zombies! Zombies! Zombies! (2008, dir.
Jason Murphy, USA)
ZombiU (2012, dirs. Jean Philippe Caro
and Florent Sacr, France)

About the Contributors


Sasha Cocarla is a PhD candidate with the Institute of Womens Studies at
the University of Ottawa. Her research is on popular culture representations
of bisexuality and the ways in which they work to act as a counter to
homonationalist articulations. She focuses especially on popular culture
understandings of queerness, fatness, and monstrosity.
Denise N. Cook is a PhD student of sociology at the University of Nevada
Las Vegas. Her interests include the study of culture, social strata, and sexuality. Her MA thesis examined world attitudes pertaining to prostitution as
an expression of materialist or postmaterialist attitudes.
Darren Elliott-Smith is a lecturer in lm and television at University of Hertfordshire. He has published several essays on LGBT horror lm and television, and also studies gender and sexuality in lm, psychoanalysis and
cinema, the consumption of cult/trash television and lm, and adaptation/
appropriation in the moving image.
Trevor Grizzell is a PhD student in women, gender, and sexuality studies at
the University of Kansas. His research uses a queer lens to examine interactions of time, embodiment, and power through visual and digital cultures.
Cathy Hannabach is an independent scholar and the founder and director of
Philly Queer Media, which fosters new creative work at the intersections of
queer activism and queer media production. She has taught courses on
lm/media studies, feminism, queer theory, and American studies at ve universities across the U.S.
Marcus Harmes is a lecturer at the University of Southern Queensland who
specializes in both early modern history and the cultural history of science
ction and horror lms. He is the author of Bishops and Power in Early Modern England (Bloomsbury, 2013) and numerous articles and essays on topics
ranging from Roman history to seventeenth century religious history.
Steve Jones is a senior lecturer in media at Northumbria University. His
research is principally focused on representations of sex and violence, the

213

214

About the Contributors

philosophy of self, gender politics, and ethics. His monograph Torture Porn:
Popular Horror After Saw was published in 2013 by Palgrave-Macmillan.
Laura Helen Marks is a postdoctoral fellow in the English department at
Louisiana State University. Her research concerns gender, genre and sexual
representation, specically in pornographic lm and literature and hardcore
lm adaptations of Victorian literature and the various ways pornography
makes use of the Victorian as a canvas on which to construct erotic appeal.
Shaka McGlotten is an anthropologist and an associate professor of media,
society, and the arts at Purchase College-SUNY. Much of his research is
ethnographically based, although he also draws on the humanities and arts.
His essays on affect, anthropology, race, media, and technology have
appeared in journals and books.
Max Thornton studied classics at University College London and theology at
Graduate Theological Union in Berkeley, California. He is a doctoral candidate
in theology and philosophy at Drew University in Madison, New Jersey. His
research interests include new media studies, gender and queer theory, deaf and
disability studies, and the intersection of Christian theology with the above.
Emma Vossen is a comics and sexuality scholar completing her PhD at the
University of Waterloo and writing a dissertation about pornographic comics.
Her publications cover a variety of topics including Supermans co-creator
Joe Shuster, The Walking Dead comic and videogame, and the Fifty Shades of
Grey trilogy.

Index
Chaos Campus 3
Chen, Mel 6, 126, 131132, 134135
Chip and Bernies Dating Guide for the
Zombie Apocalypse 196n4
Chronic Diseases, Especially the Nervous
Diseases of Women 49
Clark, Danae 119, 122n15
Clover, Carol J. 166
Cockneys vs. Zombies 3
Cohen, Jeffrey Jerome 95
Comeau, J.L. 81
Comic Books and the Cold War 105n1
Corpus Delecti (The Passion of Zombie
Jesus) 19
Creatures from the Pink Lagoon 12, 157n5
Cruz, Annie 159
Cupcake: A Zombie Lesbian Musical 17n3

Adlard, Charlie 90, 93, 97, 121n1


Ahmed, Sara 126
Alaimo, Stacy 135136
Aldini, Giovanni 46
Althaus-Reid 20
At Twilight Come the Flesh-Eaters 12, 143
Augustine 23
Banks, Amy 186
Barrett, C.K. 2526
Barth, Karl 26
Bataille, Georges 133
Beaudoin, Tom 34
Behlmer, George 45, 46
Berlant, Lauren 127
Bersani, Leo 142, 144145, 155, 157n3
Beyond Fucked: A Zombie Odyssey 159
160, 174176
bin Laden, Osama 55
Bishop, Kyle 55, 140
Bloodlust Zombies 15
Boluk, Stephanie 160
Bosky, Bernadette Lynn 163
Braindead (Dead Alive) 29, 31
Bride of Frankenstein 8
Brinkley, Alan 92
Bront sisters 44
Brooks, Max 92
Brown, Kate 44
Browne, S.G. 80
Brunch of the Living Dead 195
Butler, Judith 123, 158n8
Butt, Trevor 75
Byrnand, Sam 7

DAmato, Joe 15, 160, 164


Dance of the Dead 16
Dark Angels 168
Dark Angels 2: Bloodline 160, 168170
The Dark Knight Returns 89
Dating a Zombie 196n4
Davis, Wade 5
Dawn of the Dead (1978) 6, 7, 29, 36, 135
Dawn of the Dead (2004) 21, 27, 125126,
128
Dawna of the Dead 15
Day of the Dead 7, 29, 32
The Dead 77, 8081, 85
Dead Island 3
Dead Kitties Dont Purr 9
Deadgirl 11
Dellamorte Dellamore 37
Dendle, Peter 141, 151
Dennett, Daniel 195
Descartes, Ren 29, 131, 194195
Dickens, Charles 41, 44, 46, 48

Cacho, Lisa Marie 114115


Call of Duty: Modern Warfare 2 55
Carpentieri, Luigi 38, 51n4
Chalmers, David 180, 183184, 196n1

215

216
Doghouse 11
Dombey and Son 44
Donati, Ermanno 38, 51n4
Dracula (1931 lm) 8
Dracula (novel) 94, 163, 167, 178n8
Dracula XXX 178n1
Dragula 178n1
Dudley, Scott 6768
Duggan, Lisa 13, 53, 60, 61, 71n2, 144
Dunham, Lena 103
Dyer, Richard 118119
Eckhart, Meister 29
Edelman, Lee 8, 12830, 138
The Erotic Adventures of Candy 179n12
Erotic Nights of the Living Dead 170
Eugene, Rudy (Miami Zombie) 128
The Fall of the House of Usher 51n3
Farnell, Gary 46
Fido 71n6
First Love Never Dies 77, 81, 82, 84
Flaming Gay Zombies 157n5
Fleshed Out 3
Foucault, Michel 4243, 57, 132
Franco, Jesus (Jess) 143, 178n1
Frankenstein 8
Freud, Sigmund 44, 49, 145, 157n3
Fulci, Lucio 21, 143
Fury of the Wolfman (La Furia del Hombre
Lobo) 51n2
Fuss, Diana 145
Gastaldi, Ernesto 38, 51n4
Gay Zombie 12
Gayracula 178n1
Gibson, Mel 30
Giddens, Anthony 9, 7387 passim
Girls 103
Giroux, Henry 107108
Glassner, Barry 87
Goff, Philip 195
Great Expectations 44, 46
Green, Amber 9
Greven, David 166
Gross, Neil 7479 passim, 85, 87
GrubGirl 10, 15
Guy, Jean-Sebastien 75
Halberstam, Judith (Jack) 13, 72n9, 124,
163, 178n8
Hammer Films 36, 38, 39, 42
Hanrahan, Rebecca Roman 184
Hardy, Ernest 148
Harolds Going Stiff 182
His Dracula 178n1

Index
Hoffman, Nina Kiriki 81
Holmes, Sherlock 3839
Horno 15
House of the Dead 3
Hunter, Ira 19
Hustler 178n1
I Am Legend 110
I Cant Believe I Fucked a Zombie 159
I Walked with a Zombie 5, 21
I, Zombie: The Chronicles of Pain 17,
157n6
In the Flesh 157n5
Jackson, Peter 29
Jameson, Frederick 89
Jeremy, Ron 161162
Jesus H. Zombie 14
Johnson, Paul 76
Jones, Steve 17n4, 17n5, 37, 157n4, 163,
165, 168, 174, 176, 178n2, 197n11
Juan of the Dead 3
Julian of Norwich 20, 29
Kierkegaard, Sren 89, 103104
King William IV 43
Kipnis, Laura 162
Kirkman, Robert 90104 passim, 171
Kozlowski, Jan 81
Krafft-Ebing, Richard von 42
L.A. Zombie 1213, 140158 passim, 164,
178n5
LaBruce, Bruce 1213, 140158 passim,
164, 178n5
Langdridge, Darren 75
Larsen, Lars Bang 5
Last Man on Earth 110
The Last Myth 105n2
The Last of Us 197n9
Lauro, Sarah 104
Lee, Edward 10, 15
Left 4 Dead 3
Lenz, Wylie 160
Lesbian Zombies from Outer Space 10
Lincoln, Abraham 37
Liss, David 76, 81
Lokis-Adkins, Julie 191192
Lord Lytton 45
Lugones, Mara 135, 137
MacCormack, Patricia 164
Macpherson, Fiona 186, 197n8
Marion, Isaac 9, 5272 passim, 9394
Martin 147
Martin, George R. R. 79, 81

Index
Marvel Zombies 3
The Masque of the Red Death 51n3
Massumi, Brian 38
Matheson, Richard 110
Mbembe, Achille 133134
McGlotten, Shaka 155156
McNally, David 108
McRuer, Robert 109, 112, 138
Meathouse Man 7985
Merleau-Ponty, Maurice 21
Milkov, Nikolay 182
Mill, John Stuart 190191
Miller, Frank 89
Miller, William Ian 161, 170
Moore, Alan 89
The Mummy 8
Musical of the Living Dead 3
My Secret Life 48
The Nature of Nicholas 157n5
The Necro Files 12
The Necro Files 2 12
Newmahr, Staci 126127
The Night Boys 178n1
Night of the Giving Head 15
Night of the Howling Beast (La Maldicion
de la Bestia) 51n2
Night of the Living Dead 21, 27, 36, 127,
143, 150
Night of the Living Dead: Reanimated 3
Night of the Living Dorks 158n10
Nye, Andrea 194195
The Omega Man 110
The Orgy of the Dead (La Orgia de los
Muertos) 36, 3840, 4243, 4549
Osombie 55
Ossorio, Amando de 21
Ostherr, Kristin 109
Otto; Or, Up with Dead People 1213, 37,
140158 passim, 164
Paasonen, Susanna 165, 178n7
ParaNorman 3, 71n6
The Passion of the Christ 30
Penley, Constance 89
Pinedo, Isabel 165166
Pistol, Tommy 159, 179n11
The Pit and the Pendulum 51n3
Plague of the Zombies 3650 passim
Poison 157n7
Porn of the Dead 143, 157n4, 168
Porn Star Zombies 15
Pretty Dead 180197 passim
Pride and Prejudice and Zombies 3,
158n11

217

Prince Consort Albert 37, 413, 49


Puar, Jasbir 6062, 71n2
Queen Victoria 36, 37, 4143, 50, 51n7
Rape Zombie: Lust of the Dead 12
Replaceable You 114
Resident Evil 3, 21
Return of the Living Dead 7, 21, 196n8
Return of the Living Dead Part 3 182
Ricoeur, Paul 31
Rohleder, Hermann 42
Rollin, Jean 143
Romeo and Juliet 67
Romero, George A. 67, 21, 24, 32, 33, 36,
94, 135, 141143, 147, 149, 196n3
Rosch, D. 49
Ross, Michael 75
Roth, Phyllis A. 167
Rubin, Edward 80
Russell, Jamie 15, 143, 160
Russo, John 21
St. Claire, Jasmine 15
Sandahl, Carrie 122n10
Savini, Tom 29
Sceats, Sarah 167
Seduction Cinema 178n1
Seminar Z 8183
Sender, Katherine 119, 122n16
Sense and Sensibility and Sea Monsters
158n11
Serlin, David 114
The Serpent and the Rainbow 5
Seven Murders for Scotland Yard (Jack el
Destripador de Londres) 51n2
Shakespeare, William 67
Shane Diesels Cuckold Stories 178n10
Shaun of the Dead 9, 71n5, 93, 138
Shaviro, Steven 142
Sheets-Johnstone, Maxine 6
Shelton, Emily 161162
Simmons, Solon 7479 passim, 85, 87
Skull Faced City 83
Slade, Joseph 173174
Smith, Will 110
Snyder, Zack 21, 27, 125
Southern Hospitality 179n12
Stoker, Bram 163, 167
The Story of Joanna 179n12
Strap Attack 178n10
Stripperland 11
Survival of the Dead 3
Swamp Zombies 15
Swanwick, Michael 80

218

Index

The Terrible Secret of Dr Hichcock (Lorrible


Segreto del Dr Hichcock) 3649 passim
Texas, Alexis 15
Third Dead Body 77, 81, 85
Thompson, Kirsten Moana 8890, 93, 103,
104
Timo, Vidkid 12, 143
The Tomb of Ligeia 51n3
True Blood 54
True Love Zombie 182
Trumble, Angus 4345, 47
28 Days Later 36
28 Weeks Later 2
Twilight 54, 9394
Twist, Oliver 44
Twitchell, James 140
Untitled Hardcore Zombie 158n11
V for Vendetta 89
The Vampire Diaries 54
Wald, Priscilla 109
The Walking Dead (comic) 3, 6, 88105
passim
The Walking Dead (television series) 3, 6,
14, 93, 106122 passim, 123, 130131,
135137, 171
The Walking Dead: A Hardcore Parody
160, 171, 173177
The Walking Dead: The Videogame 93
Waller, Gregory A. 33, 142
Walter (author of My Secret Life) 48,
51n6
Ward, Graham 25
Ward, Jane 166
Warm Bodies (lm) 3, 37, 71n5, 72n12, 93
94, 158n10

Warm Bodies (novel) 3, 6, 9, 5272 passim,


9394, 96
Warr, Deborah J. 76, 77
Webb, Jenn 7
What Maisie Knew 76, 78, 8081, 83,
8586
White Zombie 5, 21, 36, 40, 47, 54
Wild Zero 9
Wilkerson, Abby 109
Williams, Linda 15, 158n12, 163167
Williams, Tony 21, 32
World War Z (lm) 3
World War Z (novel) 3, 92
Zombie Beach Party 195
Zombie Cheerleading Camp 195
The Zombie Christ 14
Zombie Creeping Flesh (Virus) 5
Zombie Flesheaters (Zombi 2) 5, 143
Zombie Gigolo 80
Zombie Holocaust 5, 143
Zombie Honeymoon 17n2, 182
Zombie Hooker Nightmare 10
Zombie Love (2007) 196n4
Zombie Love (2008) 182
A Zombie Love Song 196n4
Zombie Love Story 182
Zombie Marriage Counselling 17n2
Zombie Strippers! 11, 37
The Zombie Survival Guide 92
Zombiechrist 14
Zombieland 3, 93
Zombies vs. Strippers 1
Zombies! Zombies! Zombies! 14
ZombiU 10

You might also like